The Project Gutenberg EBook of An Examination of the Testimony of the Four Evangelists by Simon Greenleaf, LL.D.
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at http://www.gutenberg.org/license
Title: An Examination of the Testimony of the Four Evangelists Author: Simon Greenleaf, LL.D. Release Date: January 17, 2011 [Ebook #34989] Language: English Character set encoding: UTF-8 ***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK AN EXAMINATION OF THE TESTIMONY OF THE FOUR EVANGELISTS***
An
Examination of the Testimony
of the
Four Evangelists,
by the Rules of Evidence Administered
in
Courts of Justice.
With an Account of the Trial of Jesus.
By Simon Greenleaf, LL.D.
Dane Professor of Law in Harvard University
Second Edition
Revised and Corrected by the Author.
London:
A. Maxwell & Son, 32, Bell Yard, Lincoln's Inn;
W. Smith, 113, Fleet Street;
Hodges & Smith, Dublin; T. & J. Clark, Edinburgh.
1847
In introducing to the notice of the British Public, Mr. Professor Greenleaf's Harmony of the Four Gospels, the publishers have much satisfaction in announcing, that it has become a Standard Work in the United States of America: and its intrinsic value has induced them to make it known, in the hope of promoting its circulation, in this country.
The spirit of infidelity is far more restless and active on the other side of the Atlantic, than, happily, it has been in our highly-favoured land: and, in consequence, it has called forth some of the most able and powerful minds to correct and subdue it. Among these advocates of Divine Revelation, the profound lawyer, Professor Greenleaf, holds a most honourable and distinguished place; and his work may justly be regarded as combining sound and practical knowledge with well-directed zeal and piety. Its character has been very fairly appreciated in two leading North American journals, from which the following extracts are made, as indicative of its contents, and also of the high estimation in which its learned author is deservedly held in his own country.
EXTRACT OF A NOTICE OF PROFESSOR GREENLEAF ON THE FOUR GOSPELS, OCTOBER 24, 1846, IN “THE NEW YORK OBSERVER.”
The Author is a lawyer, very learned in his profession, acute, critical and used to raising and meeting practical doubts. Author of a treatise on the law of evidence, which has already become a classic in the hands of the profession which he adorns, and teaches in one of the Law Seminaries which do honour to our country in the eyes of Europe, he brings rare qualifications for the task he assumes. That he [pg iv] should, with the understanding and from the heart, accept the Gospel as the truth, avow it as his Hope, and seek to discharge a duty to his fellow-men by laying before them the grounds on which he founds this acceptance and this hope, are cheering circumstances to the Christian, and present strong appeals to the indifferent.
To his profession, to the lawyers of the country, however, this work makes a strong appeal. They are a very secular profession. Their business is almost wholly conversant with material interests. Their time is absorbed in controversies, of passion, or of interest. Acute, critical, and disputatious, they apparently present a field unpropitious for the acceptance of a religion, spiritual, disinterested, and insisting on perfect holiness. Still, they necessarily need to know and must enforce the rules of finding truth and justice; the principles for ascertaining truth and dispensing justice are the great subjects of all their discussions, so far as they are discussions of any general principle. From this cause it is, that this profession has numbered among its members, in every age, Christians of great eminence, and in our own day and country, we cannot turn to the eminent men of this profession in any large community, without the satisfaction of finding our Faith embraced by those whose habits of practical as well as speculative investigation render them evidently the best able to appreciate its claims and to detect any imperfections in its proof.
So we trust it always may be; and we are assured that the best models of the mode of investigating matters of legal controversy as the proof of facts, are writings on the evidences. Paley's treatise and that of Chalmers, on the oral testimony in favour of Christ's mission, Paley's examination of the writings of the apostle Paul, are, we are assured, the best models extant for forming the habit of examining oral and documentary evidence. These are subjects on which it is of vital importance, in a secular view, that a lawyer's habits should be right: in a spiritual view the importance is unspeakable. Mr. Greenleaf has doubtless felt this truth, and has also felt that his position would give to his labours some authority with his brethren and with the public. He has given himself honourably to the labour, and spread its results before the world.
It is long since Infidelity has found its advocates among the truly learned. Among the guesses and speculations of a small portion of unsanctified medical men, she still finds now and then a champion. Historians and philosophers have long since discussed her pretensions. And now from the Jurists and Lawyers, the practical masters of this kind of investigation, works are appearing, whereby not only an earnest reception of the Gospel is manifested, but the mode and means of action and of credit by which all human affairs are governed.
We lose in respect to our own investigations on this subject by its very sacredness. We have an idle dread, that it is not open to free investigation: to severe practical tests. We need to be invited, to be pressed to examine this subject freely. Dr. Chalmers in one department of this inquiry has led the way. Mr. Greenleaf in another has also presented an example. And it will not be competent, after these men have thus investigated and taught the rules and laws of investigation, for any man who is not willing to arrogate superior claims to learning and ability, to turn aside superciliously from an examination of the Gospels.
Such are our views of this work, which we commend to all: to the legal profession, from the character of its topics and the rank of its author: to men desirous of knowledge, in every rank in life, because of its presenting this subject under such a treatment as every-day practical questions are treated with. [pg v] It does not touch the intrinsic evidences of the Gospel: those which to the believer are, after all, the highest proofs. But it is to be remembered, that these are proofs which are not satisfactory until an examination of the outward evidences has led men to the conviction, that the Gospels cannot be false.
FROM THE “NORTH AMERICAN REVIEW.”
Professor Greenleaf on the Gospels, and Strauss' “Life of Jesus.”—Of course we place the titles of these two books together only by way of contrast. They relate, it is true, to the same general subject; but it is hard to conceive of two works more unlike in their scope, character, and purpose. The object of the one is to prove, and of the other to disprove, the Christian religion. The one is the production of an able and profound lawyer, a man who has grown grey in the halls of justice and the schools of jurisprudence,—a writer of the highest authority on legal subjects, whose life has been spent in weighing testimony and sifting evidence, and whose published opinions on the rules of evidence are received as authoritative in all the English and American tribunals,—for fourteen years the highly respected colleague of the late Mr. Justice Story, and now the honoured head of the most distinguished and prosperous school of English law in the world. The other is the work of a German professor and speculatist, also profoundly learned in his way,—an ingenious and erring framer of theories of the most striking character, almost unheard of till his brain either conceived them or gave them currency, though relating to topics with which men have been familiar for eighteen centuries,—a subtle controversialist, whose work, as he himself avows, is deeply tinged with the most strongly marked peculiarities of the philosophy and theology of his countrymen. We presume the most ardent admirer of Dr. Strauss will not object to our characterising the two works as excellent specimens, the one of clear and shrewd English common sense, the other of German erudition, laborious diligence, and fertility in original speculation. And if the subject of inquiry were one that involved his own temporal and immediate interests, and it were necessary to determine which of these two writers would give the wiser and safer counsel, or the more trustworthy opinion, we suppose the same person would agree with us in making the choice.
On the publishers announcing to Professor Greenleaf their wish to introduce his Harmony to the notice of the British Public, he with equal promptitude and kindness communicated to them some important additions to his Introduction, and also numerous valuable notes, more particularly adapted to the use of Theological Students. These are now printed for the first time: and at the suggestion of a very eminent and learned clergyman of the Established Church, the publishers have added in an Appendix an accurate and elegant translation of the late learned French Advocate, A. M. J. J. Dupin's Refutation of the eminent Jewish writer, Joseph Salvador's “Trial and [pg vi] Condemnation of Jesus,” executed by the late distinguished American Lawyer and Statesman, John Pickering, LL.D., Counsellor at Law, and President of the American Academy of Arts and Sciences (sometime Secretary to the American Embassy in this country); who has most truly characterised M. Dupin's examination of Salvador, as being “conducted with an ability, learning, animation, and interest, that leave nothing to be desired.”
Gentlemen,
The subject of the following work I hope will not be deemed so foreign to our professional pursuits, as to render it improper for me to dedicate it, as I now respectfully do, to you. If a close examination of the evidences of Christianity may be expected of one class of men more than another, it would seem incumbent on us, who make the law of evidence one of our peculiar studies. Our profession leads us to explore the mazes of falsehood, to detect its artifices, to pierce its thickest veils, to follow and expose its sophistries, to compare the statements of different witnesses with severity, to discover truth and separate it from error. Our fellow-men are well aware of this; and probably they act upon this knowledge more generally, and with a more profound repose, than we are in the habit of considering. The influence, too, of the legal profession upon the community is unquestionably great; conversant, as it daily is, with all classes and grades of men, in their domestic and social relations, and in all the affairs of life, from the cradle to the grave. This influence we are constantly exerting for good or ill; and hence, to refuse to acquaint ourselves with the evidences of the Christian religion, or to act as though, having fully examined, we lightly esteemed them, is to assume an appalling amount of responsibility.
The things related by the Evangelists are certainly of the most momentous character, affecting the principles of our conduct here, and our happiness for ever. The religion of Jesus Christ aims at nothing less than the utter overthrow of [pg viii] all other systems of religion in the world; denouncing them as inadequate to the wants of man, false in their foundations, and dangerous in their tendency. It not only solicits the grave attention of all, to whom its doctrines are presented, but it demands their cordial belief, as a matter of vital concernment. These are no ordinary claims; and it seems hardly possible for a rational being to regard them with even a subdued interest; much less to treat them with mere indifference and contempt. If not true, they are little else than the pretensions of a bold imposture, which, not satisfied with having already enslaved millions of the human race, seeks to continue its encroachments upon human liberty, until all nations shall be subjugated under its iron rule. But if they are well founded and just, they can be no less than the high requirements of Heaven, addressed by the voice of God to the reason and understanding of man, concerning things deeply affecting his relations to his sovereign, and essential to the formation of his character and of course to his destiny, both for this life and for the life to come. Such was the estimate taken of religion, even the religion of pagan Rome, by one of the greatest lawyers of antiquity, when he argued that it was either nothing at all, or was everything. Aut undique religionem tolle, aut usquequaque conserva.1
With this view of the importance of the subject, and in the hope that the present work may in some degree aid or at least incite others to a more successful pursuit of this interesting study, it is submitted to your kind regard, by
The figures in the first column refer to the corresponding Sections in Newcome's Harmony. Those in the second column to the Sections in this Work.
Sect. | Sect. | Contents. | Matt. | Mark | Luke | John |
Part I. | ||||||
events connected with the birth and childhood of our lord. | ||||||
Time: About thirteen and a half years. | ||||||
1 | 1 | Preface to Luke's Gospel. | 1, 1-4 | |||
3 | 2 | An Angel appears to Zacharias. Jerusalem. | 1, 5-25 | |||
4 | 3 | An Angel appears to Mary. Nazareth. | 1, 26-38 | |||
5 | 4 | Mary visits Elizabeth. Juttah. | 1, 39-56 | |||
6 | 5 | Birth of John the Baptist. Juttah. | 1, 57-80 | |||
7, 8 | 6 | An Angel appears to Joseph. Nazareth. | 1, 18-25 | |||
8 | 7 | The Birth of Jesus. Bethlehem. | 2, 1-7 | |||
10 | 8 | An Angel appears to the Shepherds. Near Bethlehem. | 2, 8-20 | |||
11, 12 | 9 | The circumcision of Jesus, and his presentation in the Temple. Bethlehem. Jerusalem. | 2, 21-38 | |||
13 | 10 | The Magi. Jerusalem. Bethlehem. | 2, 1-12 | |||
13 | 11 | The flight into Egypt. Herod's cruelty. The return. Bethlehem. Nazareth. | 2, 13-23 | 2, 39-40 | ||
14 | 12 | At twelve years of age Jesus goes to the Passover. Jerusalem. | 2, 41-52 | |||
9 | 13 | The Genealogies. | 1, 1-17 | 3, 28-38 | ||
Part II. | ||||||
announcement and introduction of our lord's public ministry. | ||||||
Time: About one year. | ||||||
15 | 14 | The Ministry of John the Baptist. The Desert. The Jordan. | 3, 1-12 | 1, 1-8 | 3, 1-18 | |
16 | 15 | The Baptism of Jesus. The Jordan. | 3, 13-17 | 1, 9-11 | 3, 21-23 | |
17 | 16 | The Temptation. Desert of Judea. | 4, 1-11 | 1, 12, 13 | 4, 1-13 | |
2 | 17 | Preface to John's Gospel. | 1, 1-18 | |||
18 | 18 | Testimony of John the Baptist to Jesus. Bethany beyond Jordan. | 1, 19-34 | |||
18 | 19 | Jesus gains Disciples. The Jordan. Galilee? | 1, 35-52 | |||
19 | 20 | The Marriage at Cana of Galilee. | 2, 1-12 | |||
Part III. | ||||||
our lord's first passover, and the subsequent transactions until the second. | ||||||
Time: One year. | ||||||
20 | 21 | At the Passover Jesus drives the Traders out of the Temple. Jerusalem. | 2, 13-25 | |||
21 | 22 | Our Lord's discourse with Nicodemus. Jerusalem. | 3, 1-21 | |||
22 | 23 | Jesus remains in Judea and baptizes. Further testimony of John the Baptist. | 3, 22-36 | |||
23 | 24 | Jesus departs into Galilee after John's imprisonment | 4, 12. 14, 3-5 | 1, 14. 6, 17-20 | 4, 14. 3, 19, 20. | 4, 1-3 |
23 | 25 | Our Lord's discourse with the Samaritan woman. Many of the Samaritans believe on him. Shechem or Neapolis. | 4, 4-42 | |||
24 | 26 | Jesus teaches publicly in Galilee. | 4, 17 | 1, 14. 15 | 4, 14, 15 | 4, 43-45 |
24 | 27 | Jesus again at Cana, where he heals the son of a nobleman lying ill at Capernaum. Cana of Galilee. | 4, 46-54 | |||
25 | 28 | Jesus at Nazareth; he is there rejected, and fixes his abode at Capernaum. | 4, 13-16 | 4, 16-31 | ||
26 | 29 | The call of Simon Peter and Andrew, and of James and John, with the miraculous draught of fishes. Near Capernaum. | 4, 18-22 | 1, 16-20 | 5, 1-11 | |
27 | 30 | The healing of a Demoniac in the Synagogue. Capernaum | 1, 21-28 | 4, 31-37 | ||
28 | 31 | The healing of Peter's wife's mother, and many others. Capernaum. | 8, 14-17 | 1, 29-34 | 4, 38-41 | |
28 | 32 | Jesus with his Disciples goes from Capernaum throughout Galilee. | 4, 23-25 | 1, 35-39 | 4, 42-44 | |
29 | 33 | The healing of a Leper. Galilee. | 8, 2-4 | 1, 40-45 | 5, 12-16 | |
30 | 34 | The healing of a Paralytic. Capernaum. | 9, 2-8 | 2, 1-12 | 5, 17-26 | |
31 | 35 | The call of Matthew. Capernaum. | 9, 9 | 2, 13, 14 | 5, 27, | |
Part IV. | ||||||
our lord's second passover, and the subsequent transactions until the third. | ||||||
Time: One year. | ||||||
32 | 36 | The Pool of Bethesda; the healing of the infirm man; and our Lord's subsequent discourse. Jerusalem. | 5, 1-47 | |||
33 | 37 | The Disciples pluck ears of grain on the Sabbath. On the way to Galilee? | 12, 1-8 | 2, 23-28 | 6, 1-5 | |
34 | 38 | The healing of the withered hand on the Sabbath. Galilee. | 12, 9-14 | 3, 1-6 | 6, 6-11 | |
34 | 39 | Jesus arrives at the Sea of Tiberias, and is followed by multitudes. Lake of Galilee. | 12, 15-21 | 3, 7-12 | ||
35 | 40 | Jesus withdraws to the Mountain, and chooses the Twelve; the multitudes follow him. Near Capernaum. | 10, 2-4, | 3, 13-19 | 6, 12-19 | |
36 | 41 | The Sermon on the Mount. Near Capernaum. | 5,1,-8,1 | 6, 20-49 | ||
37 | 42 | The healing of the Centurion's servant. Capernaum. | 8, 5-13 | 7, 1-10 | ||
38 | 43 | The raising of the Widow's son. Nain. | 7, 11-17 | |||
39 | 44 | John the Baptist in prison sends Disciples to Jesus. Galilee. Capernaum? | 11, 2-19 | 7, 18-35 | ||
40 | 45 | Reflections of Jesus on appealing to his mighty Works. Capernaum. | 11, 20-30 | |||
41 | 46 | While sitting at meat with a Pharisee, Jesus is anointed by a woman who had been a sinner. Capernaum? | 7, 36-50 | |||
42 | 47 | Jesus, with the Twelve, makes a second circuit in Galilee. | 8, 1-3 | |||
42 | 48 | The healing of a Demoniac. The Scribes and Pharisee blaspheme. Galilee. | 12, 22-37 | 3, 19-30 | 11, 14, 15, 17-23 | |
43, 44 | 49 | The Scribes and Pharisees seek a sign. Our Lord's reflections. Galilee. | 12, 38-45 | 11, 16, 24-36 | ||
45 | 50 | The true Disciples of Christ his nearest relatives. Galilee. | 12, 46-50 | 3, 31-35 | 8, 19-21 | |
46 | 51 | At a Pharisee's table, Jesus denounces woes against the Pharisees and others. Galilee. | 11, 37-54 | |||
47 | 52 | Jesus discourses to his Disciples and the multitude. Galilee. | 12, 1-59 | |||
48 | 53 | The slaughter of certain Galileans. Parable of the barren Fig-tree. Galilee. | 13, 1-9 | |||
49 | 54 | Parable of the Sower. Lake of Galilee. Near Capernaum? | 13, 1-23 | 4, 1-25 | 8, 4-18 | |
49 | 55 | Parable of the Tares. Other Parables. Near Capernaum? | 13, 24-53 | 4, 26-34 | ||
50 | 56 | Jesus directs to cross the Lake. Incidents. The tempest stilled. Lake of Galilee. | 8, 18-27 | 4, 35-41 | 8, 22-25, 9, 57-62 | |
51 | 57 | The two Demoniacs of Gadara. S. E. coast of the Lake of Galilee. | 8, 28-34, 9, 1 | 5, 1-21 | 8, 26-40 | |
52 | 58 | Levi's Feast. Capernaum. | 9, 10-17 | 2, 15-22 | 5, 29-39 | |
52 | 59 | The raising of Jairus's daughter. The woman with a bloody flux. Capernaum. | 9, 18-26 | 5, 22-43 | 8, 41-56 | |
53, 54 | 60 | Two blind men healed, and a dumb spirit cast out. Capernaum? | 9, 27-34 | |||
55 | 61 | Jesus again at Nazareth, and again rejected. | 13, 54-58 | 6, 1-6 | ||
56, 57, 58, 59 | 62 | A third circuit in Galilee. The Twelve instructed and sent forth. Galilee. | 9, 35-38, 10, 1, 5-42, 11, 1 | 6, 6-13 | 9, 1-6 | |
60, 61 | 63 | Herod holds Jesus to be John the Baptist, whom he had just before beheaded. Galilee? Perea. | 14, 1, 2, 6-12 | 6, 14-16, 21-29 | 9, 7-9 | |
62, 63 | 64 | The Twelve return, and Jesus retires with them across the Lake. Five thousand are fed. Capernaum. N. E. coast of the Lake of Galilee. | 14, 13-21 | 6, 30-44 | 9, 10-17 | 6, 1-14 |
64 | 65 | Jesus walks upon the water. Lake of Galilee. Gennesareth. | 14, 22-36 | 6, 45-56 | 6, 15-21 | |
65, 83 | 66 | Our Lord's discourse to the multitude in the Synagogue at Capernaum. Many Disciples turn back. Peter's profession of faith. Capernaum. | 6, 22-71, 7, 1 | |||
Part V. | ||||||
from our lord's third passover until his final departure from galilee at the festival of tabernacles. | ||||||
Time: Six months. | ||||||
66 | 67 | Our Lord justifies his disciples for eating with unwashen hands. Pharisaic Traditions. Capernaum. | 15, 1-20 | 7, 1-23 | ||
67 | 68 | The daughter of a Syrophenician woman is healed. Region of Tyre and Sidon. | 15, 21-28 | 7, 24-30 | ||
68, 69 | 69 | A deaf and dumb man healed; also many others. Four thousand are fed. The Decapolis. | 15, 29-38 | 7, 31-37, 8, 1-9 | ||
69, 70 | 70 | The Pharisees and Sadducees again require a sign. (See § 49.) Near Magdala. | 15, 39, 16, 1-4 | 8, 10-12 | ||
71 | 71 | The Disciples cautioned against the leaven of the Pharisees, etc. N. E. coast of the Lake of Galilee. | 16, 4-12 | 8, 13-21 | ||
72 | 72 | A blind man healed. Bethsaida. (Julias). | 8, 22-26 | |||
73 | 73 | Peter and the rest again profess their faith in Christ. (See § 66.) Region of Cesarea Philippi. | 16, 13-20 | 8, 27-30 | 9, 18-21 | |
74 | 74 | Our Lord foretells his own death and resurrection, and the trials of his followers. Region of Cesarea Philippi. | 16, 21-28 | 8, 31-38, 9, 1 | 9, 22-27 | |
75 | 76 | The Transfiguration. Our Lord's subsequent discourse with the three Disciples. Region of Cesarea Philippi. | 17, 1-13, | 9, 2-13 | 9, 28-36 | |
76 | 76 | The healing of a Demoniac, whom the Disciples could not heal. Region of Cesarea Philippi. | 17, 14-21 | 9, 14-29 | 9, 37-43 | |
77 | 77 | Jesus again foretells his own death and resurrection (See § 74.) Galilee. | 17, 22, 2 | 9, 30-32 | 9, 43-45 | |
78 | 78 | The tribute-money miraculously provided. Capernaum. | 17, 24-27 | 9, 33 | ||
79 | 79 | The Disciples contend who should be greatest. Jesus exhorts to humility, forbearance, and brotherly love. Capernaum. | 18, 1-35 | 9, 33-50 | 9, 46-50 | |
80 | 80 | The Seventy instructed and sent out. Capernaum. | 10, 1-16 | |||
81, 95 | 81 | Jesus goes up the Festival of Tabernacles. His final departure from Galilee. Incidents in Samaria. | 9, 51-56 | 7, 2-10 | ||
95, 96 | 82 | Ten Lepers cleansed. Samaria. | 17, 11-19 | |||
Part VI. | ||||||
the festival of the tabernacles and the subsequent transactions until our lord's arrival at bethany, six days before the fourth passover. | ||||||
Time: Six months less one week. | ||||||
81 | 83 | Jesus at the Festival of Tabernacles. His public teaching. Jerusalem. | 7, 11-53, 8, 1 | |||
82 | 84 | The woman taken in Adultery. Jerusalem. | 8, 2-11 | |||
83 | 85 | Further public teaching of our Lord. He reproves the unbelieving Jews, and escapes from their hands. Jerusalem. | 8, 12-59 | |||
86 | 86 | A lawyer instructed. Love to our neighbour defined. Parable of the Good Samaritan. Near Jerusalem. | 10, 25-37 | |||
99 | 87 | Jesus in the house of Martha and Mary. Bethany. | 10, 38-42 | |||
87 | 88 | The Disciples again taught how to pray. Near Jerusalem. | 11, 1-13 | |||
85 | 89 | The Seventy return. Jerusalem? | 10, 17-24 | |||
84 | 90 | A man born blind is healed on the Sabbath. Our Lord's subsequent discourses. Jerusalem. | 9, 1-41, 10, 1-21 | |||
100, 101 | 91 | Jesus in Jerusalem at the Festival of Dedication. He retires beyond Jordan. Jerusalem. Bethany beyond Jordan. | 10, 22-42 | |||
102 | 92 | The raising of Lazarus. Bethany. | 11, 1-46 | |||
102 | 93 | The counsel of Caiaphas against Jesus. He retires from Jerusalem. Jerusalem. Ephraim. | 11, 47-54 | |||
103, 88 | 94 | Jesus beyond Jordan is followed by multitudes. The healing of the infirm woman on the Sabbath. Valley of Jordan. Perea. | 19, 1. 2 | 10, 1 | 13, 10-21 | |
89 | 95 | Our Lord goes teaching and journeying towards Jerusalem. He is warned against Herod. Perea. | 13, 22-35 | |||
90 | 96 | Our Lord dines with a chief Pharisee on the Sabbath. Incidents. Perea. | 14, 1-24 | |||
91 | 97 | What is required of true Disciples. Perea. | 14, 25-35 | |||
92 | 98 | Parables of the Lost Sheep, etc. Parable of the Prodigal Son. Perea. | 15, 1-32 | |||
93 | 99 | Parable of the Unjust Steward. Perea. | 16, 1-13 | |||
93 | 100 | The Pharisees reproved. Parable of the Rich Man and Lazarus. Perea. | 16, 14-31 | |||
94 | 101 | Jesus inculcates forbearance, faith, humility. Perea. | 17, 1-10 | |||
97 | 102 | Christ's coming will be sudden. Perea. | 17, 20-37 | |||
98 | 103 | Parables. The importunate Widow. The Pharisee and Publican. Perea. | 18, 1-14 | |||
103 | 104 | Precepts respecting divorce. Perea. | 19, 3-12 | 10, 2-12 | ||
104 | 105 | Jesus receives and blesses little Children. Perea. | 19, 13-15 | 10, 13-16 | 18, 15-17 | |
105 | 106 | The rich Young Man. Parable of the Labourers in the Vineyard. Perea. | 19, 16-30, 20, 1-16 | 10, 17-31 | 18, 18-30 | |
106 | 107 | Jesus a third time foretells his Death and Resurrection. (See § 74, § 77.) Perea. | 20, 17-19 | 10, 32-34 | 18, 31-34 | |
107 | 108 | James and John prefer their ambitious request. Perea. | 20, 20-28 | 10, 35-45 | ||
108 | 109 | The healing of two blind men near Jericho. | 20, 29-34 | 10, 46-52 | 18, 35-43, 19, 1 | |
109 | 110 | The visit to Zaccheus. Parable of the ten Minae. Jericho. | 19, 2-28 | |||
110 | 111 | Jesus arrives at Bethany six days before the Passover. | 11, 55-57, 12, 1.9-11 | |||
Part VII. | ||||||
our lord's public entry into jerusalem, and the subsequent transactions before the fourth passover. | ||||||
Time: Five days. | ||||||
111 | 112 | Our Lord's public Entry into Jerusalem. Bethany. | 21, 1-11, 14-17 | 11, 1-11 | 19, 29-44 | 12, 12-19 |
112 | 113 | The barren Fig-tree. The cleansing of the Temple. Bethany, Jerusalem. | 21, 12. 13, 18. 19 | 11, 12-19 | 19, 45-48, 21, 37.38 | |
113 | 114 | The barren Fig-tree withers away. Between Bethany and Jerusalem. | 21, 20-22 | 11, 20. 2 | ||
114 | 115 | Christ's authority questioned. Parable of the Two Sons. Jerusalem. | 21, 23-32 | 11, 27-33 | 20, 1-8 | |
114 | 116 | Parable of the wicked husbandmen. Jerusalem. | 21, 33-46 | 12, 1-12 | 20, 9-19 | |
114 | 117 | Parable of the Marriage of the King's Son. Jerusalem. | 22, 1-14 | |||
115 | 118 | Insidious question of the Pharisees: Tribute to Cæsar. Jerusalem. | 22, 15-22 | 12, 13-17 | 20, 20-26 | |
115 | 119 | Insidious question of the Sadducees: The Resurrection. Jerusalem. | 22, 23-33 | 12, 18-27 | 20, 27-40 | |
115 | 120 | A lawyer questions Jesus. The two great Commandments. Jerusalem. | 22, 34-40 | 12, 28-34 | ||
115 | 121 | How is Christ the son of David? Jerusalem. | 22, 41-46 | 12, 35-37 | 20, 41-44 | |
116 | 122 | Warnings against the evil example of the Scribes and Pharisees. Jerusalem. | 23, 1-12 | 12, 38.39 | 20, 45.46 | |
116 | 123 | Woes against the Scribes and Pharisees. Lamentation over Jerusalem. Jerusalem. | 23, 13-39 | 12, 40 | 20, 47 | |
117 | 124 | The Widow's mite. Jerusalem. | 12, 41-44 | 21, 1-4 | ||
111 | 125 | Certain Greeks desire to see Jesus. Jerusalem. | 12, 20-36 | |||
111 | 126 | Reflections upon the unbelief of the Jews. Jerusalem. | 12, 37-50 | |||
118 | 127 | Jesus, on taking leave of the Temple, foretells its destruction and the persecution of his Disciples. Jerusalem. Mount of Olives. | 24, 1-14 | 13, 1-13 | 21, 5-19 | |
118 | 128 | The signs of Christ's coming to destroy Jerusalem, and put an end to the Jewish State and Dispensation. Mount of Olives. | 24, 15-42 | 13, 14-37 | 21, 20-36 | |
118 | 129 | Transition to Christ's final coming at the Day of Judgment. Exhortation to watchfulness. Parables: The ten Virgins. The five Talents. Mount of Olives. | 24, 43-51, 25, 1-30 | |||
119 | 130 | Scenes of the Judgment Day. Mount of Olives. | 25, 31-46 | |||
120 | 131 | The Rulers conspire. The supper at Bethany. Treachery of Judas. Jerusalem. Bethany. | 26, 1-16 | 14, 1-11 | 22, 1-6 | 12, 2-8 |
121 | 132 | Preparation for the Passover. Bethany. Jerusalem. | 26, 17-19 | 14, 12-16 | 22, 7-13 | |
Part VIII. | ||||||
the fourth passover; our lord's passion; and the accompanying events until the end of the jewish sabbath. | ||||||
Time: Two days. | ||||||
122 | 133 | The Passover Meal. Contention among the Twelve. Jerusalem. | 26, 20 | 14, 17 | 22, 14-18, 24-30 | |
123 | 134 | Jesus washes the feet of his disciples. Jerusalem, | 13, 1-20 | |||
124 | 136 | Jesus point out the Traitor. Judas withdraws. Jerusalem. | 26, 21-25 | 14, 18-21 | 22, 21-23 | 13, 21-35 |
125 | 136 | Jesus foretells the fall of Peter, and the dispersion of the Twelve. Jerusalem. | 26, 31-35 | 14, 27-31 | 22, 31-38 | 13, 36-38 |
126, 128 | 137 | The Lord's Supper. Jerusalem. | 26, 26-29 | 14, 22-25 | 22, 19.20 | |
127, 129 | 138 | Jesus comforts his Disciples. The Holy Spirit promised. Jerusalem. | 14, 1-31 | |||
129 | 139 | Christ the true Vine. His Disciples hated by the world. Jerusalem. | 15, 1-27 | |||
129 | 140 | Persecution foretold. Further promise of the Holy Spirit. Prayer in the name of Christ. Jerusalem. | 16, 1-33 | |||
130 | 141 | Christ's last prayer with his disciples. Jerusalem. | 17, 1-26 | |||
131 | 142 | The agony in Gethsemane. Mount of Olives. | 26, 30, 36-46 | 14, 26, 32-42 | 22, 39-46 | 18, 1 |
132 | 143 | Jesus betrayed, and made prisoner. Mount of Olives. | 26, 47-56 | 14, 43-52 | 22, 47-53 | 18, 2-12 |
133, 134 | 144 | Jesus before Caiaphas. Peter thrice denies him. Jerusalem. | 26, 47-56 | 14, 53.54, 66-72 | 22, 54-62 | 18, 13-18, 25-27 |
134 | 145 | Jesus before Caiaphas and the Sanhedrim. He declares himself to be the Christ; is condemned and mocked. Jerusalem. | 26, 59-68 | 14, 55-65 | 22, 63-71 | 18, 19-24 |
135 | 146 | The Sanhedrim lead Jesus away to Pilate. Jerusalem. | 27, 1. 2, 11-14 | 15, 1-5 | 23, 1-5, 23, 6-12 | 18, 28-38 |
136 | 147 | Jesus before Herod. Jerusalem. | 23, 6-12 | |||
138 | 148 | Pilate seeks to release Jesus. The Jews demand Barabbas. Jerusalem. | 27, 15-26 | 15, 6-15 | 23, 13-25 | 18, 39. 40 |
138 | 149 | Pilate delivers up Jesus to death. He is scourged and mocked. Jerusalem. | 27, 26-30 | 15, 15-19 | 19, 1-3 | |
138 | 150 | Pilate again seeks to release Jesus. Jerusalem. | 19, 4-16 | |||
139 | 151 | Judas repents and hangs himself. Jerusalem. | 27, 3-10 | |||
138, 140 | 152 | Jesus is led away to be crucified. Jerusalem. | 27, 31-34 | 15, 20-23 | 23, 26-33 | 19, 16.17 |
141 | 153 | The Crucifixion. Jerusalem. | 27, 35-38 | 15, 24-28 | 23, 33.34 | 19, 18-24 |
141 | 154 | The Jews mock at Jesus on the Cross. He commends his mother to John. Jerusalem. | 27, 39-44 | 15, 29-32, 15, 33-37 | 23, 35-37, 39-43 | 19, 25-27 |
141 | 155 | Darkness prevails. Christ expires on the cross. Jerusalem. | 27, 45-50 | 23, 44-46 | 19, 28-30 | |
142, 144 | 156 | The vail of the Temple rent, and graves opened. Judgment of the Centurion. The Women at the Cross. Jerusalem. | 27, 51-56 | 15, 38-41 | 23, 45, 47-49 | |
142 | 157 | The taking down from the Cross. The burial. Jerusalem. | 27, 57-61 | 15, 42-47 | 23, 50-56 | 19, 31-42 |
143 | 158 | The Watch at the Sepulchre. Jerusalem. | 27, 62-66 | |||
Part IX. | ||||||
our lord's resurrection, his subsequent appearances, and his ascension. | ||||||
Time: Forty days. | ||||||
144 | 159 | The Morning of the Resurrection. Jerusalem. | 28, 2-4 | 16, 1 | ||
145 | 160 | Visit of the Women to the Sepulchre. Mary Magdalene returns. Jerusalem. | 28, 1 | 16, 2-4 | 24, 1-3 | 20, 1. 2 |
145 | 161 | Vision of Angels in the Sepulchre. Jerusalem. | 28, 5-7 | 16, 5-7 | 24, 4-8 | |
145 | 162 | The Women return to the City. Jesus meets them. Jerusalem. | 28, 8-10 | 16, 8 | 24, 9-11 | |
146 | 163 | Peter and John run to the Sepulchre. Jerusalem. | 24, 12 | 20, 3-10 | ||
147, 148 | 164 | Our Lord is seen by Mary Magdalene at the Sepulchre. Jerusalem. | 16, 9-11 | 20, 11-18 | ||
149 | 165 | Report of the Watch. Jerusalem. | 28, 11-15 | |||
150 | 166 | Our Lord is seen of Peter. Then by two Disciples on the way to Emmaus. Jerusalem. Emmaus. | 16, 12.13 | 24, 13-35 | ||
151 | 167 | Jesus appears in the midst of the Apostles, Thomas being absent. Jerusalem. | 16, 14-18 | 24, 36-49 | 20, 19-23 | |
152 | 168 | Jesus appears in the midst of the Apostles, Thomas being present. Jerusalem. | 20, 24-29 | |||
153 | 169 | The Apostles go away into Galilee. Jesus shows himself to seven of them at the Sea of Tiberias. Galilee. | 28, 16 | 21, 1-24 | ||
154 | 170 | Jesus meets the Apostles and above five hundred Brethren on a Mountain in Galilee. Galilee. | 28, 16-20 | |||
155 | 171 | Our Lord is seen of James; then of all the Apostles. Jerusalem. | 16, 19.20 | 24, 50-53 | ||
156 | 172 | The Ascension. Bethany. | 20, 30.31 | |||
157 | 173 | Conclusion of John's Gospel. | 21, 25 |
Chap. | Verse. | Sect. |
i. | 1-17 | 13 |
18-25 | 6 | |
ii. | 1-12 | 10 |
13-23 | 11 | |
iii. | 1-12 | 14 |
13-17 | 15 | |
iv. | 1-11 | 16 |
12 | 24 | |
13-16 | 28 | |
17 | 26 | |
18-22 | 29 | |
23-25 | 32 | |
v. | 1-48 | 41 |
vi. | 1-34 | 41 |
vii. | 1-29 | 41 |
viii. | 1 | 41 |
2-4 | 33 | |
5-13 | 42 | |
14-17 | 31 | |
18-27 | 56 | |
28-34 | 57 | |
ix. | 1 | 57 |
2-8 | 34 | |
9 | 35 | |
10-17 | 58 | |
18-26 | 59 | |
27-34 | 60 | |
35-38 | 62 | |
x. | 1 | 62 |
2-4 | 40 | |
5-42 | 62 | |
xi. | 1 | 62 |
2-19 | 44 | |
20-30 | 45 | |
xii. | 1-8 | 37 |
9-14 | 38 | |
15-21 | 39 | |
22-37 | 48 | |
38-45 | 49 | |
46-50 | 50 | |
xiii. | 1-23 | 54 |
24-53 | 55 | |
54-58 | 61 | |
xiv. | 1, 2 | 63 |
3-5 | 24 | |
6-12 | 63 | |
13-21 | 64 | |
22-36 | 65 | |
xv. | 1-20 | 67 |
21-28 | 68 | |
29-38 | 69 | |
39 | 70 | |
xvi. | 1-4 | 70 |
4-12 | 71 | |
13-20 | 73 | |
21-28 | 74 | |
xvii. | 1-13 | 75 |
14-21 | 76 | |
22, 23 | 77 | |
24-27 | 78 | |
xviii. | 1-35 | 79 |
xix. | 1, 2 | 94 |
3-12 | 104 | |
13-15 | 105 | |
16-30 | 106 | |
xx. | 1-16 | 106 |
17-19 | 107 | |
20-28 | 108 | |
29-34 | 109 | |
xxi. | 1-11 | 112 |
12-13 | 113 | |
14-17 | 112 | |
18-19 | 113 | |
20-22 | 114 | |
28-32 | 115 | |
33-46 | 116 | |
xxii. | 1-14 | 117 |
15-22 | 118 | |
23-33 | 119 | |
34-40 | 120 | |
41-46 | 121 | |
xxiii. | 1-12 | 122 |
13-39 | 123 | |
xxiv. | 1-14 | 127 |
15-42 | 128 | |
43-51 | 129 | |
xxv. | 1-30 | 129 |
31-46 | 130 | |
xxvi. | 1-16 | 131 |
17-19 | 132 | |
20 | 133 | |
21-25 | 135 | |
26-29 | 137 | |
30 | 142 | |
31-35 | 136 | |
36-46 | 142 | |
47-56 | 143 | |
57, 58 | 144 | |
59-68 | 145 | |
69-75 | 144 | |
xxvii | 1, 2 | 146 |
3-10 | 151 | |
11-14 | 146 | |
15-26 | 148 | |
26-30 | 149 | |
31-34 | 152 | |
35-38 | 153 | |
39-44 | 154 | |
45-50 | 155 | |
51-56 | 156 | |
57-61 | 157 | |
62-66 | 158 | |
xxviii. | 1 | 160 |
2-4 | 159 | |
5-7 | 161 | |
8-10 | 162 | |
11-15 | 165 | |
16 | 169 | |
16-20 | 170 |
Chap. | Verse. | Sect. |
i. | 1-8 | 14 |
9-11 | 15 | |
12, 13 | 16 | |
14 | 24 | |
14, 15 | 26 | |
16-20 | 29 | |
21-28 | 30 | |
29-34 | 31 | |
35-39 | 32 | |
40-45 | 33 | |
ii. | 1-12 | 34 |
13, 14 | 35 | |
15-22 | 58 | |
23-28 | 37 | |
iii. | 1-6 | 38 |
7-12 | 39 | |
13-19 | 40 | |
19-30 | 48 | |
31-35 | 50 | |
iv. | 1-25 | 54 |
26-34 | 55 | |
35-41 | 56 | |
v. | 1-21 | 57 |
22-43 | 59 | |
vi. | 1-6 | 61 |
6-13 | 62 | |
14-16 | 63 | |
17-20 | 24 | |
21-29 | 63 | |
30-44 | 64 | |
45-56 | 65 | |
vii. | 1-23 | 67 |
24-30 | 68 | |
31-37 | 69 | |
viii | 1-9 | 69 |
10-12 | 70 | |
13-21 | 71 | |
22-26 | 72 | |
27-30 | 73 | |
31-38 | 74 | |
ix. | 1 | 74 |
2-13 | 75 | |
14-29 | 76 | |
30-32 | 77 | |
33 | 78 | |
33-50 | 79 | |
x. | 1 | 94 |
2-12 | 104 | |
13-16 | 105 | |
17-31 | 106 | |
32-34 | 107 | |
35-45 | 108 | |
46-52 | 109 | |
xi. | 1-11 | 112 |
12-19 | 113 | |
20-26 | 114 | |
27-33 | 115 | |
xii. | 1-12 | 116 |
13-17 | 118 | |
18-27 | 119 | |
28-34 | 120 | |
35-37 | 121 | |
38, 39 | 122 | |
40 | 123 | |
41-44 | 124 | |
xiii. | 1-13 | 127 |
14-37 | 128 | |
xiv. | 1-11 | 131 |
12-16 | 132 | |
17 | 133 | |
18-21 | 135 | |
22-25 | 137 | |
26 | 142 | |
27-31 | 136 | |
32-42 | 142 | |
43-52 | 143 | |
53, 54 | 144 | |
55-65 | 145 | |
66-72 | 144 | |
xv. | 1-5 | 146 |
6-15 | 148 | |
15-19 | 149 | |
20-23 | 152 | |
24-28 | 153 | |
29-32 | 154 | |
33-37 | 155 | |
38-41 | 156 | |
42-47 | 157 | |
xvi. | 1 | 159 |
2-4 | 160 | |
5-7 | 161 | |
8 | 162 | |
9-11 | 164 | |
12, 13 | 166 | |
14-18 | 167 | |
19, 20 | 172 |
Chap. | Verse. | Sect. |
i. | 1-4 | 1 |
5-25 | 2 | |
26-38 | 3 | |
39-56 | 4 | |
57-80 | 5 | |
ii. | 1-7 | 7 |
8-20 | 8 | |
21-38 | 9 | |
39, 40 | 11 | |
41-52 | 12 | |
iii. | 1-18 | 14 |
19-20 | 24 | |
21-23 | 15 | |
23-38 | 13 | |
iv. | 1-13 | 16 |
14 | 24 | |
14, 15 | 26 | |
16-31 | 28 | |
31-37 | 30 | |
38-41 | 31 | |
42-44 | 32 | |
v. | 1-11 | 29 |
12-16 | 33 | |
17-26 | 34 | |
27, 28 | 35 | |
29-39 | 58 | |
vi. | 1-5 | 37 |
6-11 | 38 | |
12-19 | 40 | |
20-26 | 41 | |
27-30 | 41 | |
31 | 41 | |
32-36 | 41 | |
37-49 | 41 | |
vii. | 1-10 | 42 |
11-17 | 43 | |
18-35 | 44 | |
36-50 | 46 | |
viii. | 1-3 | 47 |
4-18 | 54 | |
19-21 | 50 | |
22-25 | 56 | |
26-40 | 57 | |
41-56 | 59 | |
ix. | 1-6 | 62 |
7-9 | 63 | |
10-17 | 64 | |
18-21 | 73 | |
22-27 | 74 | |
28-36 | 75 | |
37-43 | 76 | |
43-45 | 77 | |
46-50 | 79 | |
51-56 | 81 | |
57-62 | 56 | |
x. | 1-16 | 80 |
17-24 | 89 | |
25-37 | 86 | |
38-42 | 87 | |
xi. | 1-13 | 88 |
14, 15 | 48 | |
16 | 49 | |
17-23 | 48 | |
24-28 | 49 | |
29-36 | 49 | |
37-54 | 51 | |
xii. | 1-59 | 52 |
xiii. | 1-9 | 53 |
10-21 | 94 | |
22-35 | 95 | |
xiv. | 1-24 | 96 |
25-35 | 97 | |
xv. | 1-32 | 98 |
xvi. | 1-13 | 99 |
14-31 | 100 | |
xvii. | 1-10 | 101 |
11-19 | 82 | |
20-37 | 102 | |
xviii. | 1-14 | 103 |
15-17 | 105 | |
18-30 | 106 | |
31-34 | 107 | |
35-43 | 109 | |
xix. | 1 | 109 |
2-28 | 110 | |
29-44 | 112 | |
45-18 | 113 | |
xx. | 1-8 | 115 |
9-19 | 116 | |
20-26 | 118 | |
27-40 | 119 | |
41-44 | 121 | |
45-46 | 122 | |
47 | 123 | |
xxi. | 1-4 | 124 |
5-19 | 127 | |
20-36 | 128 | |
37, 38 | 118 | |
xxii. | 1-6 | 131 |
7-13 | 132 | |
14-18 | 133 | |
19, 20 | 137 | |
21-23 | 135 | |
24-30 | 133 | |
31-38 | 136 | |
39-46 | 142 | |
47-53 | 143 | |
54-62 | 144 | |
63-71 | 145 | |
xxiii. | 1-5 | 146 |
6-12 | 147 | |
13-25 | 148 | |
26-33 | 152 | |
33-34 | 153 | |
35-37 | 154 | |
38 | 153 | |
39-43 | 154 | |
44-46 | 155 | |
45 | 156 | |
47-49 | 156 | |
50-56 | 157 | |
xxiv. | 1-3 | 160 |
4-8 | 161 | |
9-11 | 162 | |
12 | 163 | |
13-35 | 166 | |
36-49 | 167 | |
50-53 | 172 |
Chap. | Verse. | Sect. |
i. | 1-18 | 17 |
19-34 | 18 | |
35-52 | 19 | |
ii. | 1-12 | 20 |
13-25 | 21 | |
iii. | 1-21 | 22 |
22-36 | 23 | |
iv. | 1-3 | 24 |
4-42 | 25 | |
43-45 | 26 | |
46-54 | 27 | |
v. | 1-47 | 36 |
vi. | 1-14 | 64 |
15-21 | 65 | |
22-71 | 66 | |
vii. | 1 | 66 |
2-10 | 81 | |
11-53 | 83 | |
viii. | 1 | 83 |
2-11 | 84 | |
12-59 | 85 | |
ix. | 1-41 | 90 |
1-21 | 90 | |
22-42 | 91 | |
xi. | 1-46 | 92 |
47-54 | 93 | |
55-57 | 111 | |
xii. | 1 | 111 |
2-8 | 131 | |
9-11 | 111 | |
12-19 | 112 | |
20-36 | 125 | |
37-50 | 126 | |
xiii. | 1-20 | 134 |
21-35 | 135 | |
36-38 | 136 | |
xiv. | 1-31 | 138 |
xv. | 1-27 | 139 |
xvi. | 1-33 | 140 |
xvii. | 1-26 | 141 |
xviii. | 1 | 142 |
2-12 | 143 | |
13-18 | 144 | |
19-24 | 145 | |
25-27 | 144 | |
28-38 | 146 | |
39-40 | 148 | |
xix. | 1-3 | 149 |
4-16 | 150 | |
16, 17 | 152 | |
18-24 | 153 | |
25-27 | 154 | |
28-30 | 155 | |
31-42 | 157 | |
xx. | 1, 2 | 160 |
3-10 | 163 | |
11-18 | 164 | |
19-23 | 167 | |
24-29 | 168 | |
30, 31 | 173 | |
xxi. | 1-24 | 169 |
25 | 173 |
The arrangement of the Gospels by Dr. Robinson was adopted in this work, it being the latest published in the United States, and by a scholar of the highest reputation. But by comparing his order with that of Archbishop Newcome, as shown in contiguous columns in the Table of Contents and Synopsis of the Harmony, it will be found that they differ only in a very few unimportant particulars, not at all affecting the general scheme or structure of the Harmony, or the purposes of this examination. I have, however, in several places omitted their transposition of the verses of the text, occurring within the limits of a section; it being more convenient to insert them in the order in which they were written by the Evangelists.
The preliminary Dissertation has been revised and enlarged, and some further notes added to the text, which is printed conformably to the common octavo edition of the American Bible Society, except in a few places, where the article a was accidentally printed instead of an, in the words an house, &c.
§ 1. In examining the evidences of the Christian religion, it is essential to the discovery of truth that we bring to the investigation a mind freed, as far as possible, from existing prejudice and open to conviction. There should be a readiness, on our part, to investigate with candour, to follow the truth wherever it may lead us, and to submit, without reserve or objection, to all the teachings of this religion, if it be found to be of divine origin. “There is no other entrance,” says Lord Bacon, “to the kingdom of man, which is founded in the sciences, than to the kingdom of heaven, into which no one can enter but in the character of a little child.”2 The docility which true philosophy requires of her disciples is not a spirit of servility, or the surrender of the reason and judgment to whatsoever the teacher may inculcate; but it is a mind free from all pride of opinion, not hostile to the truth sought for, willing to pursue the inquiry and impartially to weigh the arguments and evidence, and to acquiesce in the judgment of right reason. The investigation, moreover, should be pursued with the serious earnestness which becomes the greatness of the subject—a subject fraught with such momentous consequences to man. It should be pursued as in the presence of God, and under the solemn sanctions created by a lively [pg 002] sense of his omniscience, and of our accountability to him for the right use of the faculties which he has bestowed.
§ 2. In requiring this candour and simplicity of mind in those who would investigate the truth of our religion, Christianity demands nothing more than is readily conceded to every branch of human science. All these have their data, and their axioms; and Christianity, too, has her first principles, the admission of which is essential to any real progress in knowledge. “Christianity,” says Bishop Wilson, “inscribes on the portal of her dominions, ‘Whosoever shall not receive the kingdom of God as a little child, shall in nowise enter therein.’ Christianity does not profess to convince the perverse and headstrong, to bring irresistible evidence to the daring and profane, to vanquish the proud scorner, and afford evidences from which the careless and perverse cannot possibly escape. This might go to destroy man's responsibility. All that Christianity professes, is to propose such evidences as may satisfy the meek, the tractable, the candid, the serious inquirer.”3
§ 3. The present design, however, is not to enter upon any general examination of the evidences of Christianity, but to confine the inquiry to the testimony of the Four Evangelists, bringing their narratives to the tests to which other evidence is subjected in human tribunals. The foundation of our religion is a basis of fact—the fact of the birth, ministry, miracles, death, resurrection, and ascension of Jesus Christ. These are related by the Evangelists as having actually occurred, within their own personal knowledge. Our religion, then, rests on the credit due to these witnesses. Are they worthy of implicit belief, in the matters which they relate? This is the question, in all human tribunals, in regard to persons testifying before them; and we propose to test the veracity of these witnesses, by the same rules and means which are there employed. The importance of the facts testified, and their relations to the affairs of the soul, and the life to come, can make no difference in the principles or the mode of weighing the evidence. It is still the evidence of matters of fact, capable of being seen and known [pg 003] and related, as well by one man as by another. And if the testimony of the Evangelist, supposing it to be relevant and material to the issue in a question of property or of personal right, between man and man, in a court of justice, ought to be believed and have weight; then, upon the like principles, it ought to receive our entire credit here. But if, on the other hand, we should be justified in rejecting it, if there testified on oath, then, supposing our rules of evidence to be sound, we may be excused if we hesitate elsewhere to give it credence.
§ 4. The proof that God has revealed himself to man by special and express communications, and that Christianity constitutes that revelation, is no part of these inquiries. This has already been shown, in the most satisfactory manner, by others, who have written expressly upon this subject.4 Referring therefore to their writings for the arguments and proofs, the fact will here be assumed as true. That man is a religious being, is universally conceded, for it has been seen to be universally true. He is everywhere a worshipper. In every age and country, and in every stage, from the highest intellectual culture to the darkest stupidity, he bows with homage to a superior Being. Be it the rude-carved idol of his own fabrication, or the unseen divinity that stirs within him, it is still the object of his adoration. This trait in the character of man is so uniform, that it may safely be assumed, either as one of the original attributes of his nature, or as necessarily resulting from the action of one or more of those attributes.
§ 5. The object of man's worship, whatever it be, will naturally be his standard of perfection. He clothes it with every attribute, belonging, in his view, to a perfect character; and this character he himself endeavours to attain. He may not, directly and consciously, aim to acquire every virtue of his deity, and to avoid the opposite vices; but still this will be the inevitable consequence of sincere and constant worship. As in human society men become assimilated, both in manners [pg 004] and in moral principles, to their chosen associates, so in the worship of whatever deity men adore, they “form to his the relish of their souls.” To suppose, then, that God made man capable of religion, and requiring it in order to the development of the highest part of his nature, without communicating with him, as a father, in those revelations which alone could perfect that nature, would be a reproach upon God, and a contradiction.5
§ 6. How it came to pass that man, originally taught, as we doubt not he was, to know and to worship the true Jehovah, is found, at so early a period of his history, a worshipper of baser objects, it is foreign to our present purpose to inquire. But the fact is lamentably true, that he soon became an idolater, a worshipper of moral abominations. The Scythians and Northmen adored the impersonations of heroic valour and of bloodthirsty and cruel revenge. The mythology of Greece and of Rome, though it exhibited a few examples of virtue and goodness, abounded in others of gross licentiousness and vice. The gods of Egypt were reptiles, and beasts and birds. The religion of Central and Eastern Asia was polluted with lust and cruelty, and smeared with blood, rioting, in deadly triumph, over all the tender affections of the human heart and all the convictions of the human understanding. Western and Southern Africa and Polynesia are, to this day, the abodes of frightful idolatry, cannibalism, and cruelty; and the aborigines of both the Americas are examples of the depths of superstition to which the human mind may be debased. In every quarter of the world, however, there is a striking uniformity seen, in all the features of paganism. The ruling principle of her religion is terror, and her deity is lewd and cruel. Whatever of purity the earlier forms of paganism may have possessed, it is evident from history that it was of brief duration. Every form, which history has preserved, grew rapidly and steadily worse and more corrupt, until the entire heathen world, before the coming of Christ, was infected with that loathsome leprosy of pollution, described [pg 005] with revolting vividness by St. Paul, in the beginning of his Epistle to the Romans.
§ 7. So general and decided was this proclivity to the worship of strange gods, that, at the time of the deluge, only one family remained faithful to Jehovah; and this was a family which had been favoured with his special revelation. Indeed it is evident that nothing but a revelation from God could raise men from the degradation of pagan idolatry, because nothing else has ever had that effect. If man could achieve his own freedom from this bondage, he would long since have been free. But instead of this, the increase of light and civilization and refinement in the pagan world has but multiplied the objects of his worship, added voluptuous refinements to its ritual, and thus increased the number and weight of his chains. In this respect there is no difference in their moral condition, between the barbarous Scythian and the learned Egyptian or Roman of ancient times, nor between the ignorant African and the polished Hindu of our own day. The only method, which has been successfully employed to deliver man from idolatry, is that of presenting to the eye of his soul an object of worship perfectly holy and pure, directly opposite, in moral character, to the gods he had formerly adored. He could not transfer to his deities a better character than he himself possessed. He must for ever remain enslaved to his idols, unless a new and pure object of worship were revealed to him, with a display of superior power sufficient to overcome his former faith and his present fears, to detach his affections from grosser objects, and to fix them upon that which alone is worthy.6 This is precisely what God, as stated in the Holy Scriptures, has done. He rescued one family from idolatry in the Old World, by the revelation of himself to Noah; he called a distinct branch of this family to the knowledge of himself, in the person of Abraham and his sons; He extended this favour [pg 006] to a whole nation, through the ministry of Moses; but it was through that of Jesus Christ alone that it was communicated to the whole world. In Egypt, by the destruction of all the objects of the popular worship, God taught the Israelites that he alone was the self-existent Almighty. At the Red Sea, he emphatically showed them that He was the Protector and Saviour of his people. At Sinai, he revealed himself as the righteous Governor who required implicit obedience for men, and taught them, by the strongly marked distinctions of the ceremonial law, that he was a holy Being, of purer eyes than to behold evil, and that could not look upon iniquity. The demerit of sin was inculcated by the solemn infliction of death upon every animal, offered as a propitiatory sacrifice. And when, by this system of instruction, he had prepared a people to receive the perfect revelation of the character of God, of the nature of his worship, and of the way of restoration to his image and favour, this also was expressly revealed by the mission of his Son.7
§ 8. That the books of the Old Testament, as we now have them, are genuine; that they existed in the time of our Saviour, and were commonly received and referred to among the Jews, as the sacred books of their religion;8 and that the text of the Four Evangelists has been handed down to us in the state in which it was originally written, that is, without having been materially corrupted or falsified, either by heretics or Christians; are facts which we are entitled to assume as true, until the contrary is shown.
The genuineness of these writings really admits of as little doubt, and is susceptible of as ready proof, as that of any ancient writings whatever. The rule of municipal law on this subject is familiar, and applies with equal force to all ancient writing, whether documentary or otherwise; and as it comes first in order, in the prosecution of these inquiries, it may, for the sake of mere convenience, be designated as our first rule.
[pg 007]§ 9. An ancient document, offered in evidence in our courts, is said to come from the proper repository, when it is found in the place where, and under the care of persons with whom, such writings might naturally and reasonably be expected to be found; for it is this custody which gives authenticity to documents found within it.9 If they come from such a place, and bear no evident marks of forgery, the law presumes that they are genuine, and they are permitted to be read in evidence, unless the opposing party is able successfully to impeach them.10 The burden of showing them to be false and unworthy of credit, is devolved on the party who makes that objection. The presumption of law is the judgment of charity. It presumes that every man is innocent until he is proven guilty; that everything has been done fairly and legally, until it is proved to have been otherwise; and that every document, found in its proper repository, and not bearing marks of forgery, is genuine. Now this is precisely the case with the Sacred Writings. They have been used in the church from time immemorial, and thus are found in the place where alone they ought to be looked for. [pg 008] They come to us, and challenge our reception of them as genuine writings, precisely as Domesday Book, the Ancient Statutes of Wales, or any other of the ancient documents which have recently been published under the British Record Commission, are received. They are found in familiar use in all the churches of Christendom, as the sacred books to which all denominations of Christians refer, as the standard of their faith. There is no pretence that they were engraven on plates of gold and discovered in a cave, nor that they were brought from heaven by angels; but they are received as the plain narratives and writings of the men whose names they respectively bear, made public at the time they were written; and though there are some slight discrepancies among the copies subsequently made, there is no pretence that the originals were anywhere corrupted. If it be objected that the originals are lost, and that copies alone are now produced, the principles of the municipal law here also afford a satisfactory answer. For the multiplication of copies was a public fact, in the faithfulness of which all the Christian community had an interest, and it is a rule of law, that, in matters of public and general interest, all persons must be presumed to be conversant, on the principle that individuals are presumed to be conversant with their own affairs. Therefore it is that, in such matters, the prevailing current of assertion is resorted to as evidence, for it is to this that every member of the community is supposed to be privy.11 The persons, moreover, who multiplied these copies, may be regarded, in some manner, as the agents of the Christian public, for whose use and benefit the copies were made; and on the ground of the credit due to such agents, and of the public nature of the facts themselves, the copies thus made are entitled to an extraordinary degree of confidence, and, as in the case of official registers and other public books, it is not necessary that they should be confirmed and sanctioned by the ordinary tests of truth.12 If any ancient document concerning our public [pg 009] rights were lost, copies which had been as universally received and acted upon as the Four Gospels have been, would have been received in evidence in any of our courts of justice, without the slightest hesitation. The entire text of the Corpus Juris Civilis is received as authority in all the courts of continental Europe, upon much weaker evidence of its genuineness; for the integrity of the Sacred Text has been preserved by the jealousy of opposing sects, beyond any moral possibility of corruption; while that of the Roman Civil Law has been preserved only by tacit consent, without the interest of any opposing school, to watch over and preserve it from alteration.
§ 10. These copies of the Holy Scriptures having thus been in familiar use in the churches, from the time when the text was committed to writing; having been watched with vigilance by so many sects, opposed to each other in doctrine, yet all appealing to these Scriptures for the correctness of their faith; and having in all ages, down to this day, been respected as the authoritative source of all ecclesiastical power and government, and submitted to, and acted under in regard to so many claims of right, on the one hand, and so many obligations of duty, on the other; it is quite erroneous to suppose that the Christian is bound to offer any further proof of their genuineness or authenticity. It is for the objector to show them spurious; for on him, by the plainest rules of law, lies the burden of proof.13 If it were the case of a claim to a franchise, and a copy of an ancient deed or charter were produced in support of the title, under parallel circumstances on which to presume its genuineness, no lawyer, it is believed, would venture to deny either its admissibility in evidence, or the satisfactory character of the proof. In a recent case in the House of Lords, precisely such a document, being an old manuscript copy, purporting to have been extracted [pg 010] from ancient Journals of the House, which were lost, and to have been made by an officer whose duty it was to prepare lists of the Peers, was held admissible in a claim of peerage.14
§ 11. Supposing, therefore, that it is not irrational, nor inconsistent with sound philosophy, to believe that God has made a special and express revelation of his character and will to man, and that the sacred books of our religion are genuine, as we now have them; we proceed to examine and compare the testimony of the Four Evangelists, as witnesses to the life and doctrines of Jesus Christ; in order to determine the degree of credit, to which, by the rules of evidence applied in human tribunals, they are justly entitled. Our attention will naturally be first directed to the witnesses themselves, to see who and what manner of men they were, and we shall take them in the order of their writings; stating the prominent traits only in their lives and characters, as they are handed down to us by credible historians.
§ 12. Matthew, called also Levi, was a Jew of Galilee, but of what city is uncertain. He held the place of publican, or tax-gatherer, under the Roman government, and his office seems to have consisted in collecting the taxes within his district, as well as the duties and customs levied on goods and persons, passing in and out of his district or province, across the lake of Genesareth. While engaged in this business, at the office or usual place of collection, he was required by Jesus to follow him, as one of his disciples; a command which he immediately obeyed. Soon afterwards, he appears to have given a great entertainment to his fellow-publicans and friends, at which Jesus was present; intending probably both to celebrate his own change of profession, and to give them an opportunity to profit by the teaching of his new Master.15 He was constituted one of the twelve apostles, and constantly attended the person of Jesus as a faithful follower, until the crucifixion; and after the ascension of his Master he preached the gospel for [pg 011] some time, with the other apostles, in Judea, and afterwards in Ethiopia, where he died.
He is generally allowed to have written first, of all the evangelists; but whether in the Hebrew or the Greek language, or in both, the learned are not agreed, nor is it material to our purpose to inquire; the genuineness of our present Greek gospel being sustained by satisfactory evidence.16 The precise time when he wrote is also uncertain, the several dates given to it among learned men, varying from a.d. 37 to a.d. 64. The earlier date, however, is argued with greater force, from the improbability that the Christians would be left for several years without a general and authentic history of our Saviour's ministry; from the evident allusions which it contains to a state of persecution in the church at the time it was written; from the titles of sanctity ascribed to Jerusalem, and a higher veneration testified for the temple than is found in the other and later evangelists; from the comparative gentleness with which Herod's character and conduct are dealt with, that bad prince probably being still in power; and from the frequent mention of Pilate, as still governor of Judea.17
§ 13. That Matthew was himself a native Jew, familiar with the opinions, ceremonies, and customs of his countrymen; that he was conversant with the Sacred Writings, and habituated to their idiom; a man of plain sense, but of little learning, except what he derived from the Scriptures of the Old Testament; that he wrote seriously and from conviction, and had, on most occasions, been present, and attended closely, to the transactions which he relates, and relates, too, without any view of applause to himself; are facts which we may consider established by internal evidence, as strong as the nature of the case will admit. It is deemed equally well proved, both by internal evidence and the aid of history, that he wrote for the use of his countrymen the Jews. Every circumstance is noticed which might conciliate their belief, and every unnecessary expression is avoided which might obstruct it. They looked for the Messiah, [pg 012] of the lineage of David, and born in Bethlehem, in the circumstances of whose life the prophecies should find fulfilment, a matter, in their estimation, of peculiar value; and to all these this evangelist has directed their especial attention.18
§ 14. Allusion has been already made to his employment as a collector of taxes and customs; but the subject is too important to be passed over without further notice. The tribute imposed by the Romans upon countries conquered by their arms was enormous. In the time of Pompey, the sums annually exacted from their Asiatic provinces, of which Judea was one, amounted to about four millions and a half sterling, or about twenty-two millions of dollars. These exactions were made in the usual forms of direct and indirect taxation; the rate of the customs on merchandise varying from an eighth to a fortieth part of the value of the commodity; and the tariff including all the principal articles of the commerce of the East, much of which, as is well known, still found its way to Italy through Palestine, as well as by the way of Damascus and of Egypt. The direct taxes consisted of a capitation-tax and a land-tax, assessed upon a valuation or census, periodically taken, under the oath of the individual, with heavy penal sanctions.19 It is natural to suppose that these taxes were not voluntarily paid, especially since they were imposed by the conqueror upon a conquered people, and by a heathen, too, upon the people of the house of Israel. The increase of taxes has generally been found to multiply discontents, evasions and frauds on the one hand, and, on the other, to increase vigilance, suspicion, close scrutiny, and severity of exaction. The penal code, as revised by Theodosius, will give us some notion of the difficulties in the way of the revenue officers, in the earlier times of which we are speaking. These difficulties must have been increased by the fact that, at this period, a considerable portion of the commerce of [pg 013] that part of the world was carried on by the Greeks, whose ingenuity and want of faith were proverbial. It was to such an employment and under such circumstances, that Matthew was educated; an employment which must have made him acquainted with the Greek language, and extensively conversant with the public affairs and the men of business of his time; thus entitling him to our confidence, as an experienced and intelligent observer of events passing before him. And if the men of that day were, as in truth they appear to have been, as much disposed as those of the present time, to evade the payment of public taxes and duties, and to elude, by all possible means, the vigilance of the revenue officers, Matthew must have been familiar with a great variety of the forms of fraud, imposture, cunning, and deception, and must have become habitually distrustful, scrutinizing, and cautious; and, of course, much less likely to have been deceived in regard to many of the facts in our Lord's ministry, extraordinary as they were, which fell under his observation. This circumstance shows both the sincerity and the wisdom of Jesus, in selecting him for an eye-witness of his conduct, and adds great weight to the value of the testimony of this evangelist.
§ 15. Mark was the son of a pious sister of Barnabas, named Mary, who dwelt at Jerusalem, and at whose home the early Christians often assembled. His Hebrew name was John; the surname of Mark having been adopted, as is supposed, when he left Judea to preach the gospel in foreign countries; a practice not unusual among the Jews of that age, who frequently, upon such occasions, assumed a name more familiar than their own to the people whom they visited. He is supposed to have been converted to the Christian faith by the ministry of Peter. He travelled from Jerusalem to Antioch with Paul and Barnabas, and afterwards accompanied them elsewhere. When they landed at Perga in Pamphylia, he left them and returned to Jerusalem; for which reason, when he afterwards would have gone with them, Paul refused to take him. Upon this, a difference of opinion arose between the two apostles, and they separated, Barnabas taking Mark with him to Cyprus. Subsequently he accompanied Timothy to Rome, at the express desire of Paul. [pg 014] From this city he probably went into Asia, where he found Peter, with whom he returned to Rome, in which city he is supposed to have written and published his Gospel. Such is the outline of his history, as it is furnished by the New Testament.20 The early historians add, that after this he went into Egypt and planted a church in Alexandria, where he died.21
§ 16. It is agreed that Mark wrote his Gospel for the use of Gentile converts; an opinion deriving great force from the explanations introduced into it, which would have been useless to a Jew;22 and that it was composed for those at Rome, is believed, not only from the numerous Latinisms it contains, but from the unanimous testimony of ancient writers, and from the internal evidence afforded by the Gospel itself.
§ 17. Some have entertained the opinion that Mark compiled his account from that of Matthew, of which they supposed it an abridgment. But this notion has been refuted by Koppe, and others,23 and is now generally regarded as untenable. For Mark frequently deviates from Matthew in the order of time, in his arrangement of facts; and he adds many things not related by the other evangelists; neither of which a mere epitomizer would probably have done. He also omits several things related by Matthew, and imperfectly describes others, especially the transactions of Christ with the apostles after the resurrection; giving no account whatever of his appearance in Galilee; omissions irreconcilable with any previous knowledge of the Gospel according to Matthew. To these proofs we may add, that in several places there are discrepancies between the accounts of Matthew and Mark, not, indeed, irreconcilable, but sufficient to destroy the probability that the latter copied from the former.24 The striking coincidences between them, in style, words, and things, in other places, may be accounted for by considering that Peter, who is supposed to have dictated this [pg 015] Gospel to Mark, was quite as intimately acquainted as Matthew with the miracles and discourses of our Lord; which, therefore, he would naturally recite in his preaching; and that the same things might very naturally be related in the same manner, by men who sought not after excellency of speech. Peter's agency in the narrative of Mark is asserted by all ancient writers, and is confirmed by the fact, that his humility is conspicuous in every part of it, where anything is or might be related of him; his weaknesses and fall being fully exposed, while things which might redound to his honour, are either omitted or but slightly mentioned; that scarcely any transaction of Jesus is related, at which Peter was not present, and that all are related with that circumstantial minuteness which belongs to the testimony of an eye-witness.25 We may, therefore, regard the Gospel of Mark as an original composition, written at the dictation of Peter, and consequently as another original narrative of the life, miracles, and doctrines of our Lord.
§ 18. Luke, according to Eusebius, was a native of Antioch, by profession a physician, and for a considerable period a companion of the apostle Paul. From the casual notices of him in the Scriptures, and from the early Christian writers, it has been collected, that his parents were Gentiles, but that he in his youth embraced Judaism, from which he was converted to Christianity. The first mention of him is that he was with Paul at Troas;26 whence he appears to have attended him to Jerusalem; continued with him in all his troubles in Judea; and sailed with him when he was sent a prisoner from Cæsarea to Rome, where he remained with him during his two years' confinement. As none of the ancient fathers have mentioned his having suffered martyrdom, it is generally supposed that he died a natural death.
§ 19. That he wrote his Gospel for the benefit of Gentile converts is affirmed by the unanimous voice of Christian antiquity; and it may also be inferred from its dedication to a Gentile. He is particularly careful to specify various circumstances [pg 016] conducive to the information of strangers, but not so to the Jews; he gives the lineage of Jesus upwards, after the manner of the Gentiles, instead of downwards, as Matthew had done; tracing it up to Adam, and thus showing that Jesus was the promised seed of the woman; and he marks the eras of his birth, and of the ministry of John, by the reigns of the Roman emperors. He also has introduced several things, not mentioned by the other evangelists, but highly encouraging to the Gentiles to turn to God in the hope of pardon and acceptance; of which description are the parables of the publican and pharisee, in the temple; the lost piece of silver; and the prodigal son; and the fact of Christ's visit to Zaccheus the publican, and the pardon of the penitent thief.
§ 20. That Luke was a physician, appears not only from the testimony of Paul,27 but from the internal marks in his Gospel, showing that he was both an acute observer, and had given particular and even professional attention to all our Saviour's miracles of healing. Thus, the man whom Matthew and Mark describe simply as a leper, Luke describes as full of leprosy;28 he, whom they mention as having a withered hand, Luke says had his right hand withered;29 and of the maid, of whom the others say that Jesus took her by the hand and she arose, he adds, that her spirit came to her again.30 He alone, with professional accuracy of observation, says that virtue went out of Jesus, and healed the sick;31 he alone states the fact that the sleep of the disciples in Gethsemane was induced by extreme sorrow; and mentions the blood-like sweat of Jesus, as occasioned by the intensity of his agony; and he alone relates the miraculous healing of Malchus's ear.32 That he was also a man of a liberal education, the comparative elegance of his writings sufficiently show.33
§ 21. The design of Luke's Gospel was to supersede the [pg 017] defective and inaccurate narratives then in circulation, and to deliver to Theophilus, to whom it is addressed, a full and authentic account of the life, doctrines, miracles, death and resurrection of our Saviour. Who Theophilus was, the learned are not perfectly agreed; but the most probable opinion is that of Dr. Lardner, now generally adopted, that, as Luke wrote his Gospel in Greece, Theophilus was a man of rank in that country.34 Either the relations subsisting between him and Luke, or the dignity and power of his rank, or both, induced the evangelist, who himself also “had perfect understanding of all things from the first,” to devote the utmost care to the drawing up of a complete and authentic narrative of these great events. He does not affirm himself to have been an eye-witness; though his personal knowledge of some of the transactions may well be inferred from the “perfect understanding” which he says he possessed. Some of the learned seem to have drawn this inference as to them all, and to have placed him in the class of original witnesses; but this opinion, though maintained on strong and plausible grounds, is not generally adopted. If, then, he did not write from his own personal knowledge, the question is, what is the legal character of his testimony?
§ 22. If it were “the result of inquiries, made under competent public authority, concerning matters in which the public are concerned”35 it would possess every legal attribute of an inquisition, and, as such, would be legally admissible in evidence, in a court of justice. To entitle such results, however, to our full confidence, it is not necessary that they should be obtained under a legal commission; it is sufficient if the inquiry is gravely undertaken and pursued, by a person of competent intelligence, sagacity and integrity. The request of a person in authority, or a desire to serve the public, are, to all moral intents, as sufficient a motive as a legal commission.36 Thus, [pg 018] we know that when complaint is made to the head of a department, of official misconduct or abuse, existing in some remote quarter, nothing is more common than to send some confidential person to the spot, to ascertain the facts and report them to the department; and this report is confidently adopted as the basis of its discretionary action, in the correction of the abuse, or the removal of the offender. Indeed, the result of any grave inquiry is equally certain to receive our confidence, though it may have been voluntarily undertaken, if the party making it had access to the means of complete and satisfactory information upon the subject.37 If, therefore, Luke's Gospel were to be regarded only as the work of a contemporary historian, it would be entitled to our confidence. But it is more than this. It is the result of careful inquiry and examination, made by a person of science, intelligence and education, concerning subjects which he was perfectly competent to investigate, and as to many of which he was peculiarly skilled, they being cases of the cure of maladies; subjects, too, of which he already had the perfect knowledge of a contemporary, and perhaps an eye-witness, but beyond doubt, familiar with the parties concerned in the transactions, and belonging to the community in which the events transpired, which were in the mouths of all; and the narrative, moreover, drawn up for the especial use, and probably at the request, of a man of distinction, whom it would not be for the interest nor safety of the writer to deceive or mislead. Such a document certainly possesses all the moral attributes of an inquest of office, or of any other official investigation of facts; and [pg 019] as such is entitled, in foro conscientiæ, to be adduced as original, competent and satisfactory evidence of the matters it contains.
§ 23. John, the last of the evangelists, was the son of Zebedee, a fisherman of the town of Bethsaida, on the sea of Galilee. His father appears to have been a respectable man in his calling, owning his vessel and having hired servants.38 His mother, too, was among those who followed Jesus and “ministered unto him39;” and to John himself, Jesus, when on the cross, confided the care and support of his own mother.40 This disciple also seems to have been favourably known to the high priest, and to have influence in his family; by means of which he had the privilege of being present in his palace at the examination of his Master, and of introducing also Peter, his friend.41 He was the youngest of the apostles, was eminently the object of our Lord's regard and confidence; was on various occasions admitted to free and intimate intercourse with him; and is described as “the disciple whom Jesus loved.”42 Hence he was present at several scenes, to which most of the others were not admitted. He alone, in company with Peter and James, was present at the resurrection of Jairus's daughter, at the transfiguration on the mount, and at the agony of our Saviour in the garden of Gethsemane.43 He was the only apostle who followed Jesus to the cross, he was the first of them at the sepulchre, and he was present at the several appearances of our Lord after his resurrection. These circumstances, together with his intimate friendship with the mother of Jesus, especially qualify him to give a circumstantial and authentic account of the life of his Master. After the ascension of Christ, and the effusion of the Holy Spirit on the day of Pentecost, John became one of the chief apostles of the circumcision, exercising his ministry in and near Jerusalem. From ecclesiastical history we learn that, after the death of Mary the mother of Jesus, he proceeded to Asia Minor, where he founded and presided over seven churches, in as many cities, but resided chiefly at [pg 020] Ephesus. Thence he was banished, in Domitian's reign, to the isle of Patmos, where he wrote his Revelation. On the accession of Nerva he was freed from exile, and returned to Ephesus, where he wrote his Gospel and Epistles, and died at the age of one hundred years, about A.D. 100, in the third year of the emperor Trajan.44
§ 24. The learned are not agreed as to the time when the Gospel of John was written, some dating it as early as the year 68, others as late as the year 98; but it is generally conceded to have been written after all the others. That it could not have been the work of some Platonic Christian of a subsequent age, as some have without evidence asserted, is manifest from references to it by some of the early fathers, and from the concurring testimony of many other writers of the ancient Christian church.45
§ 25. That it was written either with especial reference to the Gentiles, or at a period when very many of them had become converts to Christianity, is inferred from the various explanations it contains, beyond the other Gospels, which could have been necessary only to persons unacquainted with Jewish names and customs.46 And that it was written after all the others, and to supply their omissions, is concluded, not only from the uniform tradition and belief in the church, but from his studied omission of most of the transactions noticed by the others, and from his care to mention several incidents which they have not recorded. That their narratives were known to him, is too evident to admit of doubt; while his omission to repeat what they had already stated, or, where he does mention the same things, his relating them in a brief and cursory manner, affords incidental but strong testimony that he regarded their accounts as faithful and true.47
§ 26. Such are the brief histories of the men, whose narratives we are to examine and compare; conducting the examination and weighing the testimony by the same rules and principles [pg 021] which govern our tribunals of justice in similar cases. These tribunals are in such cases governed by the following fundamental rule:—
It should be observed that the subject of inquiry is matter of fact, and not of abstract mathematical truth. The latter alone is susceptible of that high degree of proof, usually termed demonstration, which excludes the possibility of error, and which therefore may reasonably be required in support of every mathematical deduction. But the proof of matters of fact rests upon moral evidence alone; by which is meant not merely that species of evidence which is employed in cases respecting moral conduct, but all the evidence which we do not obtain either from our own senses, from intuition, or from demonstration. In the ordinary affairs of life we do not require nor expect demonstrative evidence, because it is inconsistent with the nature of matters of fact, and to insist on its production would be unreasonable and absurd. And it makes no difference, whether the facts to be proved relate to this life or to the next, the nature of the evidence required being in both cases the same. The error of the sceptic consists in pretending or supposing that there is a difference in the nature of the evidence, where there is no difference in the nature of the things to be proved; and in demanding demonstrative evidence concerning things which are not susceptible of any other than moral evidence alone, and of which the utmost that can be said is that there is no reasonable doubt of their truth.48
§ 27. In proceeding to weigh the evidence of any proposition of fact, the previous question to be determined is, when may it be said to be proved? The answer to this question is furnished by another rule of municipal law, which may be thus stated:—
By competent evidence, is meant such as the nature of the [pg 022] thing to be proved requires; and by satisfactory evidence, is meant that amount of proof, which ordinarily satisfies an unprejudiced mind, beyond any reasonable doubt. The circumstances which will amount to this degree of proof can never be previously defined; the only legal test to which they can be subjected is, their sufficiency to satisfy the mind and conscience of a man of common prudence and discretion, and so to convince him, that he would venture to act upon that conviction in matters of the highest concern and importance to his own interest.49 If, therefore, the subject is a problem in mathematics, its truth is to be shown by the certainty of demonstrative evidence. But if it is a question of fact in human affairs, nothing more than moral evidence can be required, for this is the best evidence which, from the nature of the case, is attainable. Now as the facts, stated in Scripture History, are not of the former kind, but are cognizable by the senses, they may be said to be proved when they are established by that kind and degree of evidence which, as we have just observed, would, in the affairs of human life, satisfy the mind and conscience of a common man. When we have this degree of evidence, it is unreasonable to require more. A juror would violate his oath, if he should refuse to acquit or condemn a person charged with an offence, where this measure of proof was adduced.
§ 28. Proceeding further, to inquire whether the facts related by the Four Evangelists are proved by competent and satisfactory evidence, we are led, first, to consider on which side lies the burden of establishing the credibility of the witnesses. On this point the municipal law furnishes a rule, which is of constant application in all trials by jury, and is indeed the dictate of that charity which thinketh no evil.
This rule serves to show the injustice with which the writers of the Gospels have ever been treated by infidels; an injustice silently acquiesced in even by Christians; in requiring the Christian affirmatively, and by positive evidence, aliunde, to establish the credibility of his witnesses above all others, before their testimony is entitled to be considered, and in permitting the testimony of a single profane writer, alone and uncorroborated, to outweigh that of any single Christian. This is not the course in courts of chancery, where the testimony of a single witness is never permitted to outweigh the oath even of the defendant himself, interested as he is in the cause; but, on the contrary, if the plaintiff, after having required the oath of his adversary, cannot overthrow it by something more than the oath of one witness, however credible, it must stand as evidence against him. But the Christian writer seems, by the usual course of the argument, to have been deprived of the common presumption of charity in his favour; and reversing the ordinary rule of administering justice in human tribunals, his testimony is unjustly presumed to be false, until it is proved to be true. This treatment moreover, has been applied to them all in a body; and, without due regard to the fact, that, being independent historians, writing at different periods, they are entitled to the support of each other: they have been treated, in the argument, almost as if the New Testament were the entire production, at once, of a body of men, conspiring by a joint fabrication, to impose a false religion upon the world. It is time that this injustice should cease, that the testimony of the evangelists should be admitted to be true, until it can be disproved by those who would impugn it; that the silence of one sacred writer on any point, should no more detract from his own veracity or that of the other historians, than the like circumstance is permitted to do among profane writers; and that the Four Evangelists should be admitted in corroboration of each other, as readily as Josephus and Tacitus, or Polybius and Livy.51
[pg 024]§ 29. But if the burden of establishing the credibility of the evangelists were devolved on those who affirm the truth of their narratives, it is still capable of a ready moral demonstration, when we consider the nature and character of the testimony, and the essential marks of difference between true narratives of facts and the creations of falsehood. It is universally admitted that the credit to be given to witnesses depends [pg 025] chiefly on their ability to discern and comprehend what was before them, their opportunities for observation, the degree of accuracy with which they are accustomed to mark passing events, and their integrity in relating them. The rule of municipal law on this subject embraces all these particulars, and is thus stated by a legal text-writer of the highest repute.
Let the evangelists be tried by these tests.
§ 30. And first, as to their honesty. Here they are entitled to the benefit of the general course of human experience, that men ordinarily speak the truth, when they have no prevailing motive or inducement to the contrary. This presumption, to which we have before alluded, is applied in courts of justice, even to witnesses whose integrity is not wholly free from suspicion; much more is it applicable to the evangelists, whose testimony went against all their worldly interests. The great truths which the apostles declared, were, that Christ had risen from the dead, and that only through repentance from sin, and faith in him, could men hope for salvation. This doctrine they asserted with one voice, everywhere, not only under the greatest discouragements, but in the face of the most appalling terrors that can be presented to the mind of man. Their master had recently perished as a malefactor, by the sentence of a public tribunal. His religion sought to overthrow the religions of the whole world. The laws of every country were against the teachings of his disciples. The interests and passions of all the rulers and great men in the world were against them. The fashion of the world was against them. Propagating this new faith, even in the most inoffensive and peaceful manner, they could expect nothing but contempt, opposition, revilings, bitter persecutions, stripes, imprisonments, torments and cruel deaths. Yet this faith they zealously did propagate; and all these [pg 026] miseries they endured undismayed, nay, rejoicing. As one after another was put to a miserable death, the survivors only prosecuted their work with increased vigour and resolution. The annals of military warfare afford scarcely an example of the like heroic constancy, patience and unblenching courage. They had every possible motive to review carefully the grounds of their faith, and the evidences of the great facts and truths which they asserted; and these motives were pressed upon their attention with the most melancholy and terrific frequency. It was therefore impossible that they could have persisted in affirming the truths they have narrated, had not Jesus actually risen from the dead, and had they not known this fact as certainly as they knew any other fact.53 If it were morally possible for them to have been deceived in this matter, every human motive operated to lead them to discover and avow their error. To have persisted in so gross a falsehood, after it was known to them, was not only to encounter, for life, all the evils which man could inflict, from without, but to endure also the pangs of inward and conscious guilt, with no hope of future peace, no testimony of a good conscience, no expectation of honour or esteem among men, no hope of happiness in this life, or in the world to come.
§ 31. Such conduct in the apostles would moreover have been utterly irreconcilable with the fact, that they possessed the ordinary constitution of our common nature. Yet their lives do show them to have been men like all others of our race; swayed by the same motives, animated by the same hopes, affected by the same joys, subdued by the same sorrows, agitated by the same fears, and subject to the same passions, temptations and infirmities, as ourselves. And their writings show them to have been men of vigorous understandings. If [pg 027] then their testimony was not true, there was no possible motive for its fabrication.
§ 32. It would also have been irreconcilable with the fact that they were good men. But it is impossible to read their writings, and not feel that we are conversing with men eminently holy, and of tender consciences, with men acting under an abiding sense of the presence and omniscience of God, and of their accountability to him, living in his fear, and walking in his ways. Now, though, in a single instance, a good man may fall, when under strong temptations, yet he is not found persisting, for years, in deliberate falsehood, asserted with the most solemn appeals to God, without the slightest temptation or motive, and against all the opposing interests which reign in the human breast. If, on the contrary, they are supposed to have been bad men, it is incredible that such men should have chosen this form of imposture; enjoining, as it does, unfeigned repentance, the utter forsaking and abhorrence of all falsehood and of every other sin, the practice of daily self-denial, self-abasement and self-sacrifice, the crucifixion of the flesh with all its earthly appetites and desires, indifference to the honours, and hearty contempt of the vanities of the world; and inculcating perfect purity of heart and life, and intercourse of the soul with heaven. It is incredible, that bad men should invent falsehoods, to promote the religion of the God of truth. The supposition is suicidal. If they did believe in a future state of retribution, a heaven and a hell hereafter, they took the most certain course, if false witnesses, to secure the latter for their portion. And if, still being bad men, they did not believe in future punishment, how came they to invent falsehoods, the direct and certain tendency of which was to destroy all their prospects of worldly honour and happiness, and to ensure their misery in this life? From these absurdities there is no escape, but in the perfect conviction and admission that they were good men, testifying to that which they had carefully observed and considered, and well knew to be true.54
[pg 028]§ 33. In the second place, as to their ability. The text writer before cited observes, that the ability of a witness to speak the truth, depends on the opportunities which he has had for observing the fact, the accuracy of his powers of discerning, and the faithfulness of his memory in retaining the facts, once observed and known.55 Of the latter trait, in these witnesses, we of course know nothing; nor have we any traditionary information in regard to the accuracy of their powers of discerning. But we may well suppose that in these respects they were like the generality of their countrymen, until the contrary is shown by an objector. It is always to be presumed that men are honest, and of sound mind, and of the average and ordinary degree of intelligence. This is not the judgment of mere charity; it is also the uniform presumption of the law of the land; a presumption which is always allowed freely and fully to operate, until the fact is shown to be otherwise, by the party who denies the applicability of this presumption to the particular case in question. Whenever an objection is raised in opposition to the ordinary presumptions of law, or to the ordinary experience of mankind, the burden of proof is devolved on the objector, by the common and ordinary rules of evidence, and of practice in courts. No lawyer is permitted to argue in disparagement of the intelligence or integrity of a witness, against whom the case itself afforded no particle of testimony. This is sufficient for our purpose, in regard to these witnesses. But more than this is evident, from the minuteness of their narratives, and from their history. Matthew was trained, by his calling, to habits of severe investigation and suspicious scrutiny; and Luke's profession demanded an exactness of observation equally close and searching. The other two evangelists, it has been well remarked, were as much too unlearned to forge the story of their Master's life, as these were too learned and acute to be deceived by imposture.
§ 34. In the third place, as to their number and the consistency of their testimony. The character of their narratives is like that of all other true witnesses, containing, as Dr. Paley observes, substantial truth, under circumstantial variety. There [pg 029] is enough of discrepancy to show that there could have been no previous concert among them; and at the same time such substantial agreement as to show that they all were independent narrators of the same great transaction, as the events actually occurred. That they conspired to impose falsehood upon the world is, moreover, utterly inconsistent with the supposition that they were honest men; a fact, to the proofs of which we have already adverted. But if they were bad men, still the idea of any conspiracy among them is negatived, not only by the discrepancies alluded to, but by many other circumstances which will be mentioned hereafter; from all which, it is manifest that if they concerted a false story, they sought its accomplishment by a mode quite the opposite to that which all others are found to pursue, to attain the same end. On this point the profound remark of an eminent writer is to our purpose; that “in a number of concurrent testimonies, where there has been no previous concert, there is a probability distinct from that which may be termed the sum of the probabilities resulting from the testimonies of the witnesses, a probability which would remain, even though the witnesses were of such a character as to merit no faith at all. This probability arises from the concurrence itself. That such a concurrence should spring from chance, is as one to infinite; that is, in other words, morally impossible. If therefore concert be excluded, there remains no cause but the reality of the fact.”56
§ 35. The discrepancies between the narratives of the several evangelists, when carefully examined, will not be found sufficient to invalidate their testimony. Many seeming contradictions will prove, upon closer scrutiny, to be in substantial agreement; and it may be confidently asserted that there are none that will not yield, under fair and just criticism. If these different accounts of the same transactions were in strict verbal conformity with each other, the argument against their credibility would be much stronger. All that is asked for these witnesses is, that their testimony may be regarded as we regard the testimony of men in the ordinary affairs of life. This they are [pg 030] justly entitled to; and this no honourable adversary can refuse. We might, indeed, take higher ground than this, and confidently claim for them the severest scrutiny; but our present purpose is merely to try their veracity by the ordinary tests of truth, admitted in human tribunals.
§ 36. If the evidence of the evangelists is to be rejected because of a few discrepancies among them, we shall be obliged to discard that of many of the contemporaneous histories on which we are accustomed to rely. Dr. Paley has noticed the contradiction between Lord Clarendon and Burnett and others in regard to Lord Strafford's execution; the former stating that he was condemned to be hanged, which was done on the same day; and the latter all relating that on a Saturday he was sentenced to the block, and was beheaded on the following Monday. Another striking instance of discrepancy has since occurred, in the narratives of the different members of the royal family of France, of their flight from Paris to Varennes, in 1792. These narratives, ten in number, and by eye-witnesses and personal actors in the transactions they relate, contradict each other, some on trivial and some on more essential points, but in every case in a wonderful and inexplicable manner.57 Yet these contradictions do not, in the general public estimation, detract from the integrity of the narrators, nor from the credibility of their relations. In the points in which they agree, and which constitute the great [pg 031] body of their narratives, their testimony is of course not doubted; where they differ, we reconcile them as well as we may; and where this cannot be done at all, we follow that light which seems to us the clearest. Upon the principles of the sceptic, we should be bound utterly to disbelieve them all. On the contrary, we apply to such cases the rules which, in daily experience, our judges instruct juries to apply, in weighing and reconciling the testimony of different witnesses; and which the courts themselves observe, in comparing and reconciling different and sometimes discordant reports of the same decisions. This remark applies especially to some alleged discrepancies in the reports which the several evangelists have given of the same discourses of our Lord.58
[pg 032]§ 37. In the fourth place, as to the conformity of their testimony with experience. The title of the evangelists to full credit for veracity would be readily conceded by the objector, if the facts they relate were such as ordinarily occur in human experience. But they also relate events which were miraculous, or out of the ordinary course of human experience, and on this circumstance an argument is founded against their credibility. Miracles, say the objectors, are impossible; and therefore the evangelists were either deceivers or deceived; and in either case their narratives are unworthy of belief. Spinosa's argument against the possibility of miracles, was founded on the broad and bold assumption that all things are governed by immutable laws, or fixed modes of motion and relation, termed the laws of nature, by which God himself is of necessity bound. This erroneous assumption is the tortoise, on which stands the elephant that upholds his system of atheism. He does not inform us who made these immutable laws, nor whence they derive their binding force and irresistible operation. The argument supposes that the creator of all things first made a code of laws, and then put it out of his own power to change them. The scheme of Mr. Hume is but another form of the same error. He deduces the existence of such immutable laws from the uniform course of human experience. This, he affirms, is our only guide in reasoning concerning matters of fact; and whatever is contrary to human experience, he pronounces incredible.59 Without stopping to examine the correctness of [pg 033] this doctrine, as a fundamental principle in the law of evidence, it is sufficient in this place to remark, that is contains this [pg 034] fallacy; it excludes all knowledge derived by inference or deduction from facts, confining us to what we derive from [pg 035] experience alone, and thus depriving us of any knowledge, or even rational belief, of the existence or character of God. Nay more, it goes to prove that successive generations of men can make no advancement in knowledge, but each must begin de novo, and be limited to the results of its own experience. [pg 036] But if we may infer, from what we see and know, that there is a Supreme Being, by whom this world was created, we may certainly, and with equal reason, believe him capable of works which we have never yet known him to perform. We may fairly conclude that the power which was originally put forth to create the world is still constantly and without ceasing exerted to sustain it; and that the experienced connexion between cause and effect is but the uniform and constantly active operation of the finger of God. Whether this uniformity of operation extends to things beyond the limits of our observation, is a point we cannot certainly know. Its existence in all things that ordinarily concern us may be supposed to be ordained as conducive to our happiness; and if the belief in a revelation of peace and mercy from God is conducive to the happiness of man, it is not irrational to suppose that he would depart from his ordinary course of action, in order to give it such attestations as should tend to secure that belief. “A miracle is improbable, when we can perceive no sufficient cause, in reference to his creatures, why the Deity should vary his modes of operation; it ceases to be so, when such cause is assigned.”60
§ 38. But the full discussion of the subject of miracles forms no part of the present design. Their credibility has been fully established, and the objections of sceptics most satisfactorily met and overthrown, by the ablest writers of our own day, whose works are easily accessible.61 Thus much, however, may [pg 037] here be remarked; that in almost every miracle related by the evangelists, the facts, separately taken, were plain, intelligible, transpiring in public, and about which no person of ordinary observation would be likely to mistake. Persons blind or crippled, who applied to Jesus for relief, were known to have been crippled or blind for many years; they came to be cured; he spake to them; they went away whole. Lazarus had been dead and buried four days; Jesus called him to come forth from the grave; he immediately came forth, and was seen alive for a long time afterwards. In every case of healing, the previous condition of the sufferer was known to all; all saw his instantaneous restoration, and all witnessed the act of Jesus in touching him, and heard his words.62 All these, separately considered, were facts, plain and simple in their nature, easily seen and fully comprehended by persons of common capacity and observation. If they were separately testified to, by different witnesses of ordinary intelligence and integrity, in any court of justice, the jury would be bound to believe them; and a verdict, rendered contrary to the uncontradicted testimony of credible witnesses to any one of these plain facts, separately taken, would be liable to be set aside, as a verdict against evidence. If one credible witness testified to the fact, that Bartimeus was blind, according to the uniform course of administering justice, this fact would be taken as satisfactorily proved. So also, if his subsequent restoration to sight were the sole fact in question, this also would be deemed established, by the like evidence. Nor would the rule of evidence be at all different, if the fact to be proved were the declaration of Jesus, immediately preceding his restoration to sight, that his faith had made him whole. In each of these cases, each isolated fact was capable of being accurately observed, and certainly known; and the evidence demands our assent, precisely as the like evidence upon any other indifferent subject. The connexion of the word or the act of Jesus with the restoration of the blind, lame and dead, to sight, and health, [pg 038] and life, as cause and effect, is a conclusion which our reason is compelled to admit, from the uniformity of their concurrence, in such a multitude of instances, as well as from the universal conviction of all, whether friends or foes, who beheld the miracles which he wrought. Indeed, if the truth of one of the miracles is satisfactorily established, our belief cannot reasonably be withheld from them all. This is the issue proposed by Dr. Paley, in regard to the evidence of the death of Jesus upon the cross, and his subsequent resurrection, the truth of which he has established in an argument, incapable of refutation.
§ 39. In the fifth place, as to the coincidence of their testimony with collateral and contemporaneous facts and circumstances. After a witness is dead, and his moral character is forgotten, we can ascertain it only by a close inspection of his narrative, comparing its details with each other, and with contemporary accounts and collateral facts. This test is much more accurate than may at first be supposed. Every event which actually transpires, has its appropriate relation and place in the vast complication of circumstances, of which the affairs of men consist; it owes its origin to the events which have preceded it, is intimately connected with all others which occur at the same time and place, and often with those of remote regions, and in its turn gives birth to numberless others which succeed. In all this almost inconceivable contexture, and seeming discord, there is perfect harmony; and while the fact, which really happened, tallies exactly with every other contemporaneous incident, related to it in the remotest degree, it is not possible for the wit of man to invent a story, which, if closely compared with the actual occurrences of the same time and place, may not be shown to be false.63 Hence it is, that a false witness will not willingly detail any circumstances, in which his testimony will be open to contradiction, nor multiply them where there is danger of his being detected by a comparison of them with other accounts, equally circumstantial. He will rather deal in general statements and broad assertions, and if he finds it necessary for his purpose to employ names and particular circumstances [pg 039] in his story, he will endeavor to invent such as shall be out of the reach of all opposing proof; and will be the most forward and minute in details, where he knows that any danger of contradiction is least to be apprehended.64 Therefore it is, that variety and minuteness of detail are usually regarded as certain tests of sincerity, if the story, in the circumstances related, is of a nature capable of easy refutation if it were false.
§ 40. The difference, in the detail of circumstances, between artful or false witnesses and those who testify the truth, is worthy of especial observation. The former are often copious and even profuse in their statements, as far as these may have been previously fabricated, and in relation to the principal matter; but beyond this, all will be reserved and meagre, from the fear of detection. Every lawyer knows how lightly the evidence of a non-mi-recordo witness is esteemed. The testimony of false witnesses will not be uniform in its texture, but will be unequal, unnatural, and inconsistent. On the contrary, in the testimony of true witnesses there is a visible and striking naturalness of manner, and an unaffected readiness and copiousness in the detail of circumstances, as well in one part of the narrative as another, and evidently without the least regard either to the facility or difficulty of verification or detection.65 It is easier, therefore, to make out the proof of any fact, if proof it may be called, by suborning one or more false witnesses, to testify directly to the matter in question, than to procure an equal number to testify falsely to such collateral and separate circumstances as will, without greater danger of detection, lead to the same false result. The increased number of witnesses to circumstances, and the increased number of the circumstances themselves, all tend to increase the probability of detection if the witnesses are false, because thereby the points are multiplied in which their statements may be compared with each other, as well as with the truth itself, and in the same proportion is increased the danger of variance and inconsistency.66 [pg 040] Thus the force of circumstantial evidence is found to depend on the number of particulars involved in the narrative; the difficulty of fabricating them all, if false, and the great facility of detection; the nature of the circumstances to be compared, and from which the dates and other facts are to be collected; the intricacy of the comparison; the number of the intermediate steps in the process of deduction; and the circuity of the investigation. The more largely the narrative partakes of these characters, the further it will be found removed from all suspicion of contrivance or design, and the more profoundly the mind will repose on the conviction of its truth.
§ 41. The narratives of the sacred writers, both Jewish and Christian, abound in examples of this kind of evidence, the value of which is hardly capable of being properly estimated. It does not, as has been already remarked, amount to mathematical demonstration; nor is this degree of proof justly demandable in any question of moral conduct. In all human transactions, the highest degree of assurance to which we can arrive, short of the evidence of our own senses, is that of probability. The most that can be asserted is, that the narrative is more likely to be true than false; and it may be in the highest degree more likely, but still be short of absolute mathematical certainty. Yet this very probability may be so great as to satisfy the mind of the most cautious, and enforce the assent of the most reluctant and unbelieving. If it is such as usually satisfies reasonable men, in matters of ordinary transaction, it is all which the greatest sceptic has a right to require; for it is by such evidence alone that our rights are determined, in the civil tribunals; and on no other evidence do they proceed, even in capital cases. Thus, where a house had been feloniously broken open with a knife, the blade of which was broken and left in the window, and the mutilated knife itself, the parts perfectly agreeing, was found in the pocket of the accused, who gave no satisfactory explanation of the fact, no reasonable doubt remained of his participation in the crime. And where a murder had been committed by shooting with a pistol, and the prisoner was connected with the transaction by proof that the wadding of the pistol was part of a letter addressed to him, the remainder of [pg 041] which was found upon his person, no juror's conscience could have reproached him for assenting to the verdict of condemnation.67 Yet the evidence, in both cases, is but the evidence of circumstances; amounting, it is true, to the highest degree of probability, but yet not utterly inconsistent with the innocence of the accused. The evidence which we have of the great facts of the Bible history belongs to this class, that is, it is moral evidence; sufficient to satisfy any rational mind, by carrying it to the highest degree of moral certainty. If such evidence will justify the taking away of human life or liberty, in the one case, surely it ought to be deemed sufficient to determine our faith in the other.
§ 42. All that Christianity asks of men on this subject, is, that they would be consistent with themselves; that they would treat its evidences as they treat the evidence of other things; and that they would try and judge its actors and witnesses, as they deal with their fellow-men, when testifying to human affairs and actions, in human tribunals. Let the witnesses be compared with themselves, with each other, and with surrounding facts and circumstances; and let their testimony be sifted, as if it were given in a court of justice, on the side of the adverse party, the witnesses being subjected to a rigorous cross-examination. The result, it is confidently believed, will be an undoubting conviction of their integrity, ability, and truth. In the course of such an examination, the undesigned coincidences will multiply upon us at every step in our progress; the probability of the veracity of the witnesses and of the reality of the occurrences which they relate will increase, until it acquires, for all practical purposes, the value and force of demonstration.
§ 43. It should be remembered, that very little of the literature of their times and country has come down to us; and that the collateral sources and means of corroborating and explaining their writings are proportionally limited. The contemporary writings and works of art which have reached us, have invariably been found to confirm their accounts, to reconcile what was apparently contradictory, and supply what seemed defective or [pg 042] imperfect. We ought therefore to conclude, that if we had more of the same light, all other similar difficulties and imperfections would vanish. Indeed they have been gradually vanishing, and rapidly too, before the light of modern research, conducted by men of science in our own times. And it is worthy of remark, that of all the investigations and discoveries of travellers and men of letters, since the overthrow of the Roman empire, not a vestige of antiquity has been found, impeaching, in the slightest degree, the credibility of the sacred writers; but, on the contrary, every result has tended to confirm it.
§ 44. The essential marks of difference between true narratives of facts and the creations of fiction, have already been adverted to. It may here be added that these attributes of truth are strikingly apparent throughout the gospel histories, and that the absence of all the others is equally remarkable. The writers allude, for example, to the existing manners and customs, and to the circumstances of the times and of their country, with the utmost minuteness of reference. And these references are never formally made, nor with preface and explanation, never multiplied and heaped on each other, nor brought together, as though introduced by design; but they are scattered broad-cast and singly over every part of the story, and so connect themselves with every incident related, as to render the detection of falsehood inevitable. This minuteness, too, is not peculiar to any one of the historians, but is common to them all. Though they wrote at different periods, and without mutual concert, they all alike refer incidentally to the same state of affairs, and to the same contemporary and collateral circumstances. Their testimony, in this view, stands on the same ground with that of four witnesses, separately examined before different commissioners, upon the same interrogatories, and all adverting incidentally to the same circumstances as surrounding and accompanying the principal transaction, to which alone their attention is directed. And it is worthy of observation that these circumstances were at that time of a peculiar character. Hardly a state or kingdom in the world ever experienced so many vicissitudes in its government and political relations, as [pg 043] did Judea, during the period of the gospel history. It was successively under the government of Herod the Great, of Archelaus, and of a Roman magistrate; it was a kingdom, a tetrarchate, and a province; and its affairs, its laws, and the administration of justice, were all involved in the confusion and uncertainty naturally to be expected from recent conquest. It would be difficult to select any place or period in the history of nations, for the time and scene of a fictitious history or an imposture, which would combine so many difficulties for the fabricator to surmount, so many contemporary writers to confront him with, and so many facilities for the detection of falsehood.68
§ 45. “Had the evangelists been false historians,” says Dr. Chalmers, “they would not have committed themselves upon so many particulars. They would not have furnished the vigilant inquirers of that period with such an effectual instrument for bringing them into discredit with the people; nor foolishly supplied, in every page of their narrative, so many materials for a cross-examination, which would infallibly have disgraced them. Now, we of this age can institute the same cross-examination. We can compare the evangelical writers with contemporary authors, and verify a number of circumstances in the history, and government, and peculiar economy of the Jewish people. We therefore have it in our power to institute a cross-examination upon the writers of the New Testament; and the freedom and frequency of their allusions to these circumstances supply us with ample materials for it. The fact, that they are borne out in their minute and incidental allusions by the testimony of other historians, gives a strong weight of what has been called circumstantial evidence in their favour. As a specimen of the argument, let us confine our observations to the history of our Saviour's trial, and execution, and burial. They brought him to Pontius Pilate. We know both from Tacitus and Josephus, that he was at that time governor of Judea. A sentence from him was necessary before they could proceed to the execution of Jesus; and we [pg 044] know that the power of life and death was usually vested in the Roman governor. Our Saviour was treated with derision; and this we know to have been a customary practice at that time, previous to the execution of criminals, and during the time of it. Pilate scourged Jesus before he gave him up to be crucified. We know from ancient authors, that this was a very usual practice among the Romans. The accounts of an execution generally run in this form: he was stripped, whipped, and beheaded or executed. According to the evangelists, his accusation was written on the top of the cross; and we learn from Suetonius and others, that the crime of the person to be executed was affixed to the instrument of his punishment. According to the evangelists, this accusation was written in three different languages; and we know from Josephus that it was quite common in Jerusalem to have all public advertisements written in this manner. According to the evangelists, Jesus had to bear his cross; and we know from other sources of information, that this was the constant practice of these times. According to the evangelists, the body of Jesus was given up to be buried at the request of friends. We know that, unless the criminal was infamous, this was the law or the custom with all Roman governors.”69
§ 46. There is also a striking naturalness in the characters exhibited in the sacred historians, rarely if ever found in works of fiction, and probably nowhere else to be collected in a similar manner from fragmentary and incidental allusions and expressions, in the writings of different persons. Take, for example, that of Peter, as it may be gathered from the evangelists, and it will be hardly possible to conceive that four persons, writing at different times, could have concurred in the delineation of such a character, if it were not real; a character too, we must observe, which is nowhere expressly drawn, but is shown only here and there, casually, in the subordinate parts of the main narrative. Thus disclosed, it is that of a confident, sanguine, and zealous man; sudden and impulsive, yet [pg 045] humble and ready to retract; honest and direct in his purposes; ardently loving his master, yet deficient in fortitude and firmness in his cause.70 When Jesus put any question to the apostles, it was Peter who was foremost to reply;71 and if they would inquire of Jesus, it was Peter who was readiest to speak.72 He had the impetuous courage to cut off the ear of the High Priest's servant, who came to arrest his master; and the weakness to dissemble before the Jews, in the matter of eating with Gentile converts.73 It was he who ran with John to the sepulchre, on the first intelligence of the resurrection of Jesus, and with characteristic zeal rushed in, while John paused without the door.74 He had the ardour to desire and the faith to attempt to walk on the water, at the command of his Lord, but as soon as he saw the wind boisterous, he was afraid.75 He was the first to propose the election of another apostle in the place of Judas;76 and he it was who courageously defended them all, on the day of Pentecost, when the multitude charged them with being filled with new wine.77 He was forward to acknowledge Jesus to be the Messiah;78 yet having afterwards endangered his own life by wounding the servant of the High Priest, he suddenly consulted his own safety by denying the same Master, for whom, but a few hours before, he had declared himself ready to die.79 We may safely affirm that the annals of fiction afford no example of a similar but not uncommon character, thus incidentally delineated.
§ 47. There are other internal marks of truth in the narratives of the evangelists, which, however, need here be only alluded to, as they have been treated with great fulness and force by able writers, whose works are familiar to all.80 Among [pg 046] these may be mentioned the nakedness of the narratives; the absence of all parade by the writers about their own integrity, of all anxiety to be believed, or to impress others with a good opinion of themselves or their cause, of all marks of wonder, or of desire to excite astonishment at the greatness of the events they record, and of all appearance of design to exalt their Master. On the contrary, there is apparently the most perfect indifference on their part, whether they are believed or not; or rather, the evident consciousness that they were recording events well known to all, in their own country and times, and undoubtedly to be believed, like any other matter of public history, by readers in all other countries and ages. It is worthy, too, of especial observation, that though the evangelists record the unparalleled sufferings and cruel death of their beloved Lord, and this too, by the hands and with the consenting voices of those on whom he had conferred the greatest benefits, and their own persecutions and dangers, yet they have bestowed no epithets of harshness or even of just censure on the authors of all this wickedness, but have everywhere left the plain and unincumbered narrative to speak for itself, and the reader to pronounce his own sentence of condemnation; like true witnesses, who have nothing to gain or to lose by the event of the cause, they state the facts, and leave them to their fate. Their simplicity and artlessness, also, should not pass unnoticed, in readily stating even those things most disparaging to themselves. Their want of faith in their Master, their dulness of apprehension of his teachings, their strifes for preëminence, their inclination to call fire from heaven upon their enemies, their desertion of their Lord in his hour of extreme peril; these, and many other incidents tending directly to their own dishonour, are nevertheless set down with all the directness and sincerity of truth, as by men writing under the deepest sense of responsibility to God. Some of the more prominent instances of this class of proofs will be noticed hereafter, in their proper places, in the narratives themselves.
[pg 047]§ 48. Lastly, the great character they have portrayed is perfect. It is the character of a sinless Being; of one supremely wise and supremely good. It exhibits no error, no sinister intention, no imprudence, no ignorance, no evil passion, no impatience; in a word, no fault; but all is perfect uprightness, innocence, wisdom, goodness and truth. The mind of man has never conceived the idea of such a character, even for his gods; nor has history nor poetry shadowed it forth. The doctrines and precepts of Jesus are in strict accordance with the attributes of God, agreeably to the most exalted idea which we can form of them, either from reason or from revelation. They are strikingly adapted to the capacity of mankind, and yet are delivered with a simplicity and majesty wholly divine. He spake as never man spake. He spake with authority; yet addressed himself to the reason and the understanding of men; and he spake with wisdom, which men could neither gainsay nor resist. In his private life, he exhibits a character not merely of strict justice, but of overflowing benignity. He is temperate, without austerity; his meekness and humility are signal; his patience is invincible; truth and sincerity illustrate his whole conduct; every one of his virtues is regulated by consummate prudence; and he both wins the love of his friends, and extorts the wonder and admiration of his enemies81. He is represented in every variety of situation in life, from the height of worldly grandeur, amid the acclamations of an admiring multitude, to the deepest abyss of human degradation and woe, apparently deserted of God and man. Yet everywhere he is the same; displaying a character of unearthly perfection, symmetrical in all its proportions, and encircled with splendour more than human. Either the men of Galilee were men of superlative wisdom, of extensive knowledge and experience, and of deeper skill in the arts of deception, than any and all others, before or after them, or they have truly stated the astonishing things which they saw and heard.
The narratives of the evangelists are now submitted to the reader's perusal and examination, upon the principles and by the rules already stated. For this purpose, and for the sake of more ready and close comparison, they are arranged in juxtaposition, [pg 048] after the general order of the latest and most approved harmonies. The question is not upon the strict propriety of the arrangement, but upon the veracity of the witnesses and the credibility of their narratives. With the relative merits of modern harmonists, and with points of controversy among theologians, the writer has no concern. His business is that of a lawyer, examining the testimony of witnesses by the rules of his own profession, in order to ascertain whether, if they had thus testified on oath, in a court of justice, they would be entitled to credit; and whether their narratives, as we now have them, would be received as ancient documents, coming from the proper custody. If so, then it is believed that every honest and impartial man will act consistently with that result, by receiving their testimony in all the extent of its import. To write out a full commentary or argument upon the text, would be a useless addition to the bulk of the volume; but a few notes have been added for illustration of the narratives, and for the clearing up of apparent discrepancies, as being all that members of the legal profession would desire.
Time. About thirteen and a half years.
[pg 050]Luke. | |
CH. I. 1-4. | |
Forasmuch as many have taken in hand to set forth in order a declaration of those things which are most surely believed among us, | |
2 Even as they delivered them unto us, which from the beginning were eye-witnesses, and ministers of the word; | |
3 It seemed good to me also, having had perfect understanding of all things from the very first, to write unto thee in order, most excellent Theophilus, | |
4 That thou mightest know the certainty of those things wherein thou hast been instructed. |
Luke. | |
CH. I. 5-25. | |
5 There was in the days of Herod the king of Judea, a certain priest named Zacharias, of the course of Abia: and his wife was of the daughters of Aaron, and her name was Elisabeth. | |
6 And they were both righteous before God, walking in all the commandments and ordinances of the Lord blameless. | |
7 and they had no child, because that Elisabeth was barren; and they both were now well stricken in years. | |
8 And it came to pass, that, while he executed the priest's office before God in the order of his course, | |
9 According to the custom of the priest's office, his lot was to burn incense when he went into the temple of the Lord. | |
10 And the whole multitude of the people were praying without, at the time of incense. | |
11 And there appeared unto him an angel of the Lord, standing on the right side of the altar of incense. | |
12 And when Zacharias saw him, he was troubled, and fear fell upon him. | |
13 But the angel said unto him, Fear not, Zacharias: for thy prayer is heard; and thy wife Elisabeth shall bear thee a son, and thou shalt call his name John. | |
14 And thou shalt have joy and gladness, and many shall rejoice at his birth. | |
15 For he shall be great in the sight of the Lord, and shall drink neither wine nor strong drink; and he shall be filled with the Holy Ghost, even from his mother's womb. | |
16 And many of the children of Israel shall he turn to the Lord their God. | |
17 And he shall go before him in the spirit and power of Elias,82 to turn the hearts of the fathers to the children, and the disobedient to the wisdom of the just; to make ready a people prepared for the Lord. | |
18 And Zacharias said unto the angel, Whereby shall I know this? for I am an old man, and my wife well stricken in years. | |
19 And the angel, answering, said unto him, I am Gabriel, that stand in the presence of God, and am sent to speak unto thee, and to shew thee these glad tidings. | |
20 And behold, thou shalt be dumb, and not able to speak, until the day that these things shall be performed, because thou believest not my words, which shall be fulfilled in their season. | |
21 And the people waited for Zacharias, and marvelled that he tarried so long in the temple. | |
22 And when he came out, he could not speak unto them: and they perceived that he had seen a vision in the temple; for he beckoned unto them, and remained speechless. | |
23 And it came to pass, that as soon as the days of his ministration were accomplished, he departed to his own house. | |
24 And after those days his wife Elisabeth conceived, and hid herself five months, saying, | |
25 Thus hath the Lord dealt with me in the days wherein he looked on me, to take away my reproach among men. |
Luke. | |
CH. I. 26-38. | |
26 And in the sixth month the angel Gabriel was sent from God unto a city of Galilee, named Nazareth, | |
27 To a virgin espoused to a man whose name was Joseph, of the house of David; and the virgin's name was Mary. | |
28 And the angel came in unto her, and said, Hail, thou that art highly favoured, the Lord is with thee: blessed art thou among women. | |
29 And when she saw him, she was troubled at his saying, and cast in her mind what manner of salutation this should be. | |
30 And the angel said unto her, Fear not, Mary: for thou hast found favour with God. | |
31 And behold, thou shalt conceive in thy womb, and bring forth a son, and shalt call his name JESUS. | |
32 He shall be great, and shall be called the son of the Highest; and the Lord God shall give unto him the throne of his father David. | |
33 And83 he shall reign over the house of Jacob for ever; and of his kingdom there shall be no end. | |
34 Then said Mary unto the angel, How shall this be, seeing I know not a man? | |
35 And the angel answered and said unto her, The Holy Ghost shall come upon thee, and the power of the Highest shall overshadow thee: therefore also that holy thing which shall be born of thee, shall be called the Son of God. | |
36 And behold, thy cousin Elisabeth, she hath also conceived a son in her old age; and this is the sixth month with her who was called barren: | |
37 For with God nothing shall be impossible. | |
38 And Mary said, Behold the handmaid of the Lord, be it unto me according to thy word. And the angel departed from her. |
Luke. | |
CH. I. 39-56. | |
39 And Mary arose in those days, and went into the hill-country with haste, into a city of Juda, | |
40 And entered into the house of Zacharias, and saluted Elisabeth. | |
41 And it came to pass, that when Elisabeth heard the salutation of Mary, the babe leaped in her womb: and Elisabeth was filled with the Holy Ghost. | |
42 And she spake out with a loud voice and said, Blessed art thou among women, and blessed is the fruit of thy womb. | |
43 And whence is this to me, that the mother of my lord should come to me? | |
44 For lo, as soon as the voice of thy salutation sounded in mine ears, the babe leaped in my womb for joy. | |
45 And blessed is she that believed: for there shall be a performance of those things which were told her from the Lord. | |
46 And Mary said, My soul doth magnify the Lord, | |
47 And my spirit hath rejoiced in God my Saviour. | |
48 For he hath regarded the low estate of his handmaiden: for behold, from henceforth all generations shall call me blessed. | |
49 For he that is mighty hath done to me great things; and holy is his name. | |
50 And his mercy is on them that fear him, from generation to generation. | |
51 He hath shewed strength with his arm; he hath scattered the proud in the imagination of their hearts. | |
52 He hath put down the mighty from their seats, and exalted them of low degree. | |
53 He hath filled the hungry with good things, and the rich he hath sent empty away. | |
54 He hath holpen his servant Israel, in remembrance of his mercy; | |
55 As84 he spake to our fathers, to Abraham, and to his seed, for ever. | |
56 And Mary abode with her about three months, and returned to her own house. |
Luke. | |
CH. I. 57-80. | |
57 Now Elisabeth's full time came that she should be delivered; and she brought forth a son. | |
58 And her neighbours and her cousins heard how the Lord had shewed great mercy upon her; and they rejoiced with her. | |
59 And it came to pass, that on the eighth day they came to circumcise the child; and they called him Zacharias, after the name of his father. | |
60 And his mother answered and said, not so; but he shall be called John. | |
61 And they said unto her, There is none of thy kindred that is called by this name. | |
62 And they made signs to his father, how he would have him called. | |
63 And he asked for a writing-table, and wrote, saying, His name is John. And they marvelled all. | |
64 And his mouth was opened immediately, and his tongue loosed, and he spake, and praised God. | |
65 And fear came on all that dwelt round about them: and all these sayings were noised abroad throughout all the hill-country of Judea. | |
66 And all they that heard them, laid them up in their hearts, saying, What manner of child shall this be! And the hand of the Lord was with him. | |
67 And his father Zacharias was filled with the Holy Ghost, and prophesied, saying, | |
68 Blessed be the Lord God of Israel; for he hath visited and redeemed his people, | |
69 And hath raised up a horn of salvation for us, in the house of his servant David: | |
70 As he spake by the mouth of his holy prophets, which have been since the world began: | |
71 That we should be saved from our enemies, and from the hand of all that hate us; | |
72 To perform the mercy promised to our fathers, and to remember his holy covenant; | |
73 The oath which he sware to our Father Abraham,85 | |
74 That he would grant unto us, that we, being delivered out of the hand of our enemies, might serve him without fear, | |
75 In holiness and righteousness before him, all the days of our life. | |
76 And thou, child, shalt be called the Prophet of the Highest, for thou shalt go before the face of the Lord to prepare his ways; | |
77 To give knowledge of salvation unto his people, by the remission of their sins, | |
78 Through the tender mercy of our God; whereby the day-spring from on high hath visited us, | |
79 To give light to them that sit in darkness and in the shadow of death, to guide our feet into the way of peace. | |
80 And the child grew, and waxed strong in spirit, and was in the deserts till the day of his shewing unto Israel. |
Matthew. | |
CH. I. 18-25. | |
18 Now the birth of Jesus Christ was on this wise: When as his mother Mary was espoused to Joseph, before they came together, she was found with child of the holy Ghost. | |
19 Then Joseph her husband, being a just man, and not willing to make her a public example, was minded to put her away privily.86 | |
20 But while he thought on these things, Behold, the angel of the Lord appeared unto him in a dream, saying, Joseph, thou son of David, fear not to take unto thee Mary thy wife; for that which is conceived in her is of the Holy Ghost. | |
21 And she shall bring forth a son, and thou shalt call his name JESUS: for he shall save his people from their sins. | |
22 Now all this was done, that it might be fulfilled which was spoken of the Lord by the prophet, saying, | |
23 Behold,87 a virgin shall be with child, and shall bring forth a son, and they shall call his name Emmanuel, which being interpreted is, God with us. | |
24 Then Joseph, being raised from sleep, did as the angel of the Lord had bidden him, and took unto him his wife: | |
25 And knew her not till she had brought forth her first-born son: and he called his name JESUS. |
Luke. | |
CH. II. 1-7. | |
And it came to pass in those days, that there went out a decree88 from Cesar Augustus, that all the world should be taxed. | |
2 (And this taxing was first made when Cyrenius was governor of Syria.) | |
3 And all went to be taxed, every one into his own city. | |
4 And Joseph also went up from Galilee, out of the city of Nazareth, into Judea, unto the city of David, which is called Bethlehem, (because he was of the house and lineage of David,) | |
5 To be taxed with Mary his espoused wife, being great with child. | |
6 And so it was, that while they were there, the days were accomplished that she should be delivered. | |
7 And she brought forth her first-born son, and wrapped him in swaddling-clothes, and laid him in a manger; because there was no room for them in the inn. |
Luke. | |
CH. II. 8-20. | |
8 And there were in the same country shepherds abiding in the field, keeping watch over their flock by night. | |
9 And lo, the angel of the Lord came upon them, and the glory of the Lord shone round about them; and they were sore afraid. | |
10 And the angel said unto them, Fear not: for behold, I bring you good tidings of great joy, which shall be to all people. | |
11 For unto you is born this day, in the city of David, a Saviour, which is Christ the Lord. | |
12 And this shall be a sign unto you; Ye shall find the babe wrapped in swaddling-clothes, lying in a manger. | |
13 And suddenly there was with the angel a multitude of the heavenly host praising God, and saying, | |
14 Glory to God in the highest, and on earth peace, good will toward men. | |
15 And it came to pass, as the angels were gone away from them into heaven, the shepherds said one to another, Let us now go even unto Bethlehem, and see this thing which is come to pass, which the Lord hath made known unto us. | |
16 And they came with haste, and found Mary and Joseph, and the babe lying in a manger. | |
17 And when they had seen it, they made known abroad the saying which was told them concerning this child. | |
18 And all they that heard it, wondered at those things which were told them by the shepherds. | |
19 But Mary kept all these things, and pondered them in her heart. | |
20 And the shepherds returned, glorifying and praising God for all the things that they had heard and seen, as it was told unto them. |
Luke. | |
CH. II. 21-38. | |
21 And when eight days were accomplished for the circumcising of the child,89 his name was called JESUS, which was so named of the angel before he was conceived in the womb. | |
22 And when the days of her purification according to the law of Moses were accomplished, they brought him to Jerusalem, to present him to the Lord; | |
23 (As it is written in the law of the Lord,90 Every male that openeth the womb shall be called holy to the Lord;) | |
24 And to offer a sacrifice according to that which is said in the law of the Lord,91 A pair of turtle-doves, or two young pigeons. | |
25 And behold, there was a man in Jerusalem, whose name was Simeon; and the same man was just and devout, waiting for the consolation of Israel: and the Holy Ghost was upon him. | |
26 And it was revealed unto him by the Holy Ghost, that he should not see death, before he had seen the Lord's Christ. | |
27 And he came by the Spirit into the temple; and when the parents brought in the child Jesus, to do for him after the custom of the law, | |
28 Then took he him up in his arms, and blessed God, and said, | |
29 Lord, now lettest thou thy servant depart in peace, according to thy word: | |
30 For mine eyes have seen thy salvation, | |
31 Which thou hast prepared before the face of all people; | |
32 A light to lighten the Gentiles, and the glory of thy people Israel. | |
33 And Joseph and his mother marvelled at those things which were spoken of him. | |
34 And Simeon blessed them, and said unto Mary his mother, Behold, this child is92 set for the fall and rising again of many in Israel; and for a sign which shall be spoken against, | |
35 (Yea, a sword shall pierce through thy own soul also;) that the thoughts of many hearts may be revealed. | |
36 And there was one Anna, a prophetess, the daughter of Phanuel, of the tribe of Aser: she was of a great age, and had lived with a husband seven years from her virginity. | |
37 And she was a widow of about fourscore and four years, which departed not from the temple, but served God with fastings and prayers night and day. | |
38 And she coming in that instant, gave thanks likewise unto the Lord, and spake of him to all them that looked for redemption in Jerusalem. |
Matthew. | |
CH. II. 1-12. | |
Now when Jesus was born in Bethlehem of Judea in the days of Herod the king, behold, there came wise men from the East to Jerusalem, | |
2 Saying, Where is he that is born king of the Jews? for we have seen his star in the east, and are come to worship him. | |
3 When Herod the king had heard these things, he was troubled,93 and all Jerusalem with him. | |
4 And when he had gathered all the chief priests and scribes of the people together, he demanded of them where Christ should be born. | |
5 And they said unto him, in Bethlehem of Judea: for thus it is written by the prophet, | |
6 And94 thou Bethlehem, in the land of Juda, art not the least among the princes of Juda: for out of thee shall come a Governor, that shall rule my people Israel. | |
7 Then Herod, when he had privily called the wise men, inquired of them diligently what time the star appeared. | |
8 And he sent them to Bethlehem, and said Go, and search diligently for the young child; and when ye have found him, bring me word again, that I may come and worship him also. | |
9 When they had heard the king, they departed; and lo, the star, which they saw in the east, went before them, till it came and stood over where the young child was. | |
10 When they saw the star, they rejoiced with exceeding great joy. | |
11 And when they were come into the house, they saw the young child with Mary his mother, and fell down, and worshipped him: and when they had opened their treasures, they presented unto him gifts; gold, and frankincense, and myrrh. | |
12 And being warned of God in a dream that they should not return to Herod, they departed into their own country another way. |
Matthew. | |
CH. II. 13-23. | |
13 And when they were departed, behold, the angel of the Lord appeareth to Joseph in a dream, saying, Arise, and take the young child and his mother, and flee into Egypt, and be thou there until I bring thee word: for Herod will seek the young child to destroy him. | |
14 When he arose, he took the young child and his mother by night, and departed into Egypt: | |
15 And was there until the death of Herod: that it might be fulfilled which was spoken of the Lord by the prophet, saying,95 Out of Egypt have I called my Son. | |
16 Then Herod, when he saw that he was mocked of the wise men, was exceeding wroth, and sent forth, and slew all the children that were in Bethlehem, and in all the coasts thereof, from two years old and under, according to the time which he had diligently inquired of the wise men. | |
17 Then was fulfilled that which was spoken by Jeremy the prophet, saying, | |
18 In96 Rama was there a voice heard, lamentation, and weeping, and great mourning, Rachel weeping for her children, and would not be comforted, because they are not. | |
19 But, when Herod was dead, behold, an angel of the Lord appeareth in a dream to Joseph in Egypt, | |
20 Saying, Arise, and take the young child and his mother, and go into the land of Israel: for they are dead which sought the young child's life. | |
21 And he arose, and took the young child and his mother, and came into the land of Israel. | |
22 But when he heard that Archelaus did reign in Judea in the room of his father Herod, he was afraid to go thither:97 notwithstanding, being warned of God in a dream, he turned aside into the parts of Galilee: | |
23 And he came and dwelt in a city called Nazareth: that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by the prophets, He shall be called a Nazarene.98 |
Luke. | |
CH. II. 41-52. | |
41 Now his parents went to Jerusalem every year at the feast of the passover. | |
42 And when he was twelve years old99, they went up to Jerusalem after the custom of the feast. | |
43 And when they had fulfilled the days, as they returned, the child Jesus tarried behind in Jerusalem; and Joseph and his mother knew not of it. | |
44 But they, supposing him to have been in the company,100 went a day's journey; and they sought him among their kinsfolk and acquaintance. | |
45 And when they found him not, they turned back again to Jerusalem, seeking him. | |
46 And it came to pass, that after three days they found him in the temple, sitting in the midst of the doctors, both hearing them, and asking them questions. | |
47 And all that heard him were astonished at his understanding and answers. | |
48 And when they saw him, they were amazed: and his mother said unto him, Son, why hast thou thus dealt with us? Behold, thy father and I have sought thee sorrowing. | |
49 And he said unto them, How is it that ye sought me? wist ye not that I must be about my Father's business? | |
50 And they understood not the saying which he spake unto them. | |
51 And he went down with them, and came to Nazareth, and was subject unto them: but his mother kept all these sayings in her heart. | |
52 And Jesus increased in wisdom and stature, and in favour with God and man. |
Matthew. | |
CH. I. 1-17. | |
The book of the generation of Jesus Christ, the son of David, the son of Abraham. | |
2 Abraham begat Isaac; and Isaac begat Jacob; and Jacob begat Judas and his brethren; | |
3 And Judas begat Phares and Zara of Thamar; and Phares begat Esrom; and Esrom begat Aram; | |
4 And Aram begat Aminadab; and Aminadab begat Naasson; and Naasson begat Salmon; | |
5 And Salmon begat Booz of Rachab; and Booz begat Obed of Ruth; and Obed begat Jesse; | |
6 And Jesse begat David the king; and David the king begat Solomon of her that had been the wife of Urias; | |
7 And Solomon begat Roboam; and Roboam begat Abia; and Abia begat Asa; | |
8 And Asa begat Josaphat; and Josaphat begat Joram; and Joram begat Ozias; | |
9 And Ozias begat Joatham; and Joatham begat Achaz; and Achaz begat Ezekias; | |
10 And Ezekias begat Manasses; and Manasses begat Amon; and Amon begat Josias; | |
11 And Josias begat Jechonias and his brethren, about the time they were carried away to Babylon; | |
12 And after they were brought to Babylon, Jechonias begat Salathiel; and Salathiel begat Zorobabel; | |
13 And Zorobabel begat Abiud; and Abiud begat Eliakim; and Eliakim begat Azor; | |
14 And Azor begat Sadoc; and Sadoc begat Achim; and Achim begat Eliud; | |
15 And Eliud begat Eleazar; and Eleazar begat Matthan; and Matthan begat Jacob; | |
16 And Jacob begat Joseph the husband of Mary, of whom was born Jesus, who is called Christ. | |
17 So all the generations from Abraham to David are fourteen generations; and from David until the carrying away into Babylon are fourteen generations; and from the carrying away into Babylon unto Christ are fourteen generations. |
Luke. | |
CH. III. 23-38, INVERTED.101 | |
38 The son of God, the son of Adam, the son of Seth, the son of Enos, | |
37 The son of Cainan, the son of Maleleel, the son of Jared, the son of Enoch, the son of Mathusala, | |
36 The son of Lamech, the son of Noe, the son of Sem, the son of Arphaxad, the son of Cainan, | |
35 The son of Sala, the son of Heber, the son of Phalec, the son of Ragau, the son of Saruch, | |
34 The son of Nachor, the son of Thara, the son of Abraham, the son of Isaac, the son of Jacob, | |
33 The son of Juda, the son of Phares, the son of Esrom, the son of Aram, the son of Aminadab, | |
32 The son of Naasson, the son of Salmon, the son of Booz, the son of Obed, the son of Jesse, | |
31 The son of David, the son of Nathan, the son of Mattatha, the son of Menan, the son of Melea, | |
30 The son of Eliakim, the son of Jonan, the son of Joseph, the son of Juda, the son of Simeon, | |
29 The son of Levi, the son of Matthat, the son of Joram, the son of Eliezer, the son of Jose, | |
28 The son of Er, the son of Elmodam, the son of Cosam, the son of Addi, the son of Melchi, | |
27 The son of Neri, the son of Salathiel, the son of Zorobabel, the son of Rhesa, the son of Joanna, | |
26 The son of Juda, the son of Joseph, the son of Semei, the son of Mattathias, the son of Maath, | |
25 The son of Nagge, the son of Esli, the son of Naum, the son of Amos, the son of Mattathias, | |
24 The son of Joseph, the son of Janna, the son of Melchi, the son of Levi, the son of Matthat, | |
23 The son of Heli, the son of Joseph,—And Jesus himself ... being (as was supposed)— |
Time. About one year.
[pg 082]Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. III. 1-12. | CH. I. 1-8. |
In those days came John the Baptist, preaching in the wilderness of Judea, | The beginning of the gospel of Jesus Christ the Son of God: |
2 And saying, Repent ye; for the kingdom of heaven is at hand. | As it is written in the prophets,102 Behold, I send my messenger before thy face, which shall prepare thy way before thee; |
3 For this is he that was spoken of by the prophet Esaias, saying, The voice of one crying in the wilderness, Prepare ye the way of the Lord, make his paths straight. | 3 The voice of one crying in the wilderness, Prepare ye the way of the Lord, make his paths straight. |
4 And the same John had his raiment of camel's hair, and a leathern girdle about his loins; and his meat was locusts and wild honey. | 4 John did baptize in the wilderness, and preach the baptism of repentance, for the remission of sins. |
5 Then went out to him Jerusalem, and all Judea, and all the region round about Jordan. | 5 And there went out unto him all the land of Judea, and they of Jerusalem, and were all baptized of him in the river of Jordan, confessing their sins. |
6 And were baptized of him in Jordan, confessing their sins. | 6 And John was clothed with camel's hair, and with a girdle of a skin about his loins; and he did eat locusts and wild honey; |
7 But when he saw many of the Pharisees and Sadducees come to his baptism, he said unto them, O generation of vipers, who hath warned you to flee from the wrath to come? | 7 And preached, saying, There cometh one mightier than I after me, the latchet of whose shoes I am not worthy to stoop down and unloose. |
8 Bring forth therefore fruits meet for repentance: | 8 I indeed have baptized you with water: but he shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost. |
9 And think not to say within yourselves, We have Abraham to our father: for I say unto you, that God is able of these stones to raise up children unto Abraham. | |
10 And now also the axe is laid unto the root of the trees: therefore every tree which bringeth not forth good fruit is hewn down, and cast into the fire. | |
11 I indeed baptize you with water unto repentance: but he that cometh after me is mightier than I, whose shoes I am not worthy to bear: he shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost, and with fire: | |
12 Whose fan is in his hand, and he will thoroughly purge his floor, and gather his wheat into the garner; but he will burn up the chaff with unquenchable fire. |
Luke. | |
CH. III. 1-18. | |
Now in the fifteenth year of the reign of Tiberius Cesar, Pontius Pilate being governor of Judea, and Herod being tetrarch of Galilee, and his brother Philip tetrarch of Iturea and of the region of Trachonitis, and Lysanias the tetrarch of Abilene. | |
2 Annas and Caiaphas being the high priests,103 the word of God came unto John the son of Zacharias in the wilderness. | |
3 And he came into all the country about Jordan, preaching the baptism of repentance, for the remission of sins; | |
4 As it is written in the book of the words of Esaias the prophet, saying,104 The voice of one crying in the wilderness, Prepare ye the way of the Lord, make his paths straight. | |
5 Every valley shall be filled, and every mountain and hill shall be brought low; and the crooked shall be made straight, and the rough ways shall be made smooth; | |
6 And all flesh shall see the salvation of God. | |
7 Then said he to the multitude that came forth to be baptized of him, O generation of vipers, who hath warned you to flee from the wrath to come? | |
8 Bring forth therefore fruits worthy of repentance, and begin not to say within yourselves, We have Abraham to our father: for I say unto you, That God is able of these stones to raise up children unto Abraham. | |
9 And now also the axe is laid unto the root of the trees: every tree therefore which bringeth not forth good fruit, is hewn down, and cast into the fire. | |
10 And the people asked him, saying, What shall we do then? | |
11 He answereth and saith unto them, He that hath two coats, let him impart to him that hath none; and he that hath meat, let him do likewise. | |
12 Then came also publicans to be baptized, and said unto him, Master, what shall we do? | |
13 And he said unto them, Exact no more than that which is appointed you. | |
14 And the soldiers likewise demanded of him, saying, And what shall we do? And he said unto them, Do violence to no man, neither accuse any falsely; and be content with your wages. | |
15 And as the people were in expectation, and all men mused in their hearts of John, whether he were the Christ, or not; | |
16 John answered, saying unto them all, I indeed baptize you with water; but one mightier than I cometh, the latchet of whose shoes I am not worthy to unloose: he shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost, and with fire: | |
17 Whose fan is in his hand, and he will thoroughly purge his floor, and will gather the wheat into his garner; but the chaff he will burn with fire unquenchable. | |
18 And many other things in his exhortation preached he unto the people. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. III. 13-17. | CH. I. 9-11. |
13 Then cometh Jesus from Galilee to Jordan unto John, to be baptized of him. | 9 And it came to pass in those days, that Jesus came from Nazareth of Galilee, and was baptized of John in Jordan. |
14 But John forbade him, saying, I have need to be baptized of thee, and comest thou to me? | 10 And straightway coming up out of the water, he saw the heavens opened, and the Spirit like a dove descending upon him. |
15 And Jesus answering said unto him, Suffer it to be so now: for thus it becometh us to fulfil all righteousness. Then he suffered him. | 11 And there came a voice from heaven saying, Thou art my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased. |
16 And Jesus, when he was baptized, when up straightway out of the water: and lo, the heavens were opened unto him, and he saw the Spirit of God descending like a dove, and lighting upon him: | |
17 And lo, a voice from heaven, saying, This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased. |
Luke. | |
CH. III. 21-23. | |
21 Now, when all the people were baptized, it came to pass, that Jesus also being baptized, and praying, the heaven was opened, | |
22 And the Holy Ghost descended in a bodily shape like a dove upon him, and a voice came from heaven, which said, Thou art my beloved Son; in thee I am well pleased. | |
23 And Jesus himself began to be about thirty years of age. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. IV. 1-11. | CH. I. 12-13. |
Then was Jesus led up of the Spirit into the wilderness to be tempted of the devil. | 12 And immediately the Spirit driveth him into the wilderness. |
2 And when he had fasted forty days and forty nights, he was afterward an hungered. | 13 And he was there in the wilderness forty days tempted of Satan; and was with the wild beasts; and the angels ministered unto him. |
3 And when the tempter came to him, he said, If thou be the Son of God, command that these stones be made bread. | |
4 But he answered and said, It is written105 Man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word that proceedeth out of the mouth of God. | |
5 Then the devil taketh him up into the holy city, and setteth him on a pinnacle of the temple, | |
6 And saith unto him, If thou be the Son of God cast thyself down, for it is written106 He shall give his angels charge concerning thee: and in their hands they shall bear thee up, lest at any time thou dash thy foot against a stone. | |
7 Jesus said unto him, It is written again,107 Thou shalt not tempt the Lord thy God. | |
8 Again, the devil taketh him up into an exceeding high mountain and sheweth him all the kingdoms of the world, and the glory of them: | |
9 And saith unto him, All these things will I give thee, if thou wilt fall down and worship me. | |
10 Then saith Jesus unto him, Get thee hence, Satan: for it is written,108 Thou shalt worship the Lord thy God, and him only shalt thou serve. | |
11 Then the devil leaveth him, and behold, angels came and ministered unto him. |
Luke. | |
CH. IV. 1-13.109 | |
And Jesus, being full of the Holy Ghost, returned from Jordan, and was led by the Spirit into the wilderness, | |
2 Being forty days tempted of the devil. And in those days he did eat nothing: and when they were ended, he afterward hungered. | |
3 And the devil said unto him, If thou be the Son of God, command this stone that it be made bread. | |
4 And Jesus answered him, saying, It is written, That man shall not live by bread alone, but by every word of God. | |
9 And he brought him to Jerusalem, and set him on a pinnacle of the temple, and said unto him, If thou be the Son of God, cast thyself down from hence: | |
10 For it is written, He shall give his angels charge over thee, to keep thee: | |
11 And in their hands they shall bear thee up, lest at any time thou dash thy foot against a stone. | |
12 And Jesus answering, said unto him, It is said, Thou shalt not tempt the Lord thy God. | |
5 And the devil, taking him up into a high mountain, shewed unto him, all the kingdoms of the world in a moment of time. | |
6 And the devil said unto him, All this power will I give thee, and the glory of them: for that is delivered unto me, and to whomsoever I will, I give it. | |
7 If thou therefore wilt worship me, all shall be thine. | |
8 And Jesus answered and said unto him, Get thee behind me, Satan: for it is written, Thou shalt worship the Lord thy God, and him only shalt thou serve. | |
13 And when the devil had ended all the temptation, he departed from him for a season. |
John. | |
CH. I. 1-18. | |
In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was God. | |
2 The same was in the beginning with God. | |
3 All things were made by him; and without him was not anything made that was made. | |
4 In him was life; and the life was the light of men. | |
5 And the light shineth in darkness; and the darkness comprehended it not. | |
6 There was a man sent from God, whose name was John. | |
7 The same came for a witness, to bear witness of the Light, that all men through him might believe. | |
8 He was not that Light, but was sent to bear witness of that light. | |
9 That was the true Light, which lighteth every man that cometh into the world. | |
10 He was in the world, and the world was made by him, and the world knew him not. | |
11 He came unto his own, and his own received him not. | |
12 But as many as received him, to them gave he power to become the sons of God, even to them that believe on his name: | |
13 Which were born, not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God. | |
14 And the Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us, (and we beheld his glory, the glory as of the only begotten of the Father,) full of grace and truth. | |
15 John bare witness of him, and cried, saying, This was he of whom I spake, He that cometh after me, is preferred before me; for he was before me. | |
16 And of his fulness have all we received, and grace for grace. | |
17 For the law was given by Moses, but grace and truth came by Jesus Christ. | |
18 No man hath seen God at any time; the only begotten Son, which is in the bosom of the Father, he hath declared him. |
John. | |
CH. I. 19-34. | |
19 And this is the record of John, when the Jews sent priests and Levites from Jerusalem, to ask him, Who art thou? | |
20 And he confessed, and denied not; but confessed, I am not the Christ. | |
21 And they asked him, What then? Art thou Elias? And he saith, I am not. Art thou that prophet? And he answered, No.110 | |
22 Then said they unto him, Who art thou? that we may give an answer to them that sent us. What sayest thou of thyself? | |
23 He said,111 I am the voice of one crying in the wilderness, Make straight the way of the Lord, as said the prophet Esaias. | |
24 And they which were sent were of the Pharisees. | |
25 And they asked him, and said unto him, Why baptizest thou then, if thou be not that Christ, nor Elias, neither that prophet? | |
26 John answered them, saying, I baptize with water: but there standeth one among you, whom ye know not. | |
27 He it is, who coming after me, is preferred before me, whose shoe's latchet I am not worthy to unloose. | |
28 These things were done in Bethabara beyond Jordan, where John was baptizing. | |
29 The next day John seeth Jesus coming unto him, and saith, Behold the Lamb of God, which taketh away the sin of the world! | |
30 This is he of whom I said, After me cometh a man which is preferred before me; for he was before me. | |
31 And I knew him not: but that he should be made manifest to Israel, therefore am I come baptizing with water. | |
32 And John bare record, saying, I saw the Spirit descending from heaven like a dove, and it abode upon him. | |
33 And I knew him not: but he that sent me to baptize with water, the same said unto me, Upon whom thou shalt see the Spirit descending and remaining on him, the same is he which baptizeth with the Holy Ghost. | |
34 And I saw and bare record, that this is the Son of God. |
John. | |
CH. I. 35-51. | |
35 Again the next day after, John stood, and two of his disciples; | |
36 And looking upon Jesus as he walked, he saith, Behold the Lamb of God! | |
37 And the two disciples heard him speak, and they followed Jesus. | |
38 Then Jesus turned, and saw them following, and saith unto them, What seek ye? They said unto him, Rabbi, (which is to say, being interpreted, Master,) where dwellest thou? | |
39 He saith unto them, Come and see. They came and saw where he dwelt, and abode with him that day: for it was about the tenth hour. | |
40 One of the two which heard John speak, and followed him, was Andrew, Simon Peter's brother. | |
41 He first findeth his own brother Simon, and saith unto him, We have found the Messias; which is, being interpreted, the Christ. | |
42 And he brought him to Jesus. And when Jesus beheld him, he said, Thou art Simon the son of Jona: thou shalt be called Cephas; which is, by interpretation, a stone.112 | |
43 The day following Jesus would go forth into Galilee, and findeth Philip, and saith unto him, Follow me. | |
44 Now Philip was of Bethsaida, the city of Andrew and Peter. | |
45 Philip findeth Nathanael,113 and saith unto him, We have found him of whom Moses in the law, and the prophets, did write, Jesus of Nazareth the son of Joseph. | |
46 And Nathanael said unto him, Can there any good thing come out of Nazareth? Philip saith unto him, Come and see. | |
47 Jesus saw Nathanael coming to him, and saith of him, Behold an Israelite indeed, in whom is no guile! | |
48 Nathanael saith unto him, Whence knowest thou me? Jesus answered and said unto him, Before that Philip called thee, when thou wast under the fig-tree, I saw thee. | |
49 Nathanael answered and saith unto him, Rabbi, thou art the Son of God; thou art the King of Israel. | |
50 Jesus answered and said unto him, Because I said unto thee, I saw thee under the fig-tree, believest thou? thou shalt see greater things than these. | |
51 And he saith unto him, Verily, verily, I say unto you, Hereafter ye shall see heaven open, and the angels of God ascending and descending upon the114 Son of man. |
John. | |
CH. II. 1-12. | |
And the third day there was a marriage in Cana of Galilee; and the mother of Jesus was there. | |
2 And both Jesus was called, and his disciples, to the marriage. | |
3 And when they wanted wine, the mother of Jesus saith unto him, They have no wine. | |
4 Jesus saith unto her, Woman, what have I to do with thee? mine hour is not yet come. | |
5 His mother saith unto the servants, Whatsoever he saith unto you, do it. | |
6 And there were set there six water-pots of stone, after the manner of the purifying of the Jews, containing two or three firkins apiece. | |
7 Jesus saith unto them, Fill the water-pots with water. And they filled them up to the brim. | |
8 And he saith unto them, Draw out now, and bear unto the governor of the feast. And they bare it. | |
9 When the ruler of the feast had tasted the water that was made wine, and knew not whence it was, (but the servants which drew the water knew,) the governor of the feast called the bridegroom, | |
10 And saith unto him, Every man at the beginning doth set forth good wine; and when men have well drunk, then that which is worse: but thou hast kept the good wine until now. | |
11 This beginning of miracles did Jesus in Cana of Galilee, and manifested forth his glory; and his disciples believed on him. | |
12 After this he went down to Capernaum, he, and his mother, and his brethren, and his disciples; and they continued there not many days. |
Time. One year.
[pg 100]John. | |
CH. II. 13-25. | |
13 And the Jews' passover was at hand, and Jesus went up to Jerusalem. | |
14 And found in the temple those that sold oxen, and sheep, and doves, and the changers of money, sitting: | |
15 And when he had made a scourge of small cords, he drove them all out of the temple, and the sheep, and the oxen; and poured out the changers' money, and overthrew the tables; | |
16 And said unto them that sold doves, Take these things hence: make not my Father's house an house of merchandise. | |
17 And his disciples remembered that it was written,115 The zeal of thine house hath eaten me up. | |
18 Then answered the Jews, and said unto him, What sign shewest thou unto us, seeing that thou dost these things? | |
19 Jesus answered and said unto them, Destroy this temple, and in three days I will raise it up. | |
20 Then said the Jews, Forty and six years was this temple in building, and wilt thou rear it up in three days? | |
21 But he spake of the temple of his body. | |
22 When therefore he was risen from the dead, his disciples remembered that he had said this unto them: and they believed the scripture, and the word which Jesus had said. | |
23 Now, when he was in Jerusalem at the passover, in the feast-day, many believed in his name, when they saw the miracles which he did. | |
24 But Jesus did not commit himself unto them, because he knew all men. | |
25 And needed not that any should testify of man: for he knew what was in man. |
John. | |
CH. III. 1-21. | |
There was a man of the Pharisees named Nicodemus, a ruler of the Jews: | |
2 The same came to Jesus by night, and said unto him, Rabbi, we know that thou art a teacher come from God: for no man can do these miracles that thou doest, except God be with him. | |
3 Jesus answered and said unto him, Verily, verily, I say unto thee, Except a man be born again, he cannot see the kingdom of God. | |
4 Nicodemus saith unto him, How can a man be born when he is old? can he enter the second time into his mother's womb, and be born? | |
5 Jesus answered, Verily, verily, I say unto thee, Except a man be born of water, and of the Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God. | |
6 That which is born of the flesh, is flesh; and that which is born of the Spirit, is spirit. | |
7 Marvel not that I said unto thee, Ye must be born again. | |
8 The wind bloweth where it listeth, and thou hearest the sound thereof, but canst not tell whence it cometh, and whither it goeth: so is every one that is born of the Spirit. | |
9 Nicodemus answered and said unto him, How can these things be? | |
10 Jesus answered and said unto him, Art thou a master of Israel, and knowest not these things? | |
11 Verily, verily, I say unto thee, We speak that we do know, and testify that we have seen; and ye receive not our witness. | |
12 If I have told you earthly things, and ye believe not, how shall ye believe if I tell you of heavenly things? | |
13 And no man hath ascended up to heaven, but he that came down from heaven, even the Son of man which is in heaven. | |
14 And as116 Moses lifted up the serpent in the wilderness, even so must the Son of man be lifted up: | |
15 That whosoever believeth in him should not perish, but have eternal life. | |
16 For God so loved the world, that he gave his only begotten Son, that whosoever believeth in him, should not perish, but have everlasting life. | |
17 For God sent not his Son into the world to condemn the world, but that the world through him might be saved. | |
18 He that believeth on him, is not condemned: but he that believeth not, is condemned already, because he hath not believed in the name of the only begotten Son of God. | |
19 And this is the condemnation, that light is come into the world, and men loved darkness rather than light, because their deeds were evil. | |
20 For every one that doeth evil hateth the light, neither cometh to the light, lest his deeds should be reproved. | |
21 But he that doeth truth, cometh to the light, that his deeds may be made manifest, that they are wrought in God. |
John. | |
CH. III. 22-36. | |
22 After these things came Jesus and his disciples into the land of Judea; and there he tarried with them, and baptized. | |
23 And John also was baptizing in Ænon, near to Salim, because there was much water there: and they came, and were baptized. | |
24 For John was not yet cast into prison. | |
25 Then there arose a question between some of John's disciples and the Jews, about purifying. | |
26 And they came unto John and said unto him, Rabbi, he that was with thee beyond Jordan, to whom thou bearest witness, behold, the same baptizeth, and all men come to him. | |
27 John answered and said, A man can receive nothing, except it be given him from heaven. | |
28 Ye yourselves bear me witness, that I said, I am not the Christ, but that I am sent before him. | |
29 He that hath the bride is the bridegroom: but the friend of the bridegroom, which standeth and heareth him, rejoiceth greatly, because of the bridegroom's voice: this my joy therefore is fulfilled. | |
30 He must increase, but I must decrease. | |
31 He that cometh from above, is above all: he that is of the earth is earthly, and speaketh of the earth: he that cometh from heaven is above all. | |
32 And what he hath seen, and heard, that he testifieth; and no man receiveth his testimony. | |
33 He that hath received his testimony, hath set to his seal that God is true. | |
34 For he whom God hath sent, speaketh the words of God: for God giveth not the Spirit by measure unto him. | |
35 The Father loveth the Son, and hath given all things into his hand. | |
36 He that believeth on the Son hath everlasting life: and he that believeth not the Son, shall not see life; but the wrath of God abideth on him. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. IV. 12. | CH. I. 14. |
12 Now, when Jesus had heard that John was cast into prison, he departed into Galilee. | 14 Now, after that John was put in prison, Jesus came into Galilee. |
CH. XIV. 3-5. | CH. VI. 17-20. |
3 For Herod had laid hold on John, and bound him, and put him in prison for Herodias' sake, his brother Philip's wife. | 17 For Herod himself had sent forth and laid hold upon John, and bound him in prison for Herodias' sake, his brother Philip's wife: for he had married her. |
4 For John said unto him, It is not lawful for thee to have her. | 18 For John had said unto Herod, It is not lawful for thee to have thy brother's wife. |
5 And when he would have put him to death, he feared the multitude, because they counted him as a prophet. | 19 Therefore Herodias had a quarrel against him, and would have killed him; but she could not: |
20 For Herod feared John, knowing that he was a just man and an holy, and observed him: and when he heard him, he did many things, and heard him gladly. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. IV. 14. | CH. IV. 1-3. |
When therefore the Lord knew how the Pharisees had heard that Jesus made and baptized more disciples than John, | |
2 (Though Jesus himself baptized not, but his disciples,) | |
14 And Jesus returned in the power of the Spirit into Galilee: | 3 He left Judea, and departed again into Galilee. |
CH. III. 19, 20. | |
19 But Herod the tetrarch, being reproved by him for Herodias his brother Philip's wife, and for all the evils which Herod had done, | |
20 Added yet this above all, that he shut up John in prison. |
John. | |
CH. IV. 4-42. | |
4 And he must needs go through Samaria. | |
5 Then cometh he to a city of Samaria, which is called Sychar, near to the parcel of ground that Jacob gave to his son Joseph. | |
6 Now Jacob's well was there. Jesus therefore being wearied with his journey, sat thus on the well: and it was about the sixth hour. | |
7 There cometh a woman of Samaria to draw water; Jesus saith unto her, Give me to drink. | |
8 (For his disciples were gone away unto the city to buy meat.) | |
9 Then saith the woman of Samaria unto him, How is it that thou, being a Jew, askest drink of me, which am a woman of Samaria? for the Jews have no dealings with the Samaritans. | |
10 Jesus answered and said unto her, If thou knewest the gift of God, and who it is that saith to thee, Give me to drink; thou wouldest have asked of him, and he would have given thee living water. | |
11 The woman saith unto him, Sir, thou hast nothing to draw with, and the well is deep: from whence then hast thou that living water? | |
12 Art thou greater than our father Jacob, which gave us the well, and drank thereof himself, and his children, and his cattle? | |
13 Jesus answered and said unto her, Whosoever drinketh of this water, shall thirst again: | |
14 But whosoever drinketh of the water that I shall give him, shall never thirst; but the water that I shall give him, shall be in him a well of water springing up into everlasting life. | |
15 The woman saith unto him, Sir, give me this water, that I thirst not, neither come hither to draw. | |
16 Jesus saith unto her, Go call thy husband, and come hither. | |
17 The woman answered and said, I have no husband. Jesus said unto her, Thou hast well said, I have no husband: | |
18 For thou hast had five husbands, and he whom thou now hast, is not thy husband: in that saidst thou truly. | |
19 The woman saith unto him, Sir, I perceive that thou art a prophet. | |
20 Our fathers worshipped in this mountain; and ye say, that in Jerusalem is the place where men ought to worship. | |
21 Jesus saith unto her, Woman, believe me, the hour cometh, when ye shall neither in this mountain, nor yet at Jerusalem, worship the Father. | |
22 Ye worship ye know not what: we know what we worship, for salvation is of the Jews. | |
23 But the hour cometh, and now is, when the true worshippers shall worship the Father in spirit and in truth: for the Father seeketh such to worship him. | |
24 God is a Spirit: and they that worship him, must worship him in spirit and in truth. | |
25 The woman saith unto him, I know that the Messias cometh, which is called Christ; when he is come, he will tell us all things. | |
26 Jesus saith unto her, I that speak unto thee am he. | |
27 And upon this came his disciples, and marvelled that he talked with the woman: yet no man said, What seekest thou? or, Why talkest thou with her? | |
28 The woman then left her waterpot, and went her way into the city, and saith to the men, | |
29 Come, see a man which told me all things that ever I did: is not this the Christ? | |
30 Then they went out of the city, and came unto him. | |
31 In the meanwhile his disciples prayed him, saying, Master, eat. | |
32 But he said unto them, I have meat to eat that ye not know of. | |
33 Therefore said the disciples one to another, Hath any man brought him aught to eat? | |
34 Jesus saith unto them, My meat is to do the will of him that sent me, and to finish his work. | |
35 Say not ye, There are yet four months, and then cometh harvest? behold, I say unto you, Lift up your eyes, and look on the fields; for they are white already to harvest. | |
36 And he that reapeth receiveth wages, and gathereth fruit unto life eternal: that both he that soweth, and he that reapeth, may rejoice together. | |
37 And herein is that saying true, One soweth, and another reapeth. | |
38 I sent you to reap that whereon ye bestowed no labour: other men laboured, and ye are entered into their labours. | |
39 And many of the Samaritans of that city believed on him for the saying of the woman, which testified, He told me all that ever I did. | |
40 So when the Samaritans were come unto him, they besought him that he would tarry with them: and he abode there two days. | |
41 And many more believed, because of his own word; | |
42 And said unto the woman, Now we believe, not because of thy saying: for we have heard him ourselves, and know that this is indeed the Christ, the Saviour of the world. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. IV. 17. | CH. I. 14, 15. |
17 From that time Jesus began to preach, and to say, Repent: for the kingdom of heaven is at hand. | preaching the gospel of the kingdom of God, |
15 And saying, the time is fulfilled, and the kingdom of God is at hand; repent ye, and believe the gospel. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. IV. 14, 15. | CH. IV. 43-45. |
and there went out a fame of him through all the region round about. | 43 Now, after two days he departed thence, and went into Galilee. |
15 And he taught in their synagogues, being glorified of all. | 44 For Jesus himself testified, that a prophet hath no honour in his own country. |
45 Then when he was come into Galilee, the Galileans received him, having seen all the things that he did at Jerusalem at the feast: for they also went unto the feast. |
John. | |
CH. IV. 46-54. | |
46 So Jesus came again into Cana of Galilee, where he made the water wine. And there was a certain nobleman, whose son was sick at Capernaum. | |
47 When he heard that Jesus was come out of Judea into Galilee, he went unto him, and besought him that he would come down, and heal his son: for he was at the point of death. | |
48 Then said Jesus unto him, Except ye see signs and wonders, ye will not believe. | |
49 The nobleman saith unto him, Sir, come down ere my child die. | |
50 Jesus saith unto him, Go thy way; thy son liveth. And the man believed the word that Jesus had spoken unto him, and he went his way. | |
51 And as he was now going down, his servants met him, and told him, saying, Thy son liveth. | |
52 Then inquired he of them the hour when he began to amend. And they said unto him, Yesterday at the seventh hour the fever left him. | |
53 So the father knew that it was at the same hour, in the which Jesus said unto him, Thy son liveth: and himself believed, and his whole house. | |
54 This is again the second miracle that Jesus did, when he was come out of Judea into Galilee. |
Matthew. | |
CH. IV. 13-16. | |
13 And leaving Nazareth, he came and dwelt in Capernaum, which is upon the sea-coast, in the borders of Zabulon and Napthalim; | |
14 That it might be fulfilled which was spoken by Esaias the prophet, saying,117 | |
15 The land of Zabulon, and the land of Napthalim, by the way of the sea, beyond Jordan, Galilee of the Gentiles: | |
16 The people which sat in darkness, saw great light; and to them which sat in the region and shadow of death, light is sprung up. |
Luke. | |
CH. IV. 16-31. | |
16 And he came to Nazareth, where he had been brought up: and, as his custom was, he went into the synagogue on the sabbath-day, and stood up for to read. | |
17 And there was delivered unto him the book of the prophet Esaias. And when he had opened the book, he found the place where it was written,118 | |
18 The Spirit of the Lord is upon me, because he hath anointed me to preach the gospel to the poor; he hath sent me to heal the brokenhearted, to preach deliverance to the captives, and recovering of sight to the blind, to set at liberty them that are bruised, | |
19 To preach the acceptable year of the Lord. | |
20 And he closed the book, and he gave it again to the minister,119 and sat down.120 And the eyes of all them that were in the synagogue were fastened on him. | |
21 And he began to say unto them, This day is the scripture fulfilled in your ears. | |
22 And all bare him witness, and wondered at the gracious words which proceeded out of his mouth. And they said, Is not this Joseph's son? | |
23 And he said unto them, Ye will surely say unto me this proverb, Physician, heal thyself: whatsoever we have heard done in Capernaum, do also here in thy country. | |
24 And he said, Verily, I say unto you, No prophet is accepted in his own country. | |
25 But I tell you of a truth, many widows were in Israel in the days of Elias, when the heaven was shut up three years and six months, when great famine was throughout all the land: | |
26 But unto none of them was Elias sent, save unto Sarepta, a city of Sidon, unto a woman that was a widow.121 | |
27 And many lepers were in Israel in the time of Eliseus the prophet; and none of them was cleansed, saving Naaman the Syrian.122 | |
28 And all they in the synagogue, when they heard these things, were filled with wrath, | |
29 And rose up, and thrust him out of the city, and led him unto the brow of the hill,123 (whereon their city was built,) that they might cast him down headlong. | |
30 But he, passing through the midst of them, went his way, | |
31 And came down to Capernaum, a city of Galilee, |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. IV. 18-22. | CH. I. 16-20. |
18 And Jesus, walking124 by the sea of Galilee, saw two brethren, Simon called Peter, and Andrew his brother, | 16 Now as he walked by the sea of Galilee, he saw Simon, and Andrew his brother, |
casting a net into the sea; for they were fishers. | casting a net into the sea: for they were fishers. |
19 And he saith unto them, Follow me, and I will make you fishers of men. | 17 And Jesus said unto them, Come ye after me, and I will make you to become fishers of men. |
20 And they straightway left their nets, and followed him. | 18 And straightway they forsook their nets, and followed him. |
21 And going on from thence, he saw other two brethren, James the son of Zebedee, and John his brother, in a ship with Zebedee their father,125 mending their nets: and he called them. | 19 And when he had gone a little farther thence, he saw James the son of Zebedee, and John his brother, who also were in the ship mending their nets. |
22 And they immediately left the ship, and their father, and followed him. | 20 And straightway he called them: and they left their father Zebedee in the ship with the hired servants, and went after him. |
Luke. | |
CH. V. 1-11. | |
And it came to pass, that as the people pressed upon him to hear the word of God, he stood by the lake of Gennesaret, | |
2 And saw two ships standing by the lake: but the fishermen were gone out of them, and were washing their nets. | |
3 And he entered into one of the ships which was Simon's, and prayed him that he would thrust out a little from the land. And he sat down, and taught the people out of the ship. | |
4 Now, when he had left speaking, he said unto Simon, Launch out into the deep, and let down your nets for a draught. | |
5 And Simon, answering, said unto him, Master, we have toiled all the night, and have taken nothing; nevertheless, at thy word I will let down the net. | |
6 And when they had this done, they enclosed a great multitude of fishes: and their net brake. | |
7 And they beckoned unto their partners, which were in the other ship, that they should come and help them. And they came, and filled both the ships, so that they began to sink. | |
8 When Simon Peter saw it, he fell down at Jesus' knees, saying, Depart from me; for I am a sinful man, O Lord. | |
9 For he was astonished, and all that were with him, at the draught of the fishes which they had taken: | |
10 And so was also James and John the sons of Zebedee, which were partners with Simon. And Jesus said unto Simon, Fear not: from henceforth thou shalt catch men. | |
11 And when they had brought their ships to land, they forsook all, and followed him. |
Mark. | Luke. |
CH. I. 21-28. | CH. IV. 31-37. |
21 And they went into Capernaum; and straightway on the sabbath-day he entered into the synagogue and taught. | and taught them on the Sabbath-days. |
22 And they were astonished at his doctrine: for he taught them as one that had authority, and not as the scribes. | 32 And they were astonished at his doctrine: for his word was with power. |
23 And there was in their synagogue a man with an unclean spirit; and he cried out, | 33 And in the synagogue there was a man which had a spirit of an unclean devil; and he cried out with a loud voice, |
24 Saying, Let us alone; what have we to do with thee, thou Jesus of Nazareth? art thou, come to destroy us? I know thee who thou art, the Holy One of God. | 34 Saying, Let us alone; what have we to do with thee, thou Jesus of Nazareth? art thou come to destroy us? I know thee who thou art, the Holy One of God. |
25 And Jesus rebuked him, saying, Hold thy peace, and come out of him. | 35 And Jesus rebuked him, saying, Hold thy peace, and come out of him. And when the devil had thrown him in the midst, he came out of him, and hurt him not. |
26 And when the unclean spirit had torn him,126 and cried with a loud voice, he came out of him. | 36 And they were all amazed, and spake among themselves, saying, What a word is this! for with authority and power he commandeth the unclean spirits, and they come out. |
27 And they were all amazed, insomuch that they questioned among themselves, saying, What thing is this? what new doctrine is this? for with authority commandeth he even the unclean spirits, and they do obey him. | |
28 And immediately his fame spread abroad throughout all the region round about Galilee. | 37 And the fame of him went out into every place of the country round about. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. VIII. 14-17. | CH. I. 29-34. |
29 And forthwith, when they were come out of the synagogue, they entered into the house of Simon and Andrew, with James and John. | |
14 And when Jesus was come into Peter's house, he saw his wife's mother laid, and sick of a fever. | 30 But Simon's wife's mother lay sick of a fever; and anon they tell him of her. |
15 And he touched her hand, and the fever left her: and she arose, and ministered unto them. | 31 And he came and took her by the hand, and lifted her up; and immediately the fever left her, and she ministered unto them. |
16 When the even was come, they brought unto him many that were possessed with devils: and he cast out the spirits with his word, and healed all that were sick; | 32 And at even when the sun did set, they brought unto him all that were diseased, and them that were possessed with devils. |
17 That it might be fulfilled which was spoken by Esaias the prophet, saying,127 Himself took our infirmities, and bare our sicknesses. | 33 And all the city was gathered together at the door. |
34 And he healed many that were sick of divers diseases, and cast out many devils; and suffered not the devils to speak, because they knew him. |
Luke. | |
CH. IV. 38-41. | |
38 And he arose out of the synagogue, and entered into Simon's house. And Simon's wife's mother was taken with a great fever; and they besought him for her. | |
39 And he stood over her, and rebuked the fever; and it left her: and immediately she arose and ministered unto them. | |
40 Now, when the sun was setting, all they that had any sick with divers diseases, brought them unto him: and he laid his hands on every one of them, and healed them. | |
41 And devils also came out of many, crying out, and saying, Thou art Christ the Son of God. And he, rebuking them, suffered them not to speak: for they knew that he was Christ. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. IV. 23-25. | CH. I. 35-39. |
35 And in the morning, rising up a while before day, he went out and departed into a solitary place, and there prayed. | |
36 And Simon, and they that were with him, followed after him. | |
37 And when they had found him, they said unto him, All men seek for thee. | |
38 And he said unto them, Let us go into the next towns, that I may preach there also: for therefore came I forth. | |
23 And Jesus went about all Galilee, teaching in their synagogues, and preaching the gospel of the kingdom, and healing all manner of sickness, and all manner of disease among the people. | 39 And he preached in their synagogues throughout all Galilee, and cast out devils. |
24 And his fame went throughout all Syria: and they brought unto him all sick people that were taken with divers diseases and torments, and those which were possessed with devils, and those which were lunatic, and those that had the palsy; and he healed them. | |
25 And there followed him great multitudes of people from Galilee, and from Decapolis, and from Jerusalem, and from Judea, and from beyond Jordan. |
Luke. | |
CH. IV. 42-44. | |
42 And when it was day,128 he departed, and went into a desert place; and the people sought him, and came unto him, and stayed him, that he should not depart from them. | |
43 And he said unto them, I must preach the kingdom of God to other cities also, for therefore am I sent. | |
44 And he preached in the synagogues of Galilee. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. VIII. 2-4. | CH. I. 40-45. |
2 And behold, there came a leper and worshipped him, saying, Lord, if thou wilt, thou canst make me clean. | 40 And there came a leper to him, beseeching him, and kneeling down to him, and saying unto him, If thou wilt, thou canst make me clean. |
3 And Jesus put forth his hand, and touched him, saying, I will; be thou clean. And immediately his leprosy was cleansed. | 41 And Jesus, moved with compassion, put forth his hand, and touched him, and saith unto him, I will; be thou clean. |
42 And as soon as he had spoken, immediately the leprosy departed from him, and he was cleansed. | |
4 And Jesus saith unto him, See thou tell no man:129 but go thy way, shew thyself to the priest, and offer the gift that Moses commanded, for a testimony unto them.130 | 43 And he straitly charged him, and forthwith sent him away; |
44 And saith unto him, See thou say nothing to any man; but go thy way, shew thyself to the priest, and offer for thy cleansing those things which Moses commanded, for a testimony unto them. | |
45 But he went out, and began to publish it much, and to blaze abroad the matter, insomuch that Jesus could no more openly enter into the city, but was without in desert places: and they came to him from every quarter. |
Luke. | |
CH. V. 12-16. | |
12 And it came to pass, when he was in a certain city, behold, a man full of leprosy: who, seeing Jesus, fell on his face, and besought him, saying, Lord, if thou wilt, thou canst make me clean. | |
13 And he put forth his hand and touched him, saying, I will: Be thou clean. And immediately the leprosy departed from him. | |
14 And he charged him to tell no man: but go, and shew thyself to the priest, and offer for thy cleansing, according as Moses commanded, for a testimony unto them. | |
15 But so much the more went there a fame abroad of him: and great multitudes came together to hear and to be healed by him of their infirmities. | |
16 And he withdrew himself into the wilderness, and prayed. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. IX. 2-8. | CH. II. 1-12. |
And again he entered into Capernaum, after some days; and it was noised that he was in the house. | |
2 And straightway many were gathered together, insomuch that there was no room to receive them, no, not so much as about the door: and he preached the word unto them. | |
2 And behold, they brought to him a man sick of the palsy, lying on a bed: and Jesus, seeing their faith, said unto the sick of the palsy, Son, be of good cheer; thy sins be forgiven thee. | 3 And they come unto him, bringing one sick of the palsy, which was borne of four. |
4 And when they could not come nigh unto him for the press, they uncovered the roof where he was: and when they had broken it up, they let down the bed wherein the sick of the palsy lay. | |
5 When Jesus saw their faith, he said unto the sick of the palsy, Son, thy sins be forgiven thee. | |
3 And behold, certain of the scribes said within themselves, This man blasphemeth. | 6 But there were certain of the scribes sitting there, and reasoning in their hearts, |
7 Why doth this man thus speak blasphemies? who can forgive sins but God only? | |
4 And Jesus, knowing their thoughts, said, Wherefore think ye evil in your hearts? | 8 And immediately, when Jesus perceived in his spirit, that they so reasoned within themselves, he said unto them, Why reason ye these things in your hearts? |
5 For whether is easier to say, Thy sins be forgiven thee; or to say, Arise, and walk? | 9 Whether is it easier to say to the sick of the palsy, Thy sins be forgiven thee; or to say, Arise, and take up thy bed, and walk? |
6 But that ye may know that the Son of man hath power on earth to forgive sins, (then saith he to the sick of the palsy,) Arise, take up thy bed, and go unto thy house. | 10 But that ye may know that the Son of man hath power on earth to forgive sins (he saith to the sick of the palsy,) |
7 And he arose, and departed to his house. | 11 I say unto thee, Arise, and take up thy bed, and go thy way into thy house. |
8 But when the multitude saw it, they marvelled, and glorified God, which had given such power unto men. | 12 And immediately he arose, took up the bed, and went forth before them all; insomuch that they were all amazed, and glorified God, saying, We never saw it on this fashion. |
Luke. | |
CH. V. 17-26. | |
17 And it came to pass on a certain day, as he was teaching, that there were Pharisees and doctors of the law sitting by, which were come out of every town of Galilee, and Judea, and Jerusalem: and the power of the Lord was present to heal them. | |
18 And behold, men brought in a bed a man which was taken with a palsy: and they sought means to bring him in, and to lay him before him. | |
19 And when they could not find by what way they might bring him in, because of the multitude, they went upon the house-top, and let him down through the tiling with his couch, into the midst before Jesus. | |
20 And when he saw their faith, he said unto him, Man, thy sins are forgiven thee. | |
21 And the scribes and the Pharisees began to reason, saying, Who is this which speaketh blasphemies? Who can forgive sins but God alone? | |
22 But when Jesus perceived their thoughts, he, answering, said unto them, What reason ye in your hearts? | |
23 Whether is easier, to say, Thy sins be forgiven thee; or to say, Rise up and walk? | |
24 But that ye may know that the Son of man hath power upon earth to forgive sins, (he said unto the sick of the palsy,) I say unto thee, Arise, and take up thy couch, and go unto thine house. | |
25 And immediately he arose up before them, and took up that whereon he lay, and departed to his own house, glorifying God. | |
26 And they were all amazed, and they glorified God, and were filled with fear, saying, We have seen strange things to-day. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. IX. 9. | CH. II. 13, 14. |
9 And as Jesus passed forth from thence, he saw a man named Matthew, sitting at the receipt of custom: and he saith unto him, Follow me. And he arose, and followed him. | 13 And he went forth again by the sea-side; and all the multitude resorted unto him, and he taught them. |
14 And as he passed by, he saw Levi131 the son of Alpheus, sitting at the receipt of custom, and said unto him, Follow me. And he arose, and followed him. |
Luke. | |
CH. V. 27, 28. | |
27 And after these things he went forth, and saw a publican named Levi, sitting at the receipt of custom: and he said unto him, Follow me. | |
28 And he left all, rose up, and followed him. |
Time. One year.
[pg 132]John. | |
CH. V. 1-47. | |
After this there was a feast of the Jews: and Jesus went up to Jerusalem. | |
2 Now there is at Jerusalem, by the sheep market, a pool, which is called in the Hebrew tongue, Bethesda,132 having five porches. | |
3 In these lay a great multitude of impotent folk, of blind, halt, withered, waiting for the moving of the water. | |
4 For an angel went down at a certain season into the pool, and troubled the water: whosoever then first after the troubling of the water stepped in, was made whole of whatsoever disease he had. | |
5 And a certain man was there, which had an infirmity thirty and eight years. | |
6 When Jesus saw him lie, and knew that he had been now a long time in that case, he saith unto him, Wilt thou be made whole? | |
7 The impotent man answered him, Sir, I have no man, when the water is troubled, to put me into the pool: but while I am coming, another steppeth down before me. | |
8 Jesus saith unto him, Rise, take up thy bed, and walk. | |
9 And immediately the man was made whole, and took up his bed, and walked: and on the same day was the sabbath. | |
10 The Jews therefore said unto him that was cured, It is the sabbath-day; it is not lawful for thee to carry thy bed. | |
11 He answered them, He that made me whole, the same said unto me, Take up thy bed, and walk. | |
12 Then asked they him, What man is that which said unto thee, Take up thy bed, and walk? | |
13 And he that was healed wist not who it was: for Jesus had conveyed himself away, a multitude being in that place. | |
14 Afterward Jesus findeth him in the temple, and said unto him, Behold, thou art made whole; sin no more, lest a worse thing come unto thee. | |
15 The man departed, and told the Jews that it was Jesus which had made him whole. | |
16 And therefore did the Jews persecute Jesus, and sought to slay him, because he had done things things on the sabbath-day. | |
17 But Jesus answered them, My Father worketh hitherto, and I work. | |
18 Therefore the Jews sought the more to kill him, because he not only had broken the sabbath, but said also, hat God was his Father, making himself equal with God. | |
19 Then answered Jesus, and said unto them, Verily, verily, I say unto you, The Son can do nothing of himself, but what he seeth the Father do: for what things soever he doeth, these also doeth the Son likewise. | |
20 For the Father loveth the Son, and sheweth him all things that himself doeth: and he will shew him greater works than these, that ye may marvel. | |
21 For as the Father raiseth up the dead, and quickeneth them; even so the Son quickeneth whom he will. | |
22 For the Father judgeth no man; but hath committed all judgment unto the Son: | |
23 That all men should honour the Son, even as they honour the Father. He that honoureth not the Son, honoureth not the Father which has sent him. | |
24 Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that heareth my word, and believeth on him that sent me, hath everlasting life, and shall not come into condemnation; but is passed from death into life. | |
25 Verily, verily, I say unto you, The hour is coming, and now is, when the dead shall hear the voice of the Son of God: and they that hear shall live. | |
26 For as the Father hath life in himself, so hath he given to the Son to have life in himself; | |
27 And hath given him authority to execute judgment also, because he is the Son of man. | |
28 Marvel not at this: for the hour is coming, in the which all that are in the graves shall hear his voice, | |
29 And shall come forth; they that have done good, unto the resurrection of life; and they that have done evil, unto the resurrection of damnation. | |
30 I can of mine own self do nothing: as I hear, I judge: and my judgment is just; because I seek not mine own will, but the will of the Father which hath sent me. | |
31 If I bear witness of myself, my witness is not true. | |
32 There is another that beareth witness of me, and I know that the witness which he witnesseth of me is true. | |
33 Ye sent unto John, and he bare witness unto the truth. | |
34 But I receive not testimony from man: but these things I say, that ye might be saved. | |
35 He was a burning and a shining light: and ye were willing for a season to rejoice in his light. | |
36. But I have greater witness than that of John: for the works which the Father hath given me to finish, the same works that I do, bear witness of me, that the Father hath sent me. | |
37 And the Father himself which hath sent me, hath borne witness of me. Ye have neither heard his voice133 at any time, nor seen his shape. | |
38 And ye have not his word abiding in you: for whom he hath sent, him ye believe not. | |
39 Search the scriptures; for in them ye think ye have eternal life: And they are they which testify of me. | |
40 And ye will not come to me, that ye might have life. | |
41 I receive not honour from men. | |
42 But I know you, that ye have not the love of God in you. | |
43 I am come in my Father's name, and ye receive me not: if another shall come in his own name, him ye will receive. | |
44 How can ye believe, which receive honour one of another, and seek not the honour that cometh from God only? | |
45 Do not think that I will accuse you to the Father: there is one that accuseth you, even Moses, in whom ye trust. | |
46 For had ye believed Moses, ye would have believed me: for he wrote of me. | |
47 But if ye believe not his writings, how shall ye believe my words? |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XII. 1-8. | CH. II. 23-28. |
At that time Jesus went on the sabbath-day through the corn, and his disciples were a hungered, and began to pluck the ears of corn, and to eat.134 | 23 And it came to pass, that he went through the corn-fields on the sabbath-day; and his disciples began, as they went, to pluck the ears of Corn. |
2 But when the Pharisees saw it, they said unto him, Behold, thy disciples do that which is not lawful to do upon the sabbath-day.135 | 24 And the Pharisees said unto him, Behold, why do they on the sabbath-day that which is not lawful? |
3 But he said unto them, Have ye not read what David did when he was a hungered, and they that were with him; | 25 And he said unto them, Have ye never read what David did,136 when he had need, and was a hungered, he and they that were with him? |
4 How he entered into the house of God, and did eat the shew-bread, which was not lawful for him to eat, neither for them which were with him, but only for the priests? | 26 How he went into the house of God, in the days of Abiathar137 the high priest, and did eat the shew-bread, which is not lawful to eat, but for the priests, and gave also to them which were with him? |
5 Or have ye not read in the law how that on the sabbath-days the priests in the temple profane the sabbath, and are blameless?138 | |
6 But I say unto you, that in this place is one greater than the temple. | |
7 But if ye had known what this meaneth,139 I will have mercy, and not sacrifice, ye would not have condemned the guiltless. | 27 And he said unto them, The sabbath was made for man, and not man for the sabbath: |
8 For the Son of man is Lord even of the sabbath-day. | 28 Therefore, the Son of man is Lord also of the sabbath. |
Luke. | |
CH. VI. 1-5. | |
And it came to pass on the second sabbath after the first, that he went through the corn-fields; and his disciples plucked the ears of corn, and did eat, rubbing them in their hands. | |
2 And certain of the Pharisees said unto them, Why do ye that which is not lawful to do on the sabbath-days? | |
3 And Jesus, answering them, said, Have ye not read so much as this, what David did, when himself was a hungered, and they which were with him; | |
4 How he went into the house of God, and did take and eat the shewbread, and gave also to them that were with him, which it is not lawful to eat but for the priests alone? | |
5 And he said unto them, That the Son of man is Lord also of the sabbath. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XII. 9-14. | CH. III. 1-6. |
9 And when he was departed thence, he went into their synagogue. | And he entered again into the synagogue; and there was a man there which had a withered hand. |
10 And behold, there was a man which had his hand withered. And they asked him, saying, Is it lawful to heal on the sabbath-days? that they might accuse him. | 2 And they watched him, whether he would heal him on the sabbath-day; that they might accuse him. |
11 And he said unto them, What man shall there be among you, that shall have one sheep, and if it fall into a pit on the sabbath-day, will he not lay hold of it, and lift it out? | 3 And he saith unto the man which had the withered hand, Stand forth. |
4 And he saith unto them, Is it lawful to do good on the sabbath-days, or to do evil? to save life, or to kill? But they held their peace. | |
12 How much then is a man better than a sheep? wherefore it is lawful to do well on the sabbath-days. | 5 And when he had looked round about on them with anger, being grieved for the hardness of their hearts, he saith unto the man, Stretch forth thy hand. And he stretched it out: and his hand was restored whole as the other. |
13 Then saith he to the man, Stretch forth thy hand. And he stretched it forth; and it was restored whole, like as the other. | 6 And the Pharisees went forth, and straightway took counsel with the Herodians against him, how they might destroy him. |
Luke. | |
CH. VI. 6-11. | |
6 And it came to pass also on another sabbath, that he entered into the synagogue, and taught: and there was a man whose right hand was withered: | |
7 And the scribes and Pharisees watched him, whether he would heal on the sabbath-day; that they might find an accusation against him. | |
8 But he knew their thoughts, and said to the man which had the withered hand, Rise up, and stand forth in the midst. And he arose, and stood forth. | |
9 Then said Jesus unto them, I will ask you one thing; Is it lawful on the sabbath-days to do good, or to do evil? to save life, or to destroy it? | |
10 And looking round about upon them all, he said unto the man, Stretch forth thy hand. And he did so: and his hand was restored whole as the other. | |
11 And they were filled with madness; and communed one with another what they might do to Jesus. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XII. 15-21. | CH. III. 7-12. |
15 But when Jesus knew it, he withdrew himself from thence: and great multitudes followed him, and he healed them all. | 7 But Jesus withdrew himself with his disciples to the sea: and a great multitude from Galilee followed him, and from Judea, |
16 And charged them that they should not make him known: | 8 And from Jerusalem, and from Idumea, and from beyond Jordan; and they about Tyre and Sidon, a great multitude, when they had heard what great things he did, came unto him. |
17 That it might be fulfilled which was spoken by Esaias the prophet,140 saying, | |
18 Behold my servant, whom I have chosen; my beloved, in whom my soul is well pleased: I will put my Spirit upon him, and he shall shew judgment to the Gentiles. | 9 And he spake to his disciples, that a small ship should wait on him, because of the multitude, lest they should throng him. |
19 He shall not strive, nor cry; neither shall any man hear his voice in the streets. | 10 For he had healed many; insomuch that they pressed upon him for to touch him, as many as had plagues. |
20 A bruised reed shall he not break, and smoking flax,141 shall he not quench, till he send forth judgment unto victory. | 11 And unclean spirits, when they saw him, fell down before him, and cried, saying, Thou art the Son of God. |
21 And in his name shall the Gentiles trust. | 12 And he straightly charged them, that they should not make him known. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. X. 2-4. | CH. III. 13-19. |
13 And he goeth up into a mountain, and called unto him whom he would: and they came unto him. | |
14 And he ordained twelve, that they should be with him, and that he might send them forth to preach. | |
15 And to have power to heal sicknesses, and to cast out devils. | |
2 Now the names of the twelve apostles are these; The first, Simon, who is called Peter, and Andrew his brother; James the son of Zebedee, and John his brother; | 16 And Simon he surnamed Peter. |
17 And James the son of Zebedee, and John the brother of James, (and he surnamed them Boanerges, which is, The sons of thunder,) | |
3 Philip, and Bartholomew; Thomas, and Matthew the publican;142 James the son of Alpheus, and Lebbeus,143 whose surname was Thaddeus; | 18 And Andrew, and Philip, and Bartholomew, and James the son of Alpheus, and Thaddeus, and Simon the Canaanite, |
4 Simon the Canaanite, and Judas Iscariot, who also betrayed him. | 19 And Judas Iscariot, which also betrayed him: and they went into a house. |
Luke. | |
CH. VI. 12-19. | |
12 And it came to pass in those days, that he went out into a mountain to pray, and continued all night in prayer to God. | |
13 And when it was day, he called unto him his disciples: and of them he chose twelve, whom also he named Apostles; | |
14 Simon (whom he also named Peter) and Andrew his brother, James and John, Philip and Bartholomew, | |
15 Matthew and Thomas, James the son of Alpheus, and Simon called Zelotes, | |
16 And Judas the brother of James, and Judas Iscariot, which also was the traitor. | |
17 And he came down with them, and stood in the plain; and the company of his disciples, and a great multitude of people out of all Judea and Jerusalem, and from the sea-coast of Tyre and Sidon, which came to hear him, and to be healed of their diseases; | |
18 And they that were vexed with unclean spirits: and they were healed. | |
19 And the whole multitude sought to touch him; for there went virtue out of him, and healed them all. |
Matthew. | Luke. |
CH. V. VI. VII. VIII. 1. | CH. VI. 20-49. |
And seeing the multitudes, he went up into a mountain: and when he was set, his disciples came unto him.144 | |
2 And he opened his mouth, and taught them, saying, | 20 And he lifted up his eyes on his disciples, and said, Blessed be ye poor; for yours is the kingdom of God. |
3 Blessed are the poor in spirit: for theirs is the kingdom of heaven. | 21 Blessed are ye that hunger now: for ye shall be filled. Blessed are ye that weep now: for ye shall laugh. |
4 Blessed are they that mourn: for they shall be comforted. | 22 Blessed are ye when men shall hate you, and when they shall separate you from their company, and shall reproach you, and cast out your name as evil, for the Son of man's sake. |
5 Blessed are the meek: for they shall inherit the earth. | |
6 Blessed are they which do hunger and thirst after righteousness: for they shall be filled. | |
7 Blessed are the merciful: for they shall obtain mercy. | |
8 Blessed are the pure in heart: for they shall see God. | |
9 Blessed are the peace-makers: for they shall be called the children of God. | |
10 Blessed are they which are persecuted for righteousness' sake: for theirs is the kingdom of heaven. | |
11 Blessed are ye when men shall revile you, and persecute you, and shall say all manner of evil against you falsely, for my sake. | |
12 Rejoice, and be exceeding glad: for great is your reward in heaven: for so persecuted they the prophets which were before you. | 23 Rejoice ye in that day, and leap for joy: for behold, your reward is great in heaven: for in the like manner did their fathers unto the prophets. |
24 But wo unto you that are rich! for ye have received your consolation. | |
25 Wo unto you that are full! for ye shall hunger. Wo unto you that laugh now! for ye shall mourn and weep. | |
26 Wo unto you, when all men shall speak well of you! for so did their fathers to the false prophets. | |
13 Ye are the salt of the earth: but if the salt have lost his savour, wherewith shall it be salted? it is thenceforth good for nothing, but to be cast out, and to be trodden under foot of men. | |
14 Ye are the light of the world. A city that is set on a hill cannot be hid. | |
15 Neither do men light a candle, and put it under a bushel, but on a candlestick: and it giveth light unto all that are in the house. | |
16 let your light so shine before men, that they may see your good works, and glorify your Father which is in heaven. | |
17 Think not that I am come to destroy the law, or the prophets: I am not come to destroy, but to fulfil. | |
18 For verily, I say unto you, Till heaven and earth pass, one jot or one tittle shall in no wise pass from the law, till all be fulfilled. | |
19 Whosoever therefore shall break one of these least commandments, and shall teach men so, he shall be called the least in the kingdom of heaven: but whosoever shall do, and teach them, the same shall be called great in the kingdom of heaven. | |
20 For I say unto you, That except your righteousness shall exceed the righteousness of the scribes and Pharisees, ye shall in no case enter into the kingdom of heaven. | |
21 Ye have heard that it was said by them of old time, Thou shalt not kill; and whosoever shall kill, shall be in danger of the judgment: | |
22 But I say unto you, That whosoever is angry with his brother, without a cause, shall be in danger of the judgment: and whosoever shall say to his brother, Raca, shall be in danger of the council: but whosoever shall say, Thou fool, shall be in danger of hell-fire. | |
23 Therefore, if thou bring thy gift to the altar, and there rememberest that thy brother hath aught against thee, | |
24 Leave there thy gift before the altar, and go thy way, first be reconciled to thy brother, and then come and offer thy gift. | |
25 Agree with thine adversary quickly, while thou art in the way with him; lest at any time the adversary deliver thee to the judge, and the judge deliver thee to the officer, and thou be cast into prison. | |
26 Verily, I say unto thee, Thou shall by no means come out thence, till thou hast paid the uttermost farthing. | |
27 Ye have heard that it was said by them of old time, Thou shalt not commit adultery: | |
28 But I say unto you, That whosoever looketh on a woman to lust after her, hath committed adultery with her already in his heart. | |
29 And if thy right eye offend thee, pluck it out, and cast it from thee: for it is profitable for thee that one of thy members should perish, and not that thy whole body should be cast into hell. | |
30 And if thy right hand offend thee, cut it off, and cast it from thee: for it is profitable for thee that one of thy members should perish, and not that thy whole body should be cast into hell. | |
31 It hath been said, Whosoever shall put away his wife, let him give her a writing of divorcement: | |
32 But I say unto you, That whosoever shall put away his wife, saving for the cause of fornication, causeth her to commit adultery: and whosoever shall marry her that is divorced, committeth adultery. | |
33 Again, ye have heard that it hath been said by them of old time, Thou shalt not forswear thyself, but shalt perform unto the Lord thine oaths: | |
34 But I say unto you, Swear not at all: neither by heaven; for it is God's throne: | |
35 Nor by the earth; for it is his footstool: neither by Jerusalem; for it is the city of the great King: | |
36 Neither shalt thou swear by thy head; because thou canst not make one hair white or black. | |
37 But let your communication be, Yea, yea; Nay, nay: for whatsoever is more than these cometh of evil. | |
38 Ye have heard that it hath been said, An eye for an eye, and a tooth for a tooth. | |
39 But I say unto you, That ye resist not evil: but whosoever shall smite thee on thy right cheek, turn to him the other also. | |
40 And if any man will sue thee at the law, and take away thy coat, let him have thy cloak also. | |
41 And whosoever shall compel thee145 to go a mile, go with him twain. | |
42 Give to him that asketh thee, and from him that would borrow of thee, turn not thou away. | |
43 Ye have heard that it hath been said, Thou shalt love thy neighbour, and hate thine enemy: | |
44 But I say unto you, Love your enemies, bless them that curse you, do good to them that hate you, and pray for them which despitefully use you, and persecute you; | 27 But I say unto you which hear, Love your enemies, do good to them which hate you, |
28 Bless them that curse you, and pray for them which despitefully use you. | |
29 And unto him that smiteth thee on the one cheek, offer also the other; and him that taketh away thy cloak, forbid not to take thy coat also. | |
30 Give to every man that asketh of thee; and of him that taketh away thy goods ask them not again. | |
45 That ye may be the children of your Father which is in heaven: for he maketh his sun to rise on the evil and on the good, and sendeth rain on the just and on the unjust. | 31 And as ye would that men should do to you, do ye also to them likewise. |
46 For if ye love them which love you, what reward have ye? do not even the publicans the same? | 32 For if ye love them which love you, what thank have ye? for sinners also love those that love them. |
47 And if ye salute your brethren only, what do ye more than others? do not even the publicans so? | 33 And if ye do good to them which do good to you, what thank have ye? for sinners also do even the same. |
34 And if ye lend to them of whom ye hope to receive, what thank have ye? for sinners also lend to sinners, to receive as much again. | |
35 But love ye your enemies, and do good, and lend, hoping for nothing again; and your reward shall be great, and ye shall be the children of the Highest: for he is kind unto the unthankful and to the evil. | |
36 Be ye therefore merciful, as your Father also is merciful. | |
48 Be ye therefore perfect, even as your Father which is in heaven is perfect. | |
CH. VI. | |
Take heed that ye do not your alms before men, to be seen of them: otherwise ye have no reward of your Father which is in heaven. | |
2 Therefore, when thou doest thine alms, do not sound a trumpet before thee, as the hypocrites do, in the synagogues, and in the streets, that they may have glory of men. Verily, I say unto you, They have their reward. | |
3 But when thou doest alms, let not thy left hand know what thy right hand doeth; | |
4 That thine alms may be in secret: and thy Father which seeth in secret, himself shall reward thee openly. | |
5 And when thou prayest, thou shalt not be as the hypocrites are; for they love to pray standing in the synagogues, and in the corners of the streets, that they may be seen of men. Verily, I say unto you, They have their reward. | |
6 But thou, when thou prayest, enter into thy closet, and when thou hast shut thy door, pray to thy Father which is in secret; and thy Father, which seeth in secret, shall reward thee openly. | |
7 But when ye pray, use not vain repetitions, as the heathen do: for they think that they shall be heard for their much speaking. | |
8 Be not yet therefore like unto them: for your Father knoweth what things ye have need of before ye ask him. | |
9 After this manner therefore pray ye: Our Father which art in heaven, Hallowed be thy name. | |
10 Thy kingdom come. Thy will be done in earth as it is in heaven. | |
11 Give us this day our daily bread. | |
12 And forgive us our debts, as we forgive our debtors. | |
13 And lead us not into temptation, but deliver us from evil. For thine is the kingdom, and the power, and the glory, for ever. Amen. | |
14 For, if ye forgive men their trespasses, your heavenly Father will also forgive you: | |
15 But, if ye forgive not men their trespasses, neither will your Father forgive your trespasses. | |
16 Moreover, when ye fast, be not as the hypocrites, of a sad countenance: for they disfigure their faces, that they may appear unto men to fast. Verily, I say unto you, They have their reward. | |
17 But thou, when thou fastest, anoint thy head, and wash thy face; | |
18 That thou appear not unto men to fast, but unto thy Father, which is in secret: and thy Father, which seeth in secret, shall reward thee openly. | |
19 Lay not up for yourselves treasures upon earth, where moth and rust doth corrupt, and where thieves break through and steal: | |
20 But lay up for yourselves treasures in heaven, where neither moth nor rust doth corrupt, and where thieves do not break through nor steal. | |
21 For where your treasure is, there will your heart be also. | |
22 The light of the body is the eye: if therefore thine eye be single, thy whole body shall be full of light. | |
23 But if thine eye be evil, thy whole body shall be full of darkness. If therefore the light that is in thee be darkness, how great is that darkness! | |
24 No man can serve two masters: for either he will hate the one, and love the other; or else he will hold to the one, and despise the other. Ye cannot serve God and mammon. | |
25 Therefore I say unto you, Take no thought for your life, what ye shall eat, or what ye shall drink; nor yet for your body, what ye shall put on. Is not the life more than meat, and the body than raiment? | |
26 Behold the fowls of the air: for they sow not, neither do they reap, nor gather into barns; yet your heavenly Father feedeth them. Are ye not much better than they? | |
27 Which of you by taking thought can add one cubit unto his stature? | |
28 And why take ye thought for raiment? Consider the lilies of the field how they grow; they toil not, neither do they spin; | |
29 And yet I say unto you, That even Solomon, in all his glory, was not arrayed like one of these. | |
30 Wherefore, if God so clothe the grass of the field, which to-day is, and to-morrow is cast into the oven, shall he not much more clothe you, O ye of little faith? | |
31 Therefore take no thought, saying, What shall we eat? or, what shall we drink? or, wherewithal shall we be clothed? | |
32 (For after all these things do the Gentiles seek) for your heavenly Father knoweth that ye have need of all these things. | |
33 But seek ye first the kingdom of God, and his righteousness, and all these things shall be added unto you. | |
34 Take therefore no thought for the morrow: for the morrow shall take thought for the things of itself. Sufficient unto the day is the evil thereof. | |
CH. VII. | CH. VI. 20-49. |
Judge not, that ye be not judged. | 37 Judge not, and ye shall not be judged: condemn not, and ye shall not be condemned: forgive, and ye shall be forgiven: |
2 For with what judgment ye judge, ye shall be judged: and with what measure ye mete, it shall be measured to you again. | |
38 Give, and it shall be given unto you; good measure, pressed down, and shaken together, and running over, shall men give into your bosom. For with the same measure that ye mete withal, it shall be measured to you again. | |
39 And he spake a parable unto them; Can the blind lead the blind? shall they not both fall into the ditch? | |
40 The disciple is not above his master: but every one that is perfect, shall be as his master. | |
3 And why beholdest thou the mote that is in thy brother's eye, but considerest not the beam that is in thine own eye? | 41 And why beholdest thou the mote that is in thy brother's eye, but perceivest not the beam that is in thine own eye? |
4 Or how wilt thou say to thy brother, Let me pull out the mote out of thine eye; and behold a beam is in thine own eye? | 42 Either how canst thou say to thy brother, Brother, let me pull out the mote that is in thine eye, when thou thyself beholdest not the beam that is in thine own eye? Thou hypocrite, cast out first the beam out of thine own eye, and then shalt thou see clearly to pull out the mote that is in thy brother's eye. |
5 Thou hypocrite, first cast out the beam out of thine own eye; and then shalt thou see clearly to cast out the mote out of thy brother's eye. | |
6 Give not that which is holy unto the dogs, neither cast ye your pearls before swine, lest they trample them under their feet, and turn again and rend you. | |
7 Ask, and it shall be given you; seek, and ye shall find; knock, and it shall be opened unto you: | |
8 For every one that asketh receiveth; and he that seeketh, findeth; and to him that knocketh, it shall be opened. | |
9 Or what man is there of you, whom if his son ask bread, will he give him a stone? | |
10 Or if he ask a fish, will he give him a serpent? | |
11 If ye then being evil know how to give good gifts unto your children, how much more shall your Father which is in heaven give good things to them that ask him? | |
12 Therefore all things whatsoever ye would that men should do to you, do ye even so to them: for this is the law and the prophets. | |
13 Enter ye in at the strait gate; for wide is the gate, and broad is the way, that leadeth to destruction, and many there be which go in thereat: | |
14 Because, strait is the gate, and narrow is the way, which leadeth unto life, and few there be that find it. | |
15 Beware of false prophets, which come to you in sheep's clothing, but inwardly they are ravening wolves. | |
16 Ye shall know them by their fruits: Do men gather grapes of thorns, or figs of thistles? | |
17 Even so every good tree bringeth forth good fruit; but a corrupt tree bringeth forth evil fruit. | 43 For a good tree bringeth not forth corrupt fruit; neither doth a corrupt tree bring forth good fruit. |
18 A good tree cannot bring forth evil fruit, neither can a corrupt tree bring forth good fruit. | 44 For every tree is known by his own fruit: for of thorns men do not gather figs, nor of a bramble-bush gather they grapes. |
19 Every tree that bringeth not forth good fruit is hewn down, and cast into the fire. | |
20 Wherefore, by their fruits ye shall know them. | |
45 A good man out of the good treasure of his heart, bringeth forth that which is good; and an evil man, out of the evil treasure of his heart, bringeth forth that which is evil: for of the abundance of the heart his mouth speaketh. | |
21 Not every one that saith unto me, Lord, Lord, shall enter into the kingdom of heaven; but he that doeth the will of my father which is in heaven. | 46 And why call ye me Lord, Lord, and do not the things which I say? |
22 Many will say to me in that day, Lord, Lord, have we not prophesied in thy name? and in thy name have cast out devils? and in thy name done many wonderful works? | 47 Whosoever cometh to me, and heareth my sayings, and doeth them, I will shew you to whom he is like. |
23 And then will I profess unto them, I never knew you: depart from me, ye that work iniquity. | |
24 Therefore, whosoever heareth these sayings of mine, and doeth them, I will liken him unto a wise man, which built his house upon a rock: | 48 He is like a man which built a house, and digged deep, and laid the foundation on a rock: and when the flood arose, the stream beat vehemently upon that house, and could not shake it: for it was founded upon a rock. |
25 And the rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds blew, and beat upon that house, and it fell not: for it was founded upon a rock: | |
26 And every one that heareth these sayings of mine, and doeth them not, shall be likened unto a foolish man, which built his house upon the sand: | 49 But he that heareth and doeth not, is like a man that without a foundation built a house upon the earth, against which the stream did beat vehemently, and immediately it fell, and the ruin of that house was great. |
27 And the rain descended, and the floods came, and the winds blew, and beat upon that house; and it fell: and great was the fall of it. | |
28 And it came to pass when Jesus had ended these sayings, the people were astonished at his doctrine. | |
29 For he taught them as one having authority, and not as the scribes. | |
CH. VIII. | |
When he was come down from the mountain, great multitudes followed him. |
Matthew. | Luke. |
CH. VIII. 5-13. | CH. VII. 1-10. |
5 And when Jesus was entered into Capernaum, there came unto him146 a centurion, beseeching him, | Now, when he had ended all his sayings in the audience of the people, he entered into Capernaum, |
6 And saying, Lord, my servant lieth at home sick of the palsy, grievously tormented. | 2 And a certain centurion's servant, who was dear unto him, was sick, and ready to die. |
3 And when he heard of Jesus, he sent unto him the elders of the Jews, beseeching him that he would come and heal his servant. | |
7 And Jesus saith unto him, I will come and heal him. | 4 And when they came to Jesus, they besought him instantly, saying, That he was worthy for whom he should do this: |
5 For he loveth our nation, and he hath built us a synagogue. | |
8 The centurion answered and said, Lord, I am not worthy that thou shouldest come under my roof: but speak the word only, and my servant shall be healed. | 6 Then Jesus went with them. And when he was now not far from the house, the centurion sent friends to him, saying unto him, Lord, trouble not thyself; for I am not worthy that thou shouldest enter under my roof; |
9 For I am a man under authority, having soldiers under me: and I say to this man, Go, and he goeth; and to another, Come, and he cometh; and to my servant, Do this, and he doeth it. | 8 For I also am a man set under authority, having under me soldiers, and I say unto one, Go, and he goeth; and to another, Come, and he cometh; and to my servant, Do this, and he doeth it. |
10 When Jesus heard it, he marvelled, and said to them that followed, Verily, I say unto you, I have not found so great faith, no, not in Israel. | 9 When Jesus heard these things, he marvelled at him, and turned him about and said unto the people that followed him, I say unto you, I have not found so great faith, no, not in Israel. |
11 And I say unto you, That many shall come from the east and west, and shall sit down with Abraham, and Isaac, and Jacob, in the kingdom of heaven: | 7 Wherefore neither thought I myself worthy to come unto thee; but say in a word, and my servant shall be healed. |
12 But the children of the kingdom shall be cast out into outer darkness: there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth. | |
13 And Jesus said unto the centurion, Go thy way; and as thou hast believed, so be it done unto thee. And his servant was healed in the self-same hour. | 10 And they that were sent, returning to the house, found the servant whole that had been sick. |
Luke. | |
CH. VII. 11-17. | |
11 And it came to pass the day after, that he went into a city called Nain: and many of his disciples went with him, and much people. | |
12 Now, when he came nigh to the gate of the city, behold, there was a dead man carried out, the only son of his mother, and she was a widow: and much people of the city was with her. | |
13 And when the Lord saw her, he had compassion on her, and said unto her, Weep not. | |
14 And he came and touched the bier: and they that bare him stood still. And he said, Young man, I say unto thee, Arise. | |
15 And he that was dead sat up, and began to speak: and he delivered him to his mother. | |
16 And there came a fear on all: and they glorified God, saying, That a great prophet is risen up among us; and, That God hath visited his people. | |
17 And this rumour of him went forth throughout all Judea, and throughout all the region round about. |
Matthew. | Luke |
CH. XI. 2-19. | |
2 Now when John had heard in the prison the works of Christ, he sent two of his disciples, | 18 And the disciples of John shewed him of all these things. |
3 And said unto him. Art thou he that should come,147 or do we look for another? | 19 And John calling unto him two of his disciples, sent them to Jesus, saying, Art thou he that should come? or look we for another? |
20 When the men were come unto him, they said, John Baptist hath sent us unto thee, saying, Art thou he that should come? or look we for another? | |
21 And in that same hour he cured many of their infirmities, and plagues, and of evil spirits; and unto many that were blind he gave sight. | |
4 Jesus answered and said unto them, Go and shew John again those things which ye do hear and see: | 22 Then Jesus answering, said unto them, Go your way, and tell John what things ye have seen and heard; how that the blind see, the lame walk, the lepers are cleansed, the deaf hear, the dead are raised, to the poor the gospel is preached. |
5 The blind receive their sight, and the lame walk, the lepers are cleansed, and the deaf hear, the dead are raised up, and the poor have the gospel preached to them.148 | 23 And blessed is he, whosoever shall not be offended in me. |
6 And blessed is he whosoever shall not be offended in me. | |
7 And as they departed, Jesus began to say unto the multitudes concerning John, What went ye out into the wilderness to see? A reed shaken with the wind? | 24 And when the messengers of John were departed, he began to speak unto the people concerning John, What went ye out into the wilderness for to see? A reed shaken with the wind? |
8 But what went ye out for to see? A man clothed in soft raiment? Behold, they that wear soft clothing are in kings' houses. | 25 But what went ye out for to see? A man clothed in soft raiment? Behold, they which are gorgeously apparelled, and live delicately, are in kings' courts. |
9 But what went ye out for to see? A prophet? yea, I say unto you, and more than a prophet. | 26 But what went ye out for to see? A prophet? Yea, I say unto you, and much more than a prophet. |
10 For this is he of whom it is written,149 Behold, I send my messenger before thy face, which shall prepare thy way before thee. | 27 This is he, of whom it is written, Behold, I send my messenger before thy face, which shall prepare thy way before thee. |
11 Verily, I say unto you, Among them that are born of women, there hath not risen a greater than John the Baptist: notwithstanding, he that is least in the kingdom of heaven, is greater than he. | 28 For I say unto you, Among those that are born of women, there is not a greater prophet than John the Baptist: but he that is least in the kingdom of God, is greater than he. |
29 And all the people that heard him, and the publicans, justified God, being baptized with the baptism of John. | |
30 But the Pharisees and lawyers rejected the council of God against themselves, being not baptized of him. | |
12 And from the days of John the Baptist, until now, the kingdom of heaven suffereth violence, and the violent take it by force. | |
13 For all the prophets and the law prophesied until John. | |
14 And if ye will receive it, this is Elias which was for to come.150 | |
15 He that hath ears to hear, let him hear. | |
16 But whereunto shall I liken this generation? It is like unto children sitting in the markets, and calling unto their fellows. | 31 And the Lord said, Whereunto then shall I liken the men of this generation? and to what are they like? |
32 They are like unto children sitting in the market-place, and calling one to another, and saying, We have piped unto you, and ye have not danced; we have mourned to you, and ye have not wept. | |
17 And saying, We have piped unto you, and ye have not danced; we have mourned unto you, and ye have not lamented. | |
18 For John came neither eating nor drinking, and they say, He hath a devil. | 33 For John the Baptist came neither eating bread, nor drinking wine; and ye say, He hath a devil. |
19 The Son of man came eating and drinking, and they say, Behold a man gluttonous, and a wine-bibber, a friend of publicans and sinners. But Wisdom is justified of her children. | 34 The Son of man is come eating and drinking; and ye say, Behold a gluttonous man, and a wine-bibber, a friend of publicans and sinners! |
35 But Wisdom is justified of all her children. |
Matthew. | |
CH. XI. 20-30. | |
20 Then began he to upbraid the cities wherein most of his mighty works were done, because they repented not. | |
21 Wo unto thee, Chorazin! wo unto thee, Bethsaida! for if the mighty works which were done in you had been done in Tyre and Sidon, they would have repented long ago in sackcloth and ashes. | |
22 But I say unto you, It shall be more tolerable for Tyre and Sidon at the day of judgment, than for you. | |
23 And thou, Capernaum, which art exalted unto heaven, shalt be brought down to hell: for if the mighty works which have been done in thee, had been done in Sodom, it would have remained until this day. | |
24 But I say unto you, That it shall be more tolerable for the land of Sodom, in the day of judgment, than for thee. | |
25 At that time Jesus answered and said, I thank thee, O Father, Lord of heaven and earth, because thou hast hid these things from the wise and prudent, and hast revealed them unto babes. | |
26 Even so, Father, for so it seemed good in thy sight. | |
27 All things are delivered unto me of my Father; and no man knoweth the Son, but the Father; neither knoweth any man the Father, save the Son, and he to whomsoever the Son will reveal him. | |
26 Come unto me, all ye that labour, and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest. | |
29 Take my yoke upon you, and learn of me: for I am meek and lowly in heart; and ye shall find rest unto your souls. | |
30 For my yoke is easy, and my burden is light. |
Luke. | |
CH. VII. 36-50. | |
36 And one of the Pharisees desired him that he would eat with him. And he went into the Pharisee's house, and sat down to meat. | |
37 And behold, a woman in the city, which was a sinner, when she knew that Jesus sat at meat in the Pharisee's house, brought an alabaster-box of ointment, | |
38 And stood at his feet behind him weeping, and began to wash his feet with tears, and did wipe them with the hairs of her head, and kissed his feet, and anointed them with the ointment. | |
39 Now, when the Pharisee which had bidden him, saw it, he spake within himself, saying, This man, if he were a prophet, would have known who, and what manner of woman this is that toucheth him: for she is a sinner. | |
40 And Jesus answering, said unto him, Simon, I have somewhat to say unto thee. And he saith, Master, say on. | |
41 There was a certain creditor, which had two debtors: the one owed five hundred pence, and the other fifty. | |
42 And when they had nothing to pay, he frankly forgave them both. Tell me, therefore, which of them will love him most? | |
43 Simon answered and said, I suppose that he, to whom he forgave most. And he said unto him, Thou hast rightly judged. | |
44 And he turned to the woman, and said unto Simon, Seest thou this woman? I entered into thine house, thou gavest me no water for my feet: but she hath washed my feet with tears, and wiped them with the hairs of her head. | |
45 Thou gavest me no kiss: but this woman, since the time I came in, hath not ceased to kiss my feet. | |
46 My head with oil thou didst not anoint: but this woman hath anointed my feet with ointment. | |
47 Wherefore I say unto thee, Her sins which are many, are forgiven; for she loved much: but to whom little is forgiven, the same loveth little. | |
48 And he said unto her, Thy sins are forgiven. | |
49 And they that sat at meat with him, began to say within themselves, Who is this that forgiveth sins also? | |
50 And he said to the woman, Thy faith hath saved thee; go in peace. |
Luke. | |
CH. VIII. 1-3. | |
And it came to pass afterward, that he went throughout every city and village, preaching and shewing the glad tidings of the kingdom of God: and the twelve were with him. | |
2 And certain women, which had been healed of evil spirits and infirmities, Mary called Magdalene, out of whom went seven devils, | |
3 And Joanna the wife of Chuza, Herod's steward, and Susanna, and many others, which ministered unto him of their substance. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XII. 22-37. | CH. III. 19-30. |
19 —— and they went into a house. | |
20 And the multitude cometh together again, so that they could not so much as eat bread. | |
21 And when his friends heard of it, they went out to lay hold on him: for they said, He is beside himself. | |
22 Then was brought unto him one possessed with a devil, blind and dumb; and he healed him, insomuch that the blind and dumb,151 both spake and saw. | |
23 And all the people were amazed152 and said, Is not this the son of David? | |
24 But when the Pharisees heard it they said, This fellow doth not cast out devils, but by Beelzebub the prince of the devils. | 22 And the scribes which came down from Jerusalem, said, He hath Beelzebub, and by the prince of the devils casteth he out devils. |
25 And Jesus knew their thoughts, and said unto them, Every kingdom divided against itself, is brought to desolation; and every city or house divided against itself, shall not stand. | 23 And he called them unto him, and said unto them in parables, How can Satan cast out Satan? |
26 And if Satan cast out Satan, he is divided against himself; how shall then his kingdom stand? | 24 And if a kingdom be divided against itself, that kingdom cannot stand. |
25 And if a house be divided against itself, that house cannot stand. | |
27 And if I by Beelzebub cast out devils, by whom do your children cast them out? therefore they shall be your judges. | 26 And if Satan rise up against himself, and be divided, he cannot stand but hath an end. |
28 But if I cast out devils by the Spirit of God, then the kingdom of he will first bind the strong man; | 27 No man can enter into a strong man's house and spoil his goods, except he will first bind the strong man; and then he will spoil his house. |
29 Or else, how can one enter into a strong man's house, and spoil his goods, except he first bind the strong man? and then he will spoil his house. | 28 Verily, I say unto you, All sins shall be forgiven unto the sons of men, the blasphemies wherewith soever they shall blaspheme: |
30 He that is not with me is against me; and he that gathereth not with me, scattereth abroad. | 29 But he that shall blaspheme against the Holy Ghost hath never forgiveness, but is in danger of eternal damnation: |
31 Wherefore I say unto you, All manner of sin and blasphemy shall be forgiven unto men: but the blasphemy against the Holy Ghost shall not be forgiven unto men. | 30 Because they said, he hath an unclean spirit. |
32 And whosoever speaketh a word against the Son of man, it shall be forgiven him: but whosoever speaketh against the Holy Ghost, it shall not be forgiven him, neither in this world, neither in the world to come. | |
33 Either make the tree good, and his fruit good; or else make the tree corrupt, and his fruit corrupt: for the tree is known by his fruit. | |
34 O generation of vipers, how can ye, being evil, speak good things? for out of the abundance of the heart the mouth speaketh. | |
35 A good man, out of the good treasure of the heart, bringeth forth good things: and an evil man, out of the evil treasure, bringeth forth evil things. | |
36 But I say unto you, That every idle word that men shall speak, they shall give account thereof in the day of judgment. | |
37 For by thy words thou shalt be justified, and by thy words thou shalt be condemned. |
Luke. | |
CH. XI. 14, 15, 17-23. | |
14 And he was casting out a devil, and it was dumb. And it came to pass when the devil was gone out, the dumb spake; and the people wondered. | |
15 But some of them said, He casteth out devils through Beelzebub, the chief of the devils. | |
17 But he, knowing their thoughts, said unto them, Every kingdom divided against itself, is brought to desolation; and a house divided against a house, falleth. | |
18 If Satan also be divided against himself, how shall his kingdom stand? because ye say that I cast out devils through Beelzebub. | |
19 And if I by Beelzebub cast out devils, by whom do your sons cast them out? therefore shall they be your judges. | |
20 But if I with the finger of God cast out devils, no doubt the kingdom of God is come upon you. | |
21 When a strong man armed keepeth his palace, his goods are in peace: | |
22 But when a stronger than he shall come upon him, and overcome him, he taketh from him all his armour, wherein he trusted, and divideth his spoils. | |
23 He that is not with me, is against me: and he that gathereth not with me scattereth. |
Matthew. | Luke. |
CH. XII. 38-45. | CH. XI. 16, 24-36. |
38 Then certain of the scribes and of the Pharisees answered, saying, Master, we would see a sign from thee. | And others tempting him, sought of him a sign from heaven. |
39 But he answered and said to them, An evil and adulterous generation seeketh after a sign, and there shall no sign be given153 to it, but the sign of the prophet Jonas. | 29 And when the people had gathered thick together, he began to say, This is an evil generation: they seek a sign, and there shall no sign be given it, but the sign of Jonas the prophet. |
40 For as Jonas was three days and three nights in the whale's belly,154 so shall the Son of man be three days and three nights in the heart of the earth. | |
41 The men of Nineveh shall rise in judgment with this generation, and shall condemn it: because they repented at the preaching of Jonas,155 and behold, a greater than Jonas is here. | 30 For as Jonas was a sign unto the Ninevites so shall also the Son of man be to this generation. |
42 The queen of the south shall rise up in the judgment with this generation, and shall condemn it: for she came from the uttermost parts of the earth to hear the wisdom of Solomon;156 and behold, a greater than Solomon is here. | 31 The queen of the south shall rise up in the judgment with the men of this generation, and condemn them: for she came from the utmost parts of the earth, to hear the wisdom of Solomon; and behold, a greater than Solomon is here |
32 The men of Nineveh shall rise up in the judgment with this generation, and shall condemn it: for they repented at the preaching of Jonas; and behold, a greater than Jonas is here. | |
33 No man when he hath lighted a candle putteth it in a secret place, neither under a bushel, but on a candlestick, that they which come in may see the light. | |
34 The light of the body is thy eye: therefore when thine eye is single, thy whole body also is full of light; but when thine eye is evil, thy body also is full of darkness. | |
35 Take heed therefore, that the light which is in thee be not darkness. | |
36 If thy whole body therefore be full of light, having no part dark, the whole shall be full of light; as when the bright shining of a candle doth give thee light. | |
43 When the unclean spirit is gone out of a man, he walketh through dry places, seeking rest, and findeth none. | 24 When the unclean spirit is gone out of a man, he walketh through dry places, seeking rest: and finding none, he saith, I will return unto my house whence I came out. |
44 Then he saith, I will return into my house from whence I came out; and when he is come, he findeth it empty, swept, and garnished. | 25 And when he cometh, he findeth it swept and garnished. |
45 Then goeth he, and taketh with himself seven other spirits more wicked than himself, and they enter in and dwell there: and the last state of that man is worse than the first. Even so shall it be also unto this wicked generation. | 26 Then goeth he, and taketh to him seven other spirits more wicked than himself; and they enter in, and dwell there: and the last state of that man is worse than the first. |
27 And it came to pass, as he spake these things, a certain woman of the company lifted up her voice, and said unto him, Blessed is the womb that bare thee, and the paps which thou hast sucked. | |
28 But he said, Yea, rather blessed are they that hear the word of God, and keep it. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XII. 46-50. | CH. III. 31-35. |
46 While he yet talked to the people, behold, his mother and his brethren stood without, desiring to speak with him. | 31 There came then his brethren and his mother, and standing without, sent unto him, calling him. |
47 Then one said unto him, Behold, thy mother and thy brethren stand without, desiring to speak with thee. | 32 And the multitude sat about him; and they said unto him, Behold, thy mother and thy brethren without seek for thee. |
48 But he answered and said unto him that told him, Who is my mother? and who are my brethren? | 33 And he answered them, saying, Who is my mother, or my brethren? and who are my brethren? |
49 And he stretched forth his hand toward his disciples, and said, Behold my mother and my brethren! | 34 And he looked round about on them which sat about him, and said, Behold, my mother and my brethren! |
50 For whosoever shall do the will of my Father which is in heaven, the same is my brother, and sister, and mother. | 35 For whosoever shall do the will of God, the same is my brother, and my sister, and mother. |
Luke. | |
CH. VIII. 19-21. | |
19 Then came to him his mother and his brethren, and could not come at him for the press. | |
20 And it was told him by certain, which said, Thy mother and thy brethren stand without, desiring to see thee. | |
21 And he answered and said unto them, My mother and my brethren are these which hear the word of God, and do it. |
Luke. | |
CH. XI. 37-54 | |
37 And as he spake, a certain Pharisee besought him to dine with him: and he went in and sat down to meat. | |
38 And when the Pharisee saw it, he marvelled that he had not first washed157 before dinner. | |
39 And the Lord said unto him, Now do ye Pharisees make clean the outside of the cup and the platter; but your inward part is full of ravening and wickedness. | |
40 Ye fools, did not he that made that which is without, make that which is within also? | |
41 But rather give alms of such things as ye have; and behold, all things are clean unto you. | |
42 But wo unto you, Pharisees! for ye tithe mint, and rue, and all manner of herbs, and pass over judgment and the love of God: these ought ye to have done, and not to leave the other undone. | |
43 Wo unto you, Pharisees! for ye love the uppermost seats in the synagogues, and greetings in the markets. | |
44 Wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye are as graves which appear not, and the men that walk over them are not aware of them. | |
45 Then answered one of the lawyers, and said unto him, Master, thus saying, thou reproachest us also. | |
46 And he said, Wo unto you also, ye lawyers! for ye lade men with burdens grievous to be borne, and ye yourselves touch not the burdens with one of your fingers. | |
47 Wo unto you! for ye build the sepulchres of the prophets, and your fathers killed them. | |
48 Truly ye bear witness, that ye allow the deeds of your fathers: for they indeed killed them, and ye build their sepulchres. | |
49 Therefore also said the wisdom of God, I will send them prophets and apostles, and some of them they shall slay and persecute: | |
50. That the blood of all the prophets, which was shed from the foundation of the world, may be required of this generation; | |
51 From the blood of Abel158 unto the blood of Zacharias, which perished between the altar and the temple: verily, I say unto you, It shall be required of this generation. | |
52 Wo unto you, lawyers! for ye have taken away the key of knowledge: ye entered not in yourselves, and them that were entering in ye hindered. | |
53 And as he said these things unto them, the scribes and the Pharisees began to urge him vehemently, and to provoke him to speak of many things; | |
54 Laying wait for him, and seeking to catch something out of his mouth, that they might accuse him. |
Luke. | |
CH. XII. 1-59. | |
In the mean time, when there were gathered together an innumerable multitude of people, insomuch that they trode one upon another, he began to say unto his disciples first of all, Beware ye of the leaven of the Pharisees, which is hypocrisy. | |
2 For there is nothing covered, that shall not be revealed; neither hid, that shall not be known. | |
3 Therefore, whatsoever ye have spoken in darkness, shall be heard in the light; and that which ye have spoken in the ear in closets, shall be proclaimed upon the house-tops. | |
4 And I say unto you, my friends, Be not afraid of them that kill the body, and after that, have no more that they can do. | |
5 But I will forewarn you whom ye shall fear; Fear him, which, after he hath killed, hath power to cast into hell; yea, I say unto you, Fear him. | |
6 Are not five sparrows sold for two farthings, and not one of them is forgotten before God? | |
7 But even the very hairs of your head are all numbered. Fear not therefore: ye are of more value than many sparrows. | |
8 Also I say unto you, Whosoever shall confess me before men, him shall the Son of man also confess before the angels of God. | |
9 But he that denieth me before men, shall be denied before the angels of God. | |
10 And whosoever shall speak a word against the Son of man, it shall be forgiven him: but unto him that blasphemeth against the Holy Ghost, it shall not be forgiven. | |
11 And when they bring you unto the synagogues, and unto magistrates, and powers, take ye no thought how or what thing ye shall answer, or what ye shall say: | |
12 For the Holy Ghost shall teach you in the same hour what ye ought to say. | |
13 And one of the company said unto him, Master, speak to my brother, that he divide the inheritance with me. | |
14 And he said unto him, Man, who made me a judge, or a divider over you? | |
15 And he said unto them, Take heed, and beware of covetousness: for a man's life consisteth not in the abundance of the things which he possesseth. | |
16 And he spake a parable unto them, saying, The ground of a certain rich man brought forth plentifully: | |
17 And he thought within himself, saying, What shall I do, because I have no room where to bestow my fruits? | |
18 And he said, This will I do: I will pull down my barns, and build greater; and there will I bestow all my fruits and my goods. | |
19 And I will say to my soul, Soul, thou hast much goods laid up for many years; take thine ease, eat, drink, and be merry. | |
20 But God said unto him, Thou fool, this night thy soul shall be required of thee: then whose shall those things be, which thou hast provided? | |
21 So is he that layeth up treasure for himself, and is not rich toward God. | |
22 And he said unto his disciples, Therefore I say unto you, Take no thought for your life, what ye shall eat; neither for the body, what ye shall put on. | |
23 The life is more than meat, and the body is more than raiment. | |
24 Consider the ravens: for they neither sow nor reap: which neither have store-house, nor barn; and God feedeth them. How much more are ye better than the fowls? | |
25 And which of you with taking thought can add to his stature one cubit? | |
26 If ye then be not able to do that thing which is least, why take ye thought for the rest? | |
27 Consider the lilies how they grow: they toil not, they spin not; and yet I say unto you, that Solomon in all his glory was not arrayed like one of these. | |
28 If then God so clothe the grass, which is to-day in the field, and to-morrow is cast into the oven; how much more will he clothe you, O ye of little faith? | |
29 And seek not ye what ye shall eat, or what ye shall drink, neither be ye of doubtful mind. | |
30 For all these things do the nations of the world seek after: and your Father knoweth that ye have need of these things. | |
31 But rather seek ye the kingdom of God, and all these things shall be added unto you. | |
32 Fear not, little flock; for it is your Father's good pleasure to give you the kingdom. | |
33 Sell that ye have, and give alms: provide yourselves bags which wax not old, a treasure in the heavens that faileth not, where no thief approacheth, neither moth corrupteth. | |
34 For where your treasure is, there will your heart be also. | |
35 Let your loins be girded about, and your lights burning; | |
36 And ye yourselves like unto men that wait for their lord, when he will return from the wedding; that, when he cometh and knocketh, they may open unto him immediately. | |
37 Blessed are those servants, whom the lord when he cometh shall find watching: verily, I say unto you, that he shall gird himself, and make them to sit down to meat, and will come forth and serve them. | |
38 And if he shall come in the second watch, or come in the third watch, and find them so, blessed are those servants. | |
39 And this know, that if the good man of the house had known what hour the thief would come, he would have watched, and not have suffered his house to be broken through. | |
40 Be ye therefore ready also: for the Son of man cometh at an hour when ye think not. | |
41 Then Peter said unto him, Lord, speakest thou this parable unto us, or even to all? | |
42 And the Lord said, Who then is that faithful and wise steward, whom his lord shall make ruler over his household, to give them their portion of meat in due season? | |
43 Blessed is that servant, whom his lord when he cometh shall find so doing. | |
44 Of a truth I say unto you, That he will make him ruler over all that he hath. | |
45 But and if that servant say in his heart, My lord delayeth his coming; and shall begin to beat the men-servants, and maidens, and to eat and drink, and to be drunken; | |
46 The lord of that servant will come in a day when he looketh not for him, and at an hour when he is not aware, and will cut him in sunder, and will appoint him his portion with the unbelievers. | |
47 And that servant which knew his lord's will, and prepared not himself, neither did according to his will, shall be beaten with many stripes. | |
48 But he that knew not, and did commit things worthy of stripes, shall be beaten with few stripes. For unto whomsoever much is given, of him shall much be required; and to whom men have committed much, of him they will ask the more. | |
49 I am come to send fire on the earth, and what will I, if it be already kindled? | |
50 But I have a baptism to be baptized with; and how am I straitened till it be accomplished! | |
51 Suppose ye that I am come to give peace on earth? I tell you, Nay; but rather division: | |
52 For from henceforth there shall be five in one house divided, three against two, and two against three. | |
53 The father shall be divided against the son, and the son against the father; the mother against the daughter, and the daughter against the mother; the mother-in-law against her daughter-in-law, and the daughter-in-law against her mother-in-law. | |
54 And he said also to the people, When ye see a cloud rise out of the west,159 straightway ye say, There cometh a shower; and so it is. | |
55 And when ye see the south wind blow, ye say, There will be heat; and it cometh to pass. | |
56 Ye hypocrites, ye can discern the face of the sky and of the earth; but how is it, that ye do not discern this time? | |
57 Yea, and why even of yourselves judge ye not what is right? | |
58 When thou goest with thine adversary to the magistrate, as thou art in the way, give diligence that thou mayest be delivered from him; lest he hale thee to the judge, and the judge deliver thee to the officer, and the officer cast thee into prison. | |
59 I tell thee, thou shalt not depart thence, till thou hast paid the very last mite. |
Luke. | |
CH. XIII. 1-9. | |
There were present at that season some that told him of the Galileans, whose blood Pilate had mingled with their sacrifices. | |
2 And Jesus answering, said unto them, Suppose ye that these Galileans were sinners above all the Galileans, because they suffered such things? | |
3 I tell you, Nay; but, except ye repent, ye shall all likewise perish. | |
4 Or those eighteen, upon whom the tower in Siloam fell, and slew them, think ye that they were sinners above all men that dwelt in Jerusalem? | |
5 I tell you, Nay; but, except ye repent, ye shall all likewise perish. | |
6 He spake also this parable: A certain man had a fig-tree planted in his vineyard; and he came and sought fruit thereon, and found none. | |
7 Then said he unto the dresser of his vineyard, Behold, these three years I come seeking fruit on this fig-tree, and find none: cut it down; why cumbereth it the ground? | |
8 And he answering, said unto him, Lord, let it alone this year also, till I shall dig about it, and dung it: | |
9 And if it bear fruit, well: and if not, then after that thou shalt cut it down. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XIII. 1-23. | CH. IV. 1-25. |
The same day went Jesus out of the house, and sat by the sea-side. | And he began again to teach by the sea-side: and there was gathered unto him a great multitude, so that he entered into a ship, and sat in the sea; and the whole multitude was by the sea, on the land. |
2 And great multitudes were gathered together unto him, so that he went into a ship, and sat; and the whole multitude stood on the shore. | |
3 And he spake many things unto them in parables, saying, Behold, a sower went forth to sow; | 2 And he taught them many things by parables, and said unto them in his doctrine, |
3 Hearken; Behold, there went out a sower to sow. | |
4 And when he sowed, some seeds fell by the way-side, and the fowls came and devoured them up: | 4 And it came to pass as he sowed, some fell by the way-side, and the fowls of the air came and devoured it up. |
5 Some fell upon stony places where they had not much earth: and forthwith they sprung up, because they had no deepness of earth: | 5 And some fell on stony ground, where it had not much earth; and immediately it sprang up, because it had no depth of earth: |
6 And when the sun was up, they were scorched; and because they had no root, they withered away. | 6 But when the sun was up it was scorched; and because it had no root, it withered away. |
7 And some fell among thorns; and the thorns sprung up, and choked them: | 7 And some fell among thorns, and the thorns grew up, and choked it, and it yielded no fruit. |
8 But other fell into good ground, and brought forth fruit, some a hundred-fold, some sixty-fold, some thirty-fold. | 8 And other fell on good ground, and did yield fruit that sprang up, and increased, and brought forth, some thirty, and some sixty, and some a hundred. |
9 Who hath ears to hear, let him hear. | 9 And he said unto them, He that hath ears to hear, let him hear. |
10 And the disciples came, and said unto him, Why speakest thou unto them in parables? | 10 And when he was alone, they that were about him, with the twelve, asked of him the parable. |
11 He answered and said unto them, Because it is given unto you to know the mysteries of the kingdom of heaven, but to them it is not given. | 11 And he said unto them, Unto you it is given to know the mystery of the kingdom of God: but unto them that are without, all these things are done in parables: |
12 For whosoever hath, to him shall be given, and he shall have more abundance: but whosoever hath not, from him shall be taken away even that he hath. | 12 That seeing they may see, and not perceive; and hearing they may hear, and not understand; lest at any time they should be converted, and their sins should be forgiven them. |
13 Therefore speak I to them in parables: because they seeing, see not; and hearing, they hear not; neither do they understand. | |
14 And in them is fulfilled the prophecy of Esaias,160 which saith, By hearing ye shall hear, and shall not understand; and seeing ye shall see, and shall not perceive: | |
15 For this people's heart is waxed gross, and their ears are dull of hearing, and their eyes they have closed; lest at any time they should see with their eyes, and hear with their ears, and should understand with their heart, and should be converted, and I should heal them. | |
16 But blessed are your eyes, for they see: and your ears, for they hear. | |
17 For, verily I say unto you, That many prophets and righteous men have desired to see those things which ye see, and have not seen them; and to hear those things which ye hear, and have not heard them. | |
18 Hear ye therefore the parable of the sower. | 13 And he said unto them, Know ye not this parable? and how then will ye know all parables? |
19 When any one heareth the word of the kingdom, and understandeth it not, then cometh the wicked one, and catcheth away that which was sown in his heart. This is he which received seed by the way-side. | 14 The sower soweth the word. |
15 And these are they by the way-side, where the word is sown; but when they have heard, Satan cometh immediately, and taketh away the word that was sown in their hearts. | |
20 But he that received the seed into stony places, the same is he that heareth the word, and anon with joy receiveth it; | 16 And these are they likewise which are sown on stony ground; who, when they have heard the word, immediately receive it with gladness; |
21 Yet hath he not root in himself, but dureth for a while: for when tribulation or persecution ariseth because of the word, by and by he is offended. | 17 And have no root in themselves, and so endure but for a time: afterward, when affliction or persecution ariseth for the word's sake, immediately they are offended. |
22 He also that received seed among the thorns is he that heareth the word; and the care of this world, and the deceitfulness of riches, choke the word, and he becometh unfruitful. | 18 and these are they which are sown among thorns; such as hear the word, |
19 And the cares of this world, and the deceitfulness of riches, and the lusts of other things entering in, choke the word, and it becometh unfruitful. | |
23 But he that received seed into the good ground is he that heareth the word, and understandeth it; which also beareth fruit, and bringeth forth, some a hundred-fold, some sixty, some thirty. | 20 And these are they which are sown on good ground; such as hear the word, and receive it, and bring forth fruit, some thirty-fold, some sixty, and some a hundred. |
21 And he said unto them, Is a candle brought to be put under a bushel, or under a bed? and not to be set on a candlestick? | |
22 For there is nothing hid, which shall not be manifested; neither was any thing kept secret, but that it should come abroad. | |
23 If any man have ears to hear, let him hear. | |
24 And he said unto them, Take heed what ye hear: With what measure ye mete, it shall be measured to you: and unto you that hear shall more be given. | |
25 For he that hath, to him shall be given: and he that hath not, from him shall be taken even that which he hath. |
Luke. | |
CH. VIII. 4-18. | |
4 And when much people were gathered together, and were come to him out of every city, he spake by a parable: | |
5 A sower went out to sow his seed: and as he sowed, some fell by the way-side; and it was trodden down, and the fowls of the air devoured it. | |
6 And some fell upon a rock; and as soon as it was sprung up, it withered away, because it lacked moisture. | |
7 And some fell among thorns; and the thorns sprang up with it, and choked it. | |
8 And other fell on good ground, and sprang up, and bare fruit a hundred-fold. And when he had said these things, he cried, He that hath ears to hear, let him hear. | |
9 And his disciples asked him, saying, What might this parable be? | |
10 And he said, Unto you it is given to know the mysteries of the kingdom of God: but to others in parables; that seeing they might not see, and hearing they might not understand. | |
11 Now the parable is this: The seed is the word of God. | |
12 Those by the way-side, are they that hear: then cometh the devil, and taketh away the word out of their hearts, lest they should believe and be saved. | |
13 They on the rock are they, which, when they hear, receive the word with joy; and these have no root, which for a while believe, and in times of temptation fall away. | |
14 And that which fell among thorns, are they, which, when they have heard, go forth, and are choked with cares, and riches, and pleasures of this life, and bring no fruit to perfection. | |
15 But that on the good ground are they, which, in an honest and good heart, having heard the word, keep it, and bring forth fruit with patience. | |
16 No man, when he hath lighted a candle, covereth it with a vessel, or putteth it under a bed; but setteth it on a candlestick, that they which enter in may see the light. | |
17 For nothing is secret, that shall not be made manifest; neither anything hid, that shall not be known, and come abroad. | |
18 Take heed therefore how ye hear: for whosoever hath, to him shall be given: and whosoever hath not, from him shall be taken even that which he seemeth to have. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XIII. 24-53. | CH. IV. 26-34. |
24 Another parable put he forth unto them, saying, The kingdom of heaven is likened unto a man which sowed good seed in his field: | |
25 But while men slept, his enemy came and sowed tares among the wheat, and went his way. | |
26 But when the blade was sprung up, and brought forth fruit, then appeared the tares also. | |
27 So the servants of the householder came and said unto him, Sir, didst not thou sow good seed in thy field? from whence then hath it tares? | |
28 He said unto them, An enemy hath done this. The servant said unto him, Wilt thou then that we go and gather them up? | 26 And he said, So is the kingdom of God, as if a man should cast seed into the ground; |
29 But he said, Nay; lest while ye gather up the tares, ye root up also the wheat with them. | 27 And should sleep, and rise night and day, and the seed should spring and grow up, he knoweth not how. |
30 Let both grow together until the harvest: and in the time of harvest I will say to the reapers, Gather ye together first the tares, and bind them in bundles to burn them: but gather the wheat into my barn. | 28 For the earth bringeth forth fruit of herself; first the blade, then the ear, after that the full corn in the ear. |
29 But when the fruit is brought forth, immediately he putteth in the sickle, because the harvest is come. | |
31 Another parable put he forth unto them, saying, The kingdom of heaven is like to a grain of mustard-seed, which a man took, and sowed in his field: | 30 And he said, Whereunto shall we liken the kingdom of God? or with what comparison shall we compare it? |
32 Which indeed is the least of all seeds: but when it is grown, it is the greatest among herbs, and becometh a tree, so that the birds of the air come and lodge in the branches thereof. | 31 It is like a grain of mustard-seed, which when it is sown in the earth, in less than all the seeds that be in the earth: |
33 Another parable spake he unto them; The kingdom of heaven is like unto leaven, which a woman took, and hid in three measures of meal, till the whole was leavened. | 32 But when it is sown, it groweth up, and becometh greater than all herbs, and shooteth out great branches; so that the fowls of the air may lodge under the shadow of it. |
34 All these things spake Jesus unto the multitude in parables; and without a parable spake he not unto them: | 33 And with many such parables spake he the word unto them, as they were able to hear it. |
35 That it might be fulfilled which was spoken by the prophet,161 saying, I will open my mouth in parables; I will utter things which have been kept secret from the foundation of the world. | 34 But without a parable spake he not unto them: and when they were alone, he expounded all things to his disciples. |
36 Then Jesus sent the multitude away, and went into the house: and his disciples came unto him, saying, Declare unto us the parable of the tares of the field. | |
37 He answered and said unto them, He that soweth the good seed is the Son of man; | |
38 The field is the world; the good seed are the children of the kingdom; but the tares are the children of the wicked one; | |
39 The enemy that sowed them is the devil; the harvest is the end of the world; and the reapers are the angels. | |
40 As therefore the tares are gathered and burned in the fire; so shall it be in the end of this world. | |
41 The Son of man shall send forth his angels, and they shall gather out of his kingdom all things that offend, and them which do iniquity; | |
42 And shall cast them into a furnace of fire; there shall be wailing and gnashing of teeth. | |
43 Then shall the righteous shine forth as the sun in the kingdom of their Father. Who hath ears to hear, let him hear. | |
44 Again, The kingdom of heaven is like unto treasure hid in a field; the which when a man hath found, he hideth, and for joy thereof goeth and selleth all that he hath, and buyeth that field. | |
45 Again, The kingdom of heaven is like unto a merchant-man seeking goodly pearls: | |
46 Who, when he had found one pearl of great price, went and sold all that he had, and bought it. | |
47 Again, The kingdom of heaven is like unto a net, that was cast into the sea, and gathered of every kind: | |
48 Which, when it was full, they drew to shore, and sat down, and gathered the good into vessels, but cast the bad away. | |
49 So shall it be at the end of the world: the angels shall come forth, and sever the wicked from among the just, | |
50 And shall cast them into the furnace of fire: there shall be wailing and gnashing of teeth. | |
51 Jesus saith unto them, Have ye understood all these things? They say unto him, Yea, Lord. | |
52 Then said he unto them, Therefore every scribe which is instructed unto the kingdom of heaven, is like unto a man that is a householder, which bringeth forth out of his treasure things new and old. | |
53 And it came to pass, that when Jesus had finished these parables, he departed thence. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. VIII. 18-27. | CH. IV. 35-41. |
18 Now when Jesus saw great multitudes about him, he gave commandment to depart unto the other side. | And the same day, when the even was come, he saith unto them, Let us pass over unto the other side. |
19 And a certain scribe came, and said unto him, Master, I will follow thee whithersoever thou goest. | |
20 And Jesus saith unto him, The foxes have holes, and the birds of the air have nests; but the Son of man hath not where to lay his head. | |
21 And another of his disciples said unto him, Lord, suffer me first to go and bury my father. | |
22 But Jesus said unto him, Follow me; and let the dead bury their dead. | |
23 And when he was entered into a ship, his disciples followed him. | 36 And when they had sent away the multitude, they took him even as he was in the ship. And there were also with him other little ships. |
24 And behold, there arose a great tempest in the sea, insomuch that the ship was covered with the waves: but he was asleep. | 37 And there arose a great storm of wind, and the waves beat into the ship, so that it was now full. |
25 And his disciples came to him, and awoke him, saying, Lord, save us: we perish. | 38 And he was in the hinder part of the ship, asleep on a pillow: and they awake him, and say unto him, Master, carest thou not that we perish? |
26 And he saith unto them, Why are ye fearful, O ye of little faith? Then he arose, and rebuked the winds and the sea; and there was a great calm. | 39 And he arose and rebuked the wind, and said unto the sea, Peace, be still: and the wind ceased, and there was a great calm. |
40 And he said unto them, Why are ye so fearful? how is that ye have no faith? | |
27 But the men marvelled, saying, What manner of man is this, that even the winds and the sea obey him! | 41 And they feared exceedingly, and said one to another, What manner of man is this, that even the wind and the sea obey him? |
Luke. | |
CH. VIII. 22-25. | |
CH. IX. 57-62. | |
22 Now it came to pass on a certain day, that he went into a ship with his disciples: and he said unto them, Let us go over unto the other side of the lake. | |
CH. IX. | |
57 And it came to pass, that as they went in the way, a certain man said unto him, Lord, I will follow thee whithersoever thou goest. | |
58 And Jesus said unto him, Foxes have holes, and birds of the air have nests; but the Son of man hath not where to lay his head. | |
59 And he said unto another, Follow me. But he said, Lord, suffer me first to go and bury my father. | |
60 Jesus said unto him, Let the dead bury their dead: but go thou and preach the kingdom of God. | |
61 And another also said, Lord, I will follow thee; but let me first go bid them farewell which are at home at my house. | |
62 And Jesus said unto him, No man having put his hand to the plough, and looking back, is fit for the kingdom of God. | |
CH. VIII. | |
22 And they launched forth. | |
23 But as they sailed, he fell asleep: and there came down a storm of wind on the lake; and they were filled with water, and were in jeopardy. | |
24 And they came to him, and awoke him, saying, Master, Master, we perish. Then he arose, and rebuked the wind, and the raging of the water: and they ceased, and there was a calm. | |
25 And he said unto them, Where is your faith? And they being afraid, wondered, saying one to another, What manner of man is this! for he commandeth even the winds and water, and they obey him. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. VIII. 28-34. | CH. V. 1-21. |
CH. IX. 1. | |
28 And when he was come to the other side, into the country of the Gegesenes,162 there met him two possessed with devils, coming out of the tombs, exceeding fierce, so that no man might pass by that way. | And they came over unto the other side of the sea, into the country of the Gadarenes. |
2 And when he was come out of the ship, immediately there met him out of the tombs a man with an unclean spirit, | |
3 Who had his dwelling among the tombs; and no man could bind him, no, not with his chains: | |
4 Because that he had been often bound with fetters and chains, and the chains had been plucked asunder by him, and the fetters broken in pieces: neither could any man tame him. | |
5 And always, night and day, he was in the mountains, and in the tombs, crying, and cutting himself with stones. | |
6 But when he saw Jesus afar off, he ran and worshipped him, | |
7 And cried with a loud voice, and said, What have I to do with thee, Jesus, thou Son of the most high God? I adjure thee by God, that thou torment me not. | |
8 (For he said unto him, Come out of the man, thou unclean spirit.) | |
29 And behold, they cried out, saying, What have we to do with thee, Jesus, thou Son of God? art thou come hither to torment us before the time? | 9 And he asked him, What is thy name? And he answered, saying, My name is Legion: for we are many. |
10 And he besought him much that he would not send them away out of the country. | |
30 And there was a good way off163 from them a herd of many swine, feeding. | 11 Now there was there nigh unto the mountains a great herd of swine164 feeding. |
31 So the devils besought him, saying If thou cast us out, suffer us to go away into the herd of swine. | 12 And all the devils besought him, saying, Send us into the swine, that we may enter into them. |
32 And he said unto them, Go. And when they were come out, they went into the herd of swine: and behold, the whole herd of swine ran violently down a steep place into the sea, and perished in the waters. | 13 And forthwith Jesus gave them leave. And the unclean spirits went out, and entered into the swine: and the herd ran violently down a steep place into the sea, (they were about two thousand) and were choked in the sea. |
33 And they that kept them, fled, and went their ways into the city, and told everything; and what was befallen to the possessed of the devils. | 14 And they that fed the swine fled and told it in the city, and in the country. And they went out to see what it was that was done. |
34 And behold, the whole city came out to meet Jesus: and when they saw him, they besought him that he would depart out of their coasts. | 15 And they come to Jesus, and see him that was possessed with the devil, and had the legion, sitting, and clothed, and in his right mind: and they were afraid. |
16 And they that saw it told them how it befell to him that was possessed with the devil, and also concerning the swine. | |
17 And they began to pray him to depart out of their coasts. | |
CH. IX. | |
And he entered into a ship, and passed over, and came into his own city. | 18 And when he was come into the ship, he that had been possessed with the devil prayed him that he might be with him. |
19 Howbeit Jesus suffered him not, but saith unto him, Go home to thy friends, and tell them how great things the Lord hath done for thee, and hath had compassion on thee. | |
20 And he departed, and began to publish in Decapolis how great things Jesus had done for him. And all men did marvel. | |
21 And when Jesus was passed over again by ship unto the other side, much people gathered unto him: and he was nigh unto the sea. |
Luke. | |
CH. VIII. 26-40. | |
26 And they arrived at the country of the Gadarenes, which is over against Galilee. | |
27 And when he went forth to land, there met him out of the city a certain man, which had devils long time, and ware no clothes, neither abode in any house, but in the tombs. | |
28 When he saw Jesus, he cried out, and fell down before him, and with a loud voice said, What have I to do with thee, Jesus, thou Son of God most high? I beseech thee torment me not. | |
29 (For he had commanded the unclean spirit to come out of the man. For oftentimes it had caught him: and he was kept bound with chains, and in fetters; and he brake the bands, and was driven of the devil into the wilderness.) | |
30 And Jesus asked him, saying, What is thy name? And he said, Legion: because many devils were entered into him. | |
31 And they besought him, that he would not command them to go out into the deep. | |
32 And there was there a herd of many swine feeding on the mountain: and they besought him that he would suffer them to enter into them. And he suffered them. | |
33 Then went the devils out of the man, and entered into the swine: and the herd ran violently down a steep place into the lake, and were choked. | |
34 When they that fed them saw what was done, they fled, and went and told it in the city and in the country. | |
35 Then they went out to see what was done; and came to Jesus, and found the man out of whom the devils were departed, sitting at the feet of Jesus,165 clothed, and in his right mind: and they were afraid. | |
36 They also which saw it, told them by what means he that was possessed of the devils was healed. | |
37 Then the whole multitude of the country of the Gadarenes round about, besought him to depart from them; for they were taken with great fear. And he went up into the ship, and returned back again. | |
38 Now, the man out of whom the devils were departed, besought him that he might be with him. But Jesus sent him away, saying, | |
39 Return to thine own house, and shew how great things God hath done unto thee. And he went his way and published throughout the whole city, how great things Jesus had done unto him. | |
40 And it came to pass, that, when Jesus was returned, the people gladly received him: for they were all waiting for him. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. IX. 10-17. | CH. II. 15-22. |
10 And it came to pass, as Jesus sat at meat in the house,166 behold, many publicans and sinners came and sat down with him and his disciples. | 15 And it came to pass, that as Jesus sat at meat in his house, many publicans and sinners sat also together with Jesus and his disciples; for there were many, and they followed him. |
11 And when the Pharisees saw it, they said unto his disciples, Why eateth your Master with publicans and sinners? | 16 And when the scribes and Pharisees saw him eat with publicans and sinners, they said unto his disciples, How is it that he eateth and drinketh with publicans and sinners? |
12 But when Jesus heard that, he said unto them, They that be whole need not a physician, but they that are sick. | 17 When Jesus heard it, he saith unto them, They that are whole, have no need of the physician, but they that are sick: I came not to call the righteous, but sinners to repentance. |
13 But go ye and learn what that meaneth,167 I will have mercy, and not sacrifice: for I am not come to call the righteous, but sinners to repentance. | 18 And the disciples of John, and of the Pharisees, used to fast: and they come, and say unto unto him, Why do the disciples of John, and of the Pharisees fast, but thy disciples fast not? |
14 Then came to him the disciples of John, saying, Why do we and the Pharisees fast oft, but thy disciples fast not? | |
15 And Jesus said unto them, Can the children of the bride-chamber mourn, as long as the bridegroom is with them? but the days will come, when the bridegroom shall be taken from them, and then shall they fast. | 19 And Jesus said unto them, Can the children of the bride-chamber fast, while the bridegroom is with them? As long as they have the bridegroom with them, they cannot fast. |
20 But the days will come, when the bridegroom shall be taken away from them, and then shall they fast in those days. | |
16 No man putteth a piece of new cloth unto an old garment: for that which is put in to fill it up, taketh from the garment, and the rent is made worse. | 21 No man also seweth a piece of new cloth on an old garment: else the new piece that filled it up, taketh away from the old, and the rent is made worse. |
17 Neither do men put new wine into old bottles: else the bottles break, and the wine runneth out, and the bottles perish: but they put new wine into new bottles, and both are preserved. | 22 And no man putteth new wine into old bottles: else the new wine doth burst the bottles, and the wine is spilled, and the bottles will be marred: but new wine must be put into new bottles. |
Luke. | |
CH. V. 29-39. | |
29 And Levi made him a great feast in his own house; and there was a great company of publicans, and of others that sat down with publicans and sinners? | |
30 But their scribes and Pharisees murmured against his disciples, saying, Why do you eat and drink with publicans and sinners? | |
31 And Jesus answering, said unto them, They that are whole need not a physician; but they that are sick. | |
32 I came not to call the righteous, but sinners to repentance. | |
33 And they said unto him, Why do the disciples of John fast often, and make prayers, and likewise the disciples of the Pharisees; but thine eat and drink? | |
34 And he said unto them, Can ye make the children of the bride-chamber fast, while the bridegroom is with them? | |
35 But the days will come, when the bridegroom shall be taken away from them, and then shall they fast in those days. | |
36 And he spake also a parable unto them; No man putteth a piece of a new garment upon an old: if otherwise, then both the new maketh a rent, and the piece that was taken out of the new, agreeth not with the old. | |
37 And no man putteth new wine into old bottles; else the new wine will burst the bottles, and be spilled, and the bottles shall perish. | |
38 But new wine must be put into new bottles, and both are preserved. | |
39 No man also having drunk old wine, straightway desireth new: for he saith, The old is better. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. IX. 18-26. | CH. V. 22-43. |
18 While he spake these things unto them, behold, there came a certain ruler, and worshipped him, saying, My daughter is even now dead: but come and lay thy hand upon her, and she shall live. | 22 And behold, there cometh one of the rulers of the synagogue, Jairus by name; and when he saw him, he fell at his feet. |
19 And Jesus arose, and followed him, and so did his disciples. | 23 And besought him greatly, saying, My little daughter lieth at the point of death: I pray thee, come and lay thy hands on her, that she may be healed; and she shall live. |
20 And behold, a woman which was diseased with an issue of blood twelve years, came behind him, and touched the hem of his garment. | 24 And Jesus went with him; and much people followed him, and thronged him. |
21 For she said within herself, If I may but touch his garment, I shall be whole. | 25 And a certain woman which had an issue of blood twelve years, |
22 But Jesus turned him about, and when he saw her, he said, Daughter, be of good comfort: thy faith hath made thee whole. And the woman was made whole from that hour. | 26 And had suffered many things of many physicians, and had spent all that she had, and was nothing bettered, but rather grew worse, |
27 When she had heard of Jesus, came in the press behind, and touched his garment: | |
28 For she said, If I may touch but his clothes, I shall be whole. | |
29 And straightway the fountain of her blood was dried up; and she felt in her body that she was healed of that plague. | |
30 And Jesus, immediately knowing in himself that virtue had gone out of him, turned him about in the press, and said, Who touched my clothes? | |
31 And his disciples said unto him, Thou seest the multitude thronging thee, and sayest thou, Who touched me? | |
32 And he looked round about to see her that had done this thing. | |
33 But the woman, fearing and trembling, knowing what was done in her, came and fell down before him, and told him all the truth. | |
34 And he said unto her, Daughter, thy faith hath made thee whole; go in peace, and be whole of thy plague. | |
35 While he yet spake, there came from the ruler of the synagogue's house certain which said, Thy daughter is dead: why troublest thou the Master any further? | |
36 As soon as Jesus heard the word that was spoken, he saith unto the ruler of the synagogue, Be not afraid, only believe. | |
37 And he suffered no man to follow him, save Peter, and James, and John the brother of James. | |
23 And when Jesus came into the ruler's house, and saw the minstrels and the people making a noise, | 38 And he cometh to the house of the ruler of the synagogue, and seeth the tumult, and them that wept and wailed greatly. |
24 He said unto them, Give place: for the maid is not dead, but sleepeth. And they laughed him to scorn. | 39 And when he was come in, he saith unto them, Why make ye this ado, and weep? the damsel is not dead, but sleepeth. |
25 But when the people were put forth, he went in, and took her by the hand, and the maid arose. | 40 And they laughed him to scorn. But, when he had put them all out, he taketh the father and the mother of the damsel, and them that were with him, and entereth in where the damsel was lying. |
26 And the fame hereof went abroad into all that land. | 41 And he took the damsel by the hand, and said unto her, Talitha-cumi: which is, being interpreted, Damsel, (I say unto thee) arise. |
42 And straightway the damsel arose, and walked; for she was of the age of twelve years. And they were astonished with a great astonishment. | |
43 And he charged them straitly that no man should know it; and commanded that something should be given her to eat. |
Luke. | |
CH. VIII. 41-56. | |
41 And behold, there came a man named Jairus, and he was a ruler of the synagogue: and he fell down at Jesus' feet, and besought him that he would come into his house: | |
42 For he had one only daughter, about twelve years of age, and she lay a-dying. But as he went, the people thronged him. | |
43 And a woman having an issue of blood twelve years, which had spent all her living upon physicians, neither could be healed of any, | |
44 Came behind him and touched the border of his garment: and immediately her issue of blood stanched. | |
45 And Jesus said, Who touched me? When all denied, Peter, and they that were with him, said, Master, the multitude throng thee, and press thee, and sayest thou, Who touched me? | |
46 And Jesus said, Somebody hath touched me: for I perceive that virtue is gone out of me. | |
47 And when the woman saw that she was not hid, she came trembling, and falling down before him, she declared unto him before all the people for what cause she had touched him, and how she was healed immediately. | |
48 And he said unto her, Daughter, be of good comfort: thy faith hath made thee whole; go in peace. | |
49 While he yet spake, there cometh one from the ruler of the synagogue's house, saying to him, Thy daughter is dead: trouble not the Master. | |
50 But when Jesus heard it, he answered him, saying, Fear not: believe only, and she shall be made whole. | |
51 And when he came into the house, he suffered no man to go in, save Peter, and James, and John, and the father and the mother of the maiden. | |
52 And all wept and bewailed her: but he said, Weep not: she is not dead, but sleepeth. | |
53 And they laughed him to scorn, knowing that she was dead. | |
54 And he put them all out, and took her by the hand, and called, saying, Maid, arise. | |
55 And her spirit came again, and she arose straightway: and he commanded to give her meat. | |
56 And her parents were astonished: but he charged them that they should tell no man what was done. |
Matthew. | |
CH. IX. 27-34. | |
27 And when Jesus departed thence, two blind men followed him, crying, and saying, Thou son of David, have mercy on us. | |
28 And when he was come into the house, the blind men came to him: and Jesus saith unto them, Believe ye that I am able to do this? They said unto him, Yea, Lord. | |
29 Then touched he their eyes, saying, According to your faith, be it unto you. | |
30 And their eyes were opened; and Jesus straitly charged them, saying, See that no man know it. | |
31 But they, when they were departed, spread abroad his fame in all that country. | |
32 As they went out, behold, they brought to him a dumb man possessed with a devil. | |
33 And when the devil was cast out, the dumb spake: and the multitudes marvelled, saying, It was never so seen in Israel. | |
34 But the Pharisees said, He casteth out devils, through the prince of the devils. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XIII. 54-58. | CH. VI. 1-6. |
54 And when he was come into his own country, he taught them in their synagogue, insomuch that they were astonished, and said, Whence hath this man this wisdom, and these mighty works? | And he went out from thence, and came into his own county; and his disciples follow him. |
55 Is not this the carpenter's son? is not his mother called Mary? and his brethren, James, and Joses, and Simon, and Judas? | 2 And when the sabbath-day was come, he began to teach in the synagogue: and many hearing him were astonished, saying, From whence hath this man these things? and what wisdom is this which is given unto him, that even such mighty works are wrought by his hands? |
56 And his sisters, are they not all with us? Whence then hath this man all these things? | 3 Is not this the carpenter, the son of Mary,168 the brother of James, and Joses, and of Juda, and Simon? and are not his sisters here with us? And they were offended at him. |
57 And they were offended in him. But Jesus said unto them, A prophet is not without honour, save in his own country, and in his own house. | 4 But Jesus said unto them, A prophet is not without honour, but in his own country, and among his own kin, and in his own house. |
5 And he could there do mighty work, save that he laid his hands upon a few sick folk, and healed them. | |
58 And he did not many mighty works there, because of their unbelief. | 6 And he marvelled because of their unbelief. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. IX. 35-38. CH. X. 1, 5-42. | CH. VI. 6-13. |
CH. XI. 1. | |
35 And Jesus went about all the cities and villages, teaching in their synagogues, and preaching the gospel of the kingdom, and healing every sickness, and every disease among the people. | |
36 But when he saw the multitudes, he was moved with compassion on them, because they fainted, and were scattered abroad as sheep having no shepherd. | |
37 Then saith he unto his disciples, The harvest truly is plenteous, but the labourers are few. | |
38 Pray ye therefore the Lord of the harvest, that he will send forth labourers into his harvest. | |
CHAP. X. | |
And when he had called unto him his twelve disciples, he gave them power against unclean spirits, to cast them out, and to heal all manner of sickness, and all manner of disease. | 7 And he called unto him the twelve, and began to send them forth by two and two, and gave them power over unclean spirits; |
5 These twelve Jesus sent forth, and commanded them, saying, Go not into the way of the Gentiles, and into any city of the Samaritans, enter ye not. | 8 And commanded them that they should take nothing for their journey, save a staff only; no scrip, no bread, no money in their purse: |
6 But go rather to the lost sheep of the house of Israel. | 9 But be shod with sandals; and not put on two coats. |
7 And as ye go, preach, saying, The kingdom of heaven is at hand. | 10 And he said unto them, In what place soever ye enter into a house, there abide till ye depart from that place. |
8 Heal the sick, cleanse the lepers, raise the dead, cast out devils: freely ye have received, freely give. | |
9 Provide neither gold, nor silver, nor brass in your purses; | |
10 Nor scrip for your journey, neither two coats, neither shoes,169 nor yet staves: (for the workman is worthy of his meat.) | |
11 And into whatever city or town ye shall enter, inquire who in it is worthy; and there abide till ye go thence. | |
12 And when ye come into a house, salute it. | |
13 And if the house be worthy, let your peace come upon it: but if it be not worthy, let your peace return to you. | |
14 And whosoever shall not receive you, nor hear your words, when ye depart out of that house, or city, shake off the dust of your feet. | 11 And whosoever shall not receive you, nor hear you, when ye depart thence, shake off the dust under your feet, for a testimony against them. Verify, I say unto you, it shall be more tolerable for Sodom and Gomorrah in the day of judgment, then for that city. |
15 Verily, I say unto you, It shall be more tolerable for the land of Sodom and Gomorrah, in the day of judgment, than for that city. | |
16 Behold, I send you forth as sheep in the midst of wolves: be ye therefore wise as serpents, and harmless as doves. | |
17 But beware of men: for they will deliver you up to the councils, and they will scourge you in their synagogues.170 | |
18 And ye shall be brought before governors and kings for my sake, for a testimony against them and the Gentiles. | |
19 But when they deliver you up, take no thought how or what ye shall speak, for it shall be given you in that same hour what ye shall speak. | |
20 For it is not ye that speak, but the Spirit of your Father which speaketh in you. | |
21 And the brother shall deliver up the brother to death, and the father the child: and the children shall rise up against their parents, and cause them to be put to death. | |
22 And ye shall be hated of all men for my name's sake: but he that endureth to the end shall be saved. | |
23 But when they persecute you in this city, flee ye into another: for verily I say unto you, Ye shall not have gone over the cities of Israel till the Son of man be come. | |
24 The disciple is not above his master, nor the servant above his lord. | |
25 It is enough for the disciple that he be as his master, and the servant as his lord: if they have called the master of the house Beelzebub, how much more shall they call them of his household? | |
26 Fear them not therefore: for there is nothing covered, that shall not be revealed; and hid, that shall not be known. | |
27 What I tell you in darkness, that speak ye in light: and what ye hear in the ear, that preach ye upon the house-tops. | |
28 And fear not them which kill the body, but are not able to kill the soul: but rather fear him which is able to destroy both soul and body in hell. | |
29 Are not two sparrows sold for a farthing? and one of them shall not fall on the ground without your Father. | |
30 But the very hairs of your head are all numbered. | |
31 Fear ye not therefore, ye are of more value than many sparrows. | |
32 Whosoever therefore shall confess me before men, him will I confess also before my Father which is in heaven. | |
33 But whosoever shall deny me before men, him will I also deny before my Father which is in heaven. | |
34 Think not that I am come to send peace on earth; I came not to send peace, but a sword. | |
35 For I am come to set a man at variance against his father, and the daughter against her mother, and the daughter-in-law against her mother-in-law. | |
36 And a man's foes shall be they of his own household.171 | |
37 He that loveth father or mother more than me, is not worthy of me: and he that loveth son or daughter more than me, is not worthy of me. | |
38 And he that taketh not his cross, and followeth after me, is not worthy of me. | |
39 He that findeth his life shall lose it: and he that loseth his life for my sake, shall find it. | |
40 He that receiveth you, receiveth me; and he that receiveth me, receiveth him that sent me. | |
41 He that receiveth a prophet in the name of a prophet, shall receive a prophet's reward; and he that receiveth a righteous man in the name of a righteous man, shall receive a righteous man's reward. | |
42 And whosoever shall give to drink unto one of these little ones, a cup of cold water only, in the name of a disciple, verily, I say unto you, he shall in no wise lose his reward. | |
CH. XI. | |
And it came to pass when Jesus had made an end of commanding his twelve disciples, he departed thence to teach and to preach in their cities. | And he went round about the villages teaching. |
12 And they went out, and preached that men should repent. | |
13 And they cast out many devils, and anointed with oil many that were sick, and healed them. |
Luke. | |
CH. IX. 1-6. | |
Then he called his twelve disciples together, and gave them power and authority over all devils, and to cure diseases. | |
2 And he sent them to preach the kingdom of God, and to heal the sick. | |
3 And he said unto them, Take nothing for your journey, neither staves, nor scrip, neither bread, neither money; neither have two coats apiece. | |
4 And whatsoever house ye enter into, there abide, and thence depart. | |
5 And whosoever will not receive you, when ye go out of that city, shake off the very dust from your feet for a testimony against them. | |
6 And they departed, and went through the towns, preaching the gospel, and healing everywhere. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XIV. 1, 2, 6-12. | CH. VI. 14-16, 21-29. |
At that time Herod the tetrarch heard of the fame of Jesus, | 14 And king Herod heard of him, (for his name was spread abroad,) and he said, That John the Baptist was risen from the dead, and therefore mighty works do shew forth themselves in him. |
2 And said unto his servants,172 This is John the Baptist; he is risen from the dead; and therefore mighty works do shew forth themselves in him. | 15 Others said, That it is Elias. And others said, That it is a prophet, or as one of the prophets. |
16 But when Herod heard thereof, he said, It is John, whom I beheaded: he is risen from the dead. | |
6 But when Herod's birth-day was kept,173 the daughter of Herodias danced before them, and pleased Herod. | 21 And when a convenient day was come, that Herod on his birth-day made a supper to his lords, high captains, and chief estates of Galilee: |
22 And when the daughter of the said Herodias came in, and danced, and pleased Herod, and them that sat with him, the king said unto the damsel, Ask of me whatsoever thou wilt, and I will give it thee. | |
7 Whereupon he promised with an oath to give her whatsoever she would ask. | 23 And he sware unto her, Whatsoever thou shalt ask of me, I will give it thee, unto the half of my kingdom. |
24 And she went forth, and said unto her mother, What shall I ask? And she said, The head of John the Baptist. | |
8 And she, being before instructed of her mother, said, Give me here John Baptist's head in a charger. | 25 And she came in straightway with haste unto the king, and asked, saying, I will that thou give me, by and by, in a charger, the head of John the Baptist. |
9 And the king was sorry: nevertheless for the oath's sake, and them which sat with him at meat, he commanded it to be given her. | 26 And the king was exceeding sorry; yet for his oath's sake, and for their sakes which sat with him, he would not reject her. |
10 And he sent, and beheaded John in the prison. | 27 And immediately the king sent an executioner, and commanded his head to be brought: and he went and beheaded him in the prison; |
11 And his head was brought in a charger, and given to the damsel: and she brought it to her mother. | 28 And brought his head in a charger, and gave it to the damsel; and the damsel gave it to her mother. |
12 And his disciples came, and took up the body, and buried it, and went and told Jesus. | 29 And when his disciples heard of it, they came and took up his corpse, and laid it in a tomb. |
Luke. | |
CH. IX. 7-9. | |
7 Now Herod the tetrarch heard of all that was done by him: and he was perplexed, because that it was said of some, that John was risen from the dead; | |
8 And of some, that Elias had appeared; and of others, that one of the old prophets was risen again. | |
9 And Herod said, John have I beheaded; but who is this of whom I hear such things? And he desired to see him. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XIV. 13-21. | CH. VI. 30-44. |
13 When Jesus heard of it, he departed thence by ship into a desert place apart: and when the people had heard thereof, they followed him on foot out of the cities. | 30 And the apostles gathered themselves together unto Jesus, and told him all things, both what they had done, and what they had taught. |
14 And Jesus went forth, and saw a great multitude, and was moved with compassion toward them, and he healed their sick. | 31 And he said unto them, Come ye yourselves apart into a desert place, and rest awhile: for there were many coming and going,174 and they had no leisure so much as to eat. |
32 And they departed into a desert place by ship privately. | |
33 And the people saw them departing, and many knew him, and ran afoot thither out of all cities, and outwent them, and came together unto him. | |
34 And Jesus, when he came out, saw much people, and was moved with compassion toward them, because they were as sheep not having a shepherd: and he began to teach them many things. | |
15 And when it was evening his disciples came to him, saying, This is a desert place, and the time is now past; send the multitude away, that they may go into the villages, and buy themselves victuals. | 35 And when the day was now far spent, his disciples came unto him, and said, This is a desert place, and now the time is far passed: |
36 Send them away, that they may go into the country round about, and into the villages, and buy themselves bread: for they have nothing to eat. | |
16 But Jesus said unto them, They need not depart; give ye them to eat. | 37 He answered and said unto them, Give ye them to eat. And they say unto him, Shall we go and buy two hundred pennyworth of bread, and give them to eat? |
17 And they say unto him, We have here but five loaves, and two fishes. | |
18 He said, Bring them hither to me. | 38 He saith unto them, How many loaves have ye? go and see. And when they knew, they say, Five, and two fishes. |
19 And he commanded the multitude to sit down on the grass, and took the five loaves, and the two fishes, and looking up to heaven, he blessed, and brake, and gave the loaves to his disciples, and the disciples to the multitude. | 39 And he commanded them to make all sit down by companies upon the green grass. |
40 And they sat down in ranks, by hundreds, and by fifties. | |
41 And when he had taken the five loaves, and the two fishes, he looked up to heaven, and blessed, and brake the loaves, and gave them to his disciples to set before them; and the two fishes divided he among them all. | |
20 And they did all eat, and were filled: and they took up of the fragments that remained twelve baskets full. | 42 And they did all eat, and were filled. |
43 And they took up twelve baskets full of the fragments, and of the fishes. | |
21 And they that had eaten were about five thousand men, besides women and children. | 44 And they that did eat of the loaves, were about five thousand men. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. IX. 10-17. | CH. VI. 1-14. |
10 And the apostles, when they were returned, told him all that they had done. And he took them, and went aside privately into a desert place, belonging to the city called Bethsaida. | After these things Jesus went over the sea of Galilee, which is the sea of Tiberias. |
2 And a great multitude followed him, because they saw his miracles which he did on them that were diseased. | |
11 And the people, when they knew it, followed him: and he received them, and spake unto them of the kingdom of God, and healed them that had need of healing. | 3 And Jesus went up into a mountain, and there he sat with his disciples. |
4 And the passover, a feast of the Jews, was nigh. | |
5 When Jesus then lifted up his eyes, and saw a great company come unto him, he saith unto Philip,175 Whence shall we buy bread that these may eat? | |
6 (And this he said to prove him: for he himself knew what he would do.) | |
12 And when the day began to wear away, then came the twelve, and said unto him, Send the multitude away, that they may go into the towns and country round about, and lodge, and get victuals: for we are here in a desert place. | 7 Philip answered him, Two hundred pennyworth of bread is not sufficient for them, that every one of them may take a little. |
8 One of his disciples, Andrew, Simon Peter's brother, saith unto him, | |
9 There is a lad here, which hath five barley loaves, and two small fishes: but what are they among so many? | |
13 But he said unto them, Give ye them to eat. And they said, We have no more but five loaves and two fishes; except we should go and buy meat for all this people. | 10 And Jesus said, Make the men sit down. (Now there was much grass in the place.) So the men sat down in number about five thousand. |
14 (For they were about five thousand men.) And he said to his disciples, Make them sit down by fifties176 in a company. | 11 And Jesus took the loaves; and when he had given thanks, he distributed to the disciples, and the disciples to them that were set down; and likewise of the fishes, as much as they would. |
15 And they did so, and made them all sit down. | 12 When they were filled, he said unto his disciples, Gather up the fragments that remain, that nothing be lost. |
16 Then he took the five loaves, and the two fishes, and looking up to heaven, he blessed them, and brake, and gave to the disciples to set before the multitude. | 13 Therefore they gathered them together, and filled twelve baskets with the fragments of the five barley loaves, which remained over and above unto them that had eaten. |
17 And they did eat, and were all filled: and there was taken up of fragments that remained to them twelve baskets. | 14 Then those men, when they had seen the miracle that Jesus did, said, This is of a truth that Prophet that should come into the world. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
Ch. XIV. 22-36. | CH. VI. 45-56. |
22 And straightway Jesus constrained his disciples to get into a ship, and to go before him unto the other side, while he sent the multitudes away. | 45 And straightway he constrained his disciples to get into the ship, and to go to the other side before unto Bethsaida, while he sent away the people. |
23 And when he had sent the multitudes away, he went up into a mountain apart to pray: and when the evening was come, he was there alone. | 46 And when he had sent them away, he departed into a mountain to pray. |
24 But the ship was now in the midst of the sea, tossed with waves: for the wind was contrary. | 47 And when even was come, the ship was in the midst of the sea, and he alone on the land. |
25 And in the fourth watch of the night Jesus went unto them, walking on the sea. | 48 And he saw them toiling in rowing; for the wind was contrary unto them: and about the fourth watch of the night he cometh unto them, walking upon the sea, and would have passed by them. |
26 And when the disciples saw him walking on the sea, they were troubled, saying, It is a spirit; and they cried out for fear. | 49 But when they saw him walking upon the sea, they supposed it had been a spirit, and cried out. |
27 But straightway Jesus spake unto them, saying, Be of good cheer; it is I; be not afraid. | 50 (For they all saw him, and were troubled.) And immediately he talked with them, and saith unto them, Be of good cheer: it is I; be not afraid. |
28 And Peter answered him and said, Lord, if it be thou, bid me come unto thee on the water. | |
29 And he said, Come. And when Peter was come down out of the ship, he walked on the water, to go to Jesus. | |
30 But when he saw the wind boisterous, he was afraid; and beginning to sink, he cried, saying, Lord, save me. | 51 And he went up unto them into the ship; and the wind ceased; and they were sore amazed in themselves beyond measure, and wondered. |
31 And immediately Jesus stretched forth his hand, and caught him, and said unto him, O thou of little faith, wherefore didst thou doubt? | 52 For they considered not the miracle of the loaves; for their heart was hardened. |
32 And when they were come into the ship, the wind ceased. | 53 And when they had passed over, they came into the land of Gennesaret, and drew to the shore. |
33 Then they that were in the ship came and worshipped him, saying, Of a truth thou art the Son of God. | 54 And when they were come out of the ship, straightway they knew him, |
34 And when they were gone over, they came into the land of Gennesaret. | 55 And ran through that whole region round about, and began to carry about in beds those that were sick, where they heard he was. |
35 And when the men of that place had knowledge of him, they sent out into all that country round about, and brought unto him all that were diseased; | 56 And whithersoever he entered, into villages, or cities, or country, they laid the sick in the streets, and besought him that they might touch, if it were but the border of his garment: and as many as touched him were made whole. |
36 And besought him that they might only touch the hem of his garment: and as many as touched him were made perfectly whole. |
John. | |
CH. VI. 15-21. | |
When Jesus therefore perceived that they would come and take him by force, to make him a king, he departed again into a mountain himself alone. | |
16 And when even was now come, his disciples went down unto the sea, | |
17 And entered into a ship, and went over the sea toward Capernaum. And it was now dark, and Jesus was not come to them. | |
18 And the sea arose by reason of a great wind that blew. | |
19 So when they had rowed about five and twenty or thirty furlongs, they see Jesus walking on the sea, and drawing nigh unto the ship: and they were afraid. | |
20 But he saith unto them, It is I; be not afraid. | |
21 Then they willingly received him into the ship: and immediately the ship was at the land whither they went. |
John. | |
CH. VI. 22-71. CH. VII. 1. | |
22 The day following, when the people which stood on the other side of the sea saw that there was none other boat there, save that one whereinto his disciples were entered, and that Jesus went not with his disciples into the boat, but that his disciples were gone away alone; | |
23 (Howbeit there came other boats from Tiberias nigh unto the place where they did eat bread, after that the Lord had given thanks:) | |
24 When the people therefore saw that Jesus was not there, neither his disciples, they also took shipping, and came to Capernaum, seeking for Jesus. | |
25 And when they had found him on the other side of the sea, they said unto him, Rabbi, when camest thou hither?177 | |
26 Jesus answered them and said, Verily, verily, I say unto you, Ye seek me, not because ye saw the miracles, but because ye did eat of the loaves, and were filled. | |
27 Labour not for the meat which perisheth, but for that meat which endureth unto everlasting life, which the Son of man shall give unto you: for him hath God the Father sealed. | |
28 Then said they unto him, What shall we do, that we might work the works of God? | |
29 Jesus answered and said unto them, This is the work of God, that ye believe on him whom he hath sent. | |
30 They said therefore unto him, What sign shewest thou then, that we may see, and believe thee? what dost thou work? | |
31 Our fathers did eat manna in the desert; as it is written,178 He gave them bread from heaven to eat. | |
32 Then Jesus said unto them, Verily, verily, I say unto you, Moses gave you not that bread from heaven; but my Father giveth you the true bread from heaven. | |
33 For the bread of God is he which cometh down from heaven, and giveth life unto the world. | |
34 Then said they unto him, Lord, evermore give us this bread. | |
35 And Jesus said unto them, I am the bread of life: he that cometh to me, shall never hunger; and he that believeth on me, shall never thirst. | |
36 But I said unto you, That ye also have seen me, and believe not. | |
37 All that the Father giveth me, shall come to me; and him that cometh to me, I will in no wise cast out. | |
38 For I came down from heaven, not to do mine own will, but the will of him that sent me. | |
39 And this is the Father's will which hath sent me, that of all which he hath given me, I should lose nothing, but should raise it up again at the last day. | |
40 And this is the will of him that sent me, that every one which seeth the Son, and believeth on him, may have everlasting life: and I will raise him up at the last day. | |
41 The Jews then murmured at him, because he said, I am the bread which came down from heaven. | |
42 And they said, Is not this Jesus the son of Joseph, whose father and mother we know? how is it then that he saith, I came down from heaven? | |
43 Jesus therefore answered and said unto them, Murmur not among yourselves. | |
44 No man can come to me, except the Father which hath sent me draw him: and I will raise him up at the last day. | |
45 It is written in the prophets,179 And they shall be all taught of God. Every man therefore that hath heard, and hath learned of the Father, cometh unto me. | |
46 Not that any man hath seen the Father, save he which is of God, he hath seen the Father. | |
47 Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that believeth on me hath everlasting life. | |
48 I am that bread of life.180 | |
49 Your fathers did eat manna in the wilderness, and are dead. | |
50 This is the bread which cometh down from heaven, that a man may eat therof, and not die. | |
51 I am the living bread which came down from heaven: if any man eat of this bread, he shall live for ever: and the bread that I will give is my flesh, which I will give for the life of the world. | |
52 The Jews therefore strove among themselves, saying, How can this man give us his flesh to eat? | |
53 Then Jesus said unto them, Verily, verily, I say unto you, Except ye eat the flesh of the Son of man, and drink his blood, ye have no life in you. | |
54 Whoso eateth my flesh, and drinketh my blood, hath eternal life; and I will raise him up at the last day. | |
55 For my flesh is meat indeed, and my blood is drink indeed. | |
56 He that eateth my flesh, and drinketh my blood, dwelleth in me, and I in him. | |
57 As the living Father hath sent me, and I live by the Father: so he that eateth me, even he shall live by me. | |
58 This is that bread which came down from heaven: not as your fathers did eat manna, and are dead: he that eateth of this bread shall live for ever. | |
59 These things said he in the synagogue, as he taught in Capernaum. | |
60 Many therefore of his disciples, when they had heard this, said, This is a hard saying; who can hear it? | |
61 When Jesus knew in himself that his disciples murmured at it, he said unto them, Doth this offend you? | |
62 What and if ye shall see the Son of man ascend up where he was before? | |
63 It is the Spirit that quickeneth; the flesh profiteth nothing: the words that I speak unto you, they are spirit, and they are life. | |
64 But there are some of you that believe not. For Jesus knew from the beginning who they were that believe not, and who should betray him. | |
65 And he said, Therefore said I unto you, that no man can come unto me, except it were given unto him of my Father. | |
66 From that time many of his disciples went back,181 and walked no more with him. | |
67 Then said Jesus unto the twelve, Will ye also go away? | |
68 Then Simon Peter answered him, Lord, to whom shall we go? thou hast the words of eternal life. | |
69 And we believe, and are sure that thou art that Christ, the Son of the living God. | |
70 Jesus answered them, Have not I chosen you twelve, and one of you is a devil?182 | |
71 He spake of Judas Iscariot the son of Simon: for he it was that should betray him, being one of the twelve. | |
CH. VII. | |
After these things Jesus walked in Galilee: for he would not walk in Jewry, because the Jews sought to kill him. |
Time. Six months.
[pg 238]Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XV. 1-20. | CH. VII. 1-23. |
Then came to Jesus scribes and Pharisees, which were of Jerusalem, saying, | Then came together unto him the Pharisees, and certain of the scribes, which came from Jerusalem. |
2 Why do thy disciples transgress the tradition of the elders?183 for they wash not their hands when they eat bread. | 2 And when they saw some of his disciples eat bread with defiled (that is to say, with unwashen) hands, they found fault. |
3 For the Pharisees, and all the Jews, except they wash their hands oft, eat not, holding the tradition of the elders. | |
4 And when they come from the market, except they wash, they eat not. And many other things there be, which they have received to hold, as the washing of cups, and pots, and brazen vessels, and tables.184 | |
5 Then the Pharisees and scribes asked him, Why walk not thy disciples according to the tradition of the elders, but eat bread with unwashen hands? | |
3 But he answered and said unto them, Why do ye also transgress the commandment of God by your tradition? | 6 He answered and said unto them, Well hath Esaias prophesied of you hypocrites, as it is written, This people honoureth me with their lips, but their heart is far from me. |
4 For God commanded,185 saying, Honour thy father and mother: and, He that curseth father or mother, let him die the death. | 7 Howbeit, in vain do they worship me, teaching for doctrines the commandments of men. |
5 But ye say, Whosoever shall say to his father or his mother, It is a gift, by whatsoever thou mightest be profited by me; | 8 For, laying aside the commandment of God, ye hold the tradition of men, as the washing of pots and cups: and many other such like things ye do. |
6 And honour not his father or his mother, he shall be free. Thus ye made the commandment of God of none effect by your tradition. | 9 And he said unto them, Full well ye reject the commandment of God, that ye may keep your own tradition. |
7 Ye hypocrites, well did Esaias prophesy of you,186 saying, | 10 For Moses said, Honour thy father and thy mother; and, Whoso curseth father or mother, let him die the death. |
8 This people draweth nigh unto me with their mouth, and honoureth me with their lips; but their heart is far from me. | 11 But ye say, If a man shall say to his father or mother, It is Corban, that is to say, a gift, by whatsoever thou mightest be profited by me; he shall be free. |
9 But in vain they do worship me, teaching for doctrines the commandments of men. | 12 And ye suffer him no more to do aught for his father or his mother; |
13 Making the word of God of none effect through your tradition, which ye have delivered: and many such like things do ye. | |
10 And he called the multitude, and said unto them, Hear, and understand: | 14 And when he had called all the people unto him, he said unto them, Hearken unto me every one of you, and understand. |
11 Not that which goeth into the mouth defileth a man; but that which cometh out of the mouth, this defileth a man. | 15 There is nothing from without a man, that entering into him, can defile him: but the things which come out of him, those are they that defile the man. |
12 Then came his disciples, and said unto him, Knowest thou that the Pharisees were offended after they heard this saying? | 16 If any man have ears to hear, let him hear. |
13 But he answered and said, Ever plant, which my heavenly Father hath not planted, shall be rooted up. | |
14 Let them alone: they be blind leaders of the blind. And if the blind lead the blind, both shall fall into the ditch. | |
15 Then answered Peter and said unto him, Declare unto us this parable. | 17 And when he was entered into the house from the people, his disciples asked him concerning the parable. |
16 And Jesus said, Are ye also yet without understanding? | 18 And he saith unto them, Are ye so without understanding also? Do ye not perceive, that whatsoever thing from without entereth into the man, it cannot defile him: |
17 Do not ye yet understand, that whatsoever entereth in at the mouth goeth into the belly, and is cast out into the draught? | |
18 But those things which proceed out of the mouth come forth from the heart; and they defile the man. | 19 Because it entereth not into his heart, but into the belly, and goeth out into the draught, purging all meats? |
19 For out of the heart proceed evil thoughts, murders, adulteries, fornications, thefts, false witness, blasphemies: | 20 And he said, That which cometh heart of the man, that defileth the man. |
20 These are the things which defile a man: but to eat with unwashen hands defileth not a man. | 21 For from within, out of the heart of men, proceed evil thoughts, adulteries, fornications, murders, |
22 Thefts, covetousness, wickedness, deceit, lasciviousness, an evil eye, blasphemy, pride, foolishness; | |
23 All these evil things come from within, and defile the man. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XV. 21-28. | CH. VII. 24-30. |
21 Then Jesus went thence, and departed into the coasts of Tyre and Sidon. | 24 And from thence he arose, and went into the borders of Tyre and Sidon, and entered into a house, and would have no man know it: but he could not be hid. |
22 And behold, a woman of Canaan came out of the same coasts, and cried unto him, saying, Have mercy on me, O Lord, thou son of David; my daughter is grievously vexed with a devil. | 25 For a certain woman, whose young daughter had an unclean spirit, heard of him, and came and fell at his feet: |
23 But he answered her not a word. And his disciples came and besought him, saying, Send her away; for she crieth after us. | 26 (The woman was a Greek, a Syrophenician187 by nation,) and she besought him that he would cast forth the devil out of her daughter. |
24 But he answered and said, I am not sent but unto the lost sheep of the house of Israel. | 27 But Jesus said unto her, Let the children first be filled: for it is not meet to take the children's bread, and to cast it unto the dogs. |
25 Then came she and worshipped him, saying, Lord, help me. | |
26 But he answered and said, It is not meet to take the children's bread and to cast it to dogs. | 28 And she answered and said unto him, Yes, Lord: yet the dogs under the table eat of the children's crumbs. |
27 And she said, Truth, Lord: yet the dogs eat of the crumbs which fall from their master's table. | 29 And he said unto her, For this saying, go thy way; the devil is gone out of thy daughter. |
28 Then Jesus answered and said unto her, O woman, great is thy faith: be it unto thee even as thou wilt. And her daughter was made whole from that very hour. | 30 And when she was come to her house, she found the devil gone out, and her daughter laid upon the bed. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XV. 29-38. | CH. VII. 31-37. CH. VIII. 1-9. |
29 And Jesus departed from thence, and came nigh unto the sea of Galilee; and went up into a mountain, and sat down there. | 31 And again departing from the coasts of Tyre and Sidon, he came unto the sea of Galilee, through the midst of the coasts of Decapolis. |
30 And great multitudes came unto him, having with them those that were lame, blind, dumb, maimed, and many others, and cast them down at Jesus' feet; and he healed them: | 32 And they bring unto him one that was deaf, and had an impediment in his speech; and they beseech him to put his hand upon him. |
33 And he took him aside from the multitude, and put his fingers into his ears, and he spit, and touched his tongue: | |
34 And looking up to heaven, he sighed, and saith unto him, Ephphatha, that is, Be opened. | |
35 And straightway his ears were opened, and the string of his tongue was loosed, and he spake plain. | |
36 And he charged them that they should tell no man: but the more he charged them, so much the more a great deal they published it; | |
31 Insomuch that the multitude wondered, when they saw the dumb to speak, the maimed to be whole, the lame to walk, and the blind to see: and they glorified the God of Israel. | 37 And were beyond measure astonished, saying, He hath done all things well; he maketh both the deaf to hear, and the dumb to speak. |
CH. VIII. | |
32 Then Jesus called his disciples unto him, and said, I have compassion on the multitude, because they continue with me now three days, and have nothing to eat: and I will not send them away fasting, lest they faint in the way. | In those days the multitude being very great, and having nothing to eat, Jesus called his disciples unto him, and saith unto them, |
2 I have compassion on the multitude, because they have now been with me three days, and have nothing to eat: | |
3 And if I send them away fasting to their own houses, they will faint by the way: for divers of them came from far. | |
33 And his disciples say unto him, Whence should we have so much bread in the wilderness, as to fill so great a multitude? | 4 And his disciples answered him, From whence can a man satisfy these men with bread here in the wilderness? |
34 And Jesus saith unto them, How many loaves have ye? And they said, Seven, and a few little fishes. | 5 And he asked them, How many loaves have ye? And they said, Seven. |
35 And he commanded the multitude to sit down on the ground. | 6 And he commanded the people to sit down on the ground: and he took the seven loaves, and gave thanks, and brake, and gave to his disciples to set before them; and they did set them before the people. |
36 And he took the seven loaves and the fishes, and gave thanks, and brake them, and gave to his disciples, and the disciples to the multitude. | 7 And they had a few small fishes: and he blessed, and commanded to set them also before them. |
37 And they did all eat, and were filled: and they took up of the broken meat that was left seven baskets full. | 8 So they did eat, and were filled: and they took up of the broken meat that was left, seven baskets. |
38 And they that did eat were four thousand men, besides women and children. | 9 And they that had eaten were about four thousand: and he sent them away. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XV. 39. CH. XVI. 1-4. | CH. VIII. 10-12. |
39 And he sent away the multitude, and took ship, and came into the coasts of Magdala.188 | 10 And straightway he entered into a ship with his disciples, and came into the parts of Dalmanutha. |
The Pharisees also with the Sadducees came, and, tempting, desired him that he would shew them a sign from heaven. | 11 And the Pharisees came forth, and began to question with him, seeking of him a sign from heaven, tempting him. |
2 He answered and said unto them, When it is evening, ye say, It will be fair weather: for the sky is red. | |
3 And in the morning, It will be foul weather to-day: for the sky is red and lowering. O ye hypocrites, ye can discern the face of the sky; but can ye not discern the signs of the times? | |
4 A wicked and adulterous generation seeketh after a sign; and there shall no sign be given unto it, but the sign of the prophet Jonas. | 12 And he sighed deeply in his spirit, and saith, Why doth this generation seek after a sign? Verily I say unto you, There shall no sign be given unto this generation. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XVI. 4-12. | CH. VIII. 13-21. |
4 And he left them, and departed. | 13 And he left them, and entering into the ship again, departed to the other side. |
5 And when his disciples were come to the other side, they had forgotten to take bread. | 14 Now the disciples had forgotten to take bread, neither had they in the ship with them more than one loaf. |
6 Then Jesus said unto them, Take heed and beware of the leaven of the Pharisees and of the Sadducees. | 15 And he charged them, saying, Take heed, beware of the leaven of the Pharisees, and of the leaven of Herod. |
7 And they reasoned among themselves, saying, It is because we have taken no bread. | 16 And they reasoned among themselves, saying, It is because we have no bread. |
8 Which when Jesus perceived, he said unto them, O ye of little faith, why reason ye among yourselves, because ye have brought no bread? | 17 And when Jesus knew it, he saith unto them, Why reason ye, because ye have no bread? perceive ye not yet, neither understand? have ye your heart yet hardened? |
18 Having eyes, see ye not? and having ears, hear ye not? and do ye not remember? | |
9 Do ye not yet understand, neither remember the five loaves of the five thousand, and how many baskets ye took up? | 19 When I brake the five loaves among five thousand, how many baskets full of fragments took ye up? They say unto him, Twelve. |
10 Neither the seven loaves of the four thousand, and how many baskets ye took up? | 20 And when the seven among four thousand, how many baskets full of fragments took ye up? And they said, Seven.189 |
11 How is it that ye do not understand that I spake it not to you concerning bread, that ye should beware of the leaven of the Pharisees and of the Sadducees? | 21 And he said unto them, How is it that ye do not understand? |
12 Then understood they how that he bade them not beware of the leaven of bread, but of the doctrine of the Pharisees and of the Sadducees. |
Mark. | |
CH. VIII. 22-26. | |
22 And he cometh to Bethsaida; and they bring a blind man unto him, and besought him to touch him. | |
23 And he took the blind man by the hand, and led him out of the town;190 and when he had spit on his eyes, and put his hands upon him, he asked him if he saw aught. | |
24 And he looked up, and said, I see men as trees walking. | |
25 After that, he put his hands again upon his eyes, and made him look up: and he was restored, and saw every man clearly. | |
26 And he sent him away to his house, saying, Neither go into the town, nor tell it to any in the town. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XVI. 13-20. | CH. VIII. 27-30. |
13 When Jesus came into the coasts of Cesarea Philippi, he asked his disciples, saying, Whom do men say that I, the Son of man, am? | 27 And Jesus went out, and his disciples, into the towns of Cesarea Philippi: and by the way he asked his disciples, saying unto them, Whom do men say that I am? |
14 And they said, Some say that thou art John the Baptist: some, Elias; and others, Jeremias, or one of the prophets. | 28 And they answered, John the Baptist: but some say, Elias; and others, One of the prophets. |
15 He saith unto them, But whom say ye that I am? | 29 And he saith unto them, But whom say ye that I am? And Peter answereth and saith unto him, Thou art the Christ. |
16 And Simon Peter answered and said, Thou art the Christ, the Son of the living God. | |
17 And Jesus answered and said unto him, Blessed art thou, Simon Bar-jona: for flesh and blood hath not revealed it unto thee, but my Father which is in heaven. | |
18 And I say also unto thee, That thou art Peter, and upon this rock I will build my church: and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it. | |
19 And I will give unto thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven: and whatsoever thou shalt bind on earth, shall be bound in heaven; and whatsoever thou shalt loose on earth, shall be loosed in heaven. | |
20 Then charged he his disciples that they should tell no man that he was Jesus the Christ. | 30 And he charged them that they should tell no man of him. |
Luke. | |
CH. IX. 18-21. | |
18 And it came to pass, as he was alone praying, his disciples were with him; and he asked them, saying, Whom say the people that I am? | |
19 They, answering, said, John the Baptist; but some say, Elias; and others say, That one of the old prophets is risen again. | |
20 He said unto them, But whom say ye that I am? Peter, answering, said, The Christ of God. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XVI. 21-28. | CH. VIII. 31-38. CH. IX. 1. |
21 From that time forth began Jesus to shew unto his disciples, how that he must go unto Jerusalem, and suffer many things of the elders, and chief priests, and scribes, and be killed, and be raised again the third day.191 | 31 And he began to teach them, that the Son of man must suffer many things, and be rejected of the elders, and of the chief priests, and scribes, and be killed, and after three days rise again. |
22 Then Peter took him, and began to rebuke him, saying, Be it far from thee, Lord: this shall not be unto thee. | 32 And he spake that saying openly And Peter took him, and began to rebuke him. |
23 But he turned, and said unto Peter, Get thee behind me, Satan; thou art an offence unto me: for thou savourest not the things that be of God, but those that be of men. | 33 But when he had turned about, and looked on his disciples, he rebuked Peter, saying, Get thee behind me, Satan: for thou savourest not the things that be of God, but the things that be of men. |
24 Then said Jesus unto his disciples If any man will come after me, let him deny himself, and take up his cross, and follow me. | 34 And when he had called the people unto him, with his disciples also, he said unto them, Whosoever will come after me, let him deny himself, and take up his cross, and follow me. |
25 For whosoever will save his life, shall lose it: and whosoever will lose his life for my sake, shall find it. | 35 For whosoever will save his life, shall lose it; but whosoever shall lose his life for my sake and the gospel's, the same shall save it. |
26 For what is a man profited, if he shall gain the whole world, and lose his own soul? or what shall a man give in exchange for his soul? | 36 For what shall it profit a man, if he shall gain the whole world, and lose his own soul? |
37 Or what shall a man give in exchange for his soul? | |
27 For the Son of man shall come in the glory of his Father, with his angels; and then he shall reward every man according to his works. | 38 Whosoever therefore shall be ashamed of me, and of my words, in this adulterous and sinful generation, of him also shall the Son of man be ashamed, when he cometh in the glory of his Father with the holy angels. |
28 Verily I say unto you, There be some standing here, which shall not taste of death, till they see the Son of man coming in his kingdom. | 1 And he said unto them, Verily, I say unto you, That there be some of them that stand here which shall not taste of death, till they have seen the kingdom of God come with power. |
Luke. | |
CH. IX. 22-27. | |
22 Saying, The Son of man must suffer many things, and be rejected of the elders, and chief priests, and scribes, and be slain, and be raised the third day. | |
23 And he said to them all, If any man will come after me, let him deny himself, and take up his cross daily, and follow me. | |
24 For whosoever will save his life, shall lose it: but whosoever will lose his life for my sake, the same shall save it. | |
25 For what is a man advantaged, if he gain the whole world, and lose himself, or be cast away? | |
26 For whosoever shall be ashamed of me, and of my words, of him shall the Son of man be ashamed, when he shall come in his own glory, and in his Father's, and of the holy angels. | |
27 But I tell you of a truth, there be some standing here which shall not taste of death till they see the Kingdom of God. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XVII. 1-13. | CH. IX. 2-13. |
And after six days,192 Jesus taketh Peter, James, and John his brother, and bringeth them up into a high mountain apart. | 2 And after six days, Jesus taketh with him Peter, and James, and John, and leadeth them up into a high mountain apart by themselves; and he was transfigured before them. |
2 And was transfigured before them: and his face did shine as the sun, and his raiment was white as the light. | 3 And his raiment became shining, exceeding white as snow; so as no fuller on earth can white them. |
3 And behold there appeared unto them Moses and Elias talking with him. | 4 And there appeared unto them Elias, with Moses: and they were talking with Jesus. |
4 Then answered Peter, and said unto Jesus, Lord, it is good for us to be here: if thou wilt, let us make here three tabernacles; one for thee, and one for Moses, and one for Elias. | 5 And Peter answered and said to Jesus, Master, it is good for us to be here: and let us make three tabernacles; one for thee, and one for Moses, and one for Elias. |
6 For he wist not what to say: for they were sore afraid. | |
5 While he yet spake, behold, a bright cloud overshadowed them: and behold, a voice out of the cloud, which said, This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well pleased: hear ye him. | 7 And there was a cloud that overshadowed them: and a voice came out of the cloud, saying, This is my beloved Son: hear him. |
6 And when the disciples heard it, they fell on their face, and were sore afraid. | |
7 And Jesus came and touched them, and said, Arise, and be not afraid. | |
8 And when they had lifted up their eyes, they saw no man, save Jesus only. | 8 And suddenly, when they had looked round about, they saw no man any more, save Jesus only with themselves. |
9 And as they came down from the mountain, Jesus charged them, saying, Tell the vision to no man, until the Son of man be risen again from the dead. | 9 And as they came down from the mountain, he charged them that they should tell no man what things they had seen, till the Son of man were risen from the dead. |
10 And they kept that saying with themselves, questioning one with another what the rising from the dead should mean. | |
10 And his disciples asked him, saying, Why then say the scribes, that Elias must first come? | 11 And they asked him, saying, Why say the scribes that Elias must first come? |
11 And Jesus answered and said unto them, Elias truly shall first come, and restore all things: | 12 And he answered and told them, Elias verily cometh first, and restoreth all things; and how it is written of the Son of man, that he must suffer many things, and be set at naught. |
12 But I say unto you, That Elias is come already, and they knew him not, but have done unto him whatsoever they listed: likewise shall also the Son of man suffer of them. | 13 But I say unto you, That Elias is indeed come, and they have done unto him whatsoever they listed, as it is written of him. |
13 Then the disciples understood that he spake unto them of John the Baptist. |
Luke. | |
CH. IX. 28-36. | |
28 And it came to pass, about an eight days after these sayings, he took Peter, and John, and James, and went up into a mountain to pray. | |
29 And as he prayed, the fashion of his countenance was altered, and his raiment was white and glistering. | |
30 And behold, there talked with him two men, which were Moses and Elias: | |
31 Who appeared in glory, and spake of his decease which he should accomplish at Jerusalem. | |
32 But Peter and they that were with him were heavy with sleep: and when they were awake, they saw his glory, and the two men that stood with him. | |
33 And it came to pass, as they departed from him, Peter said unto Jesus, Master, it is good for us to be here: and let us make three tabernacles; one for thee, and one for Moses, and one for Elias: not knowing what he said. | |
34 While he thus spake, there came a cloud, and overshadowed them: and they feared as they entered into the cloud. | |
35 And there came a voice out of the cloud, saying, This is my beloved Son: hear him. | |
36 And when the voice was past, Jesus was found alone. And they kept it close, and told no man193 in those days any of those things which they had seen. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XVII. 14-21. | CH. IX. 14-29. |
14 And when they were come to the multitude, there came to him a certain man kneeling down to him, and saying, | 14 And when he came to his disciples, he saw a great multitude about them, and the scribes questioning with them. |
15 Lord, have mercy on my son; for he is lunatic, and sore vexed, for oft-times he falleth into the fire, and oft into the water. | 15 And straightway all the people, when they beheld him, were greatly mazed, and, running to him, saluted him. |
16 And I brought him to thy disciples, and they could not cure him. | 16 And he asked the scribes, What question ye with them? |
17 And one of the multitude answered and said, Master, I have brought unto thee my son, which hath a dumb spirit; | |
18 And wheresoever he taketh him, he teareth him; and he foameth and gnasheth with his teeth, and pineth away; and I spake to thy disciples that they should cast him out, and they could not. | |
17 Then Jesus answered and said, O faithless and perverse generation, how long shall I be with you? how long shall I suffer you? Bring him hither to me. | 19 He answereth him, and saith, O faithless generation, how long shall I be with you? how long shall I suffer you? Bring him unto me. |
20 And they brought him unto him: and when he saw him, straightway the spirit tare him; and he fell on the ground, and wallowed, foaming. | |
21 And he asked his father, How long is it ago since this came unto him? And he said, Of a child. | |
22 And oft-times it hath cast him into the fire, and into the waters to destroy him: but if thou canst do any thing, have compassion on us, and help us. | |
23 Jesus said unto him, If thou canst believe, all things are possible to him that believeth. | |
24 And straightway the father of the child cried out, and said with tears, Lord, I believe: help thou mine unbelief. | |
25 When Jesus saw that the people came running together, he rebuked the foul spirit, saying unto him, Thou dumb and deaf spirit, I charge thee, come out of him, and enter no more into him. | |
26 And the spirit cried, and rent him sore, and came out of him: and he was as one dead; insomuch that many said, He is dead. | |
18 And Jesus rebuked the devil, and he departed out of him: and the child was cured from that very hour. | 27 But Jesus took him by the hand, and lifted him up; and he arose. |
19 Then came the disciples to Jesus apart, and said, Why could not we cast him out? | 28 And when he was come into the house, his disciples asked him privately, Why could we not cast him out? |
20 And Jesus said unto them, Because of your unbelief: for verily I say unto you, if ye have faith as a grain of mustard-seed, ye shall say unto this mountain, Remove hence to yonder place; and it shall remove; and nothing shall be impossible unto you. | 29 And he said unto them, This kind can come forth by nothing, but by prayer and fasting. |
21 Howbeit, this kind goeth not out, but by prayer and fasting. |
Luke. | |
CH. IX. 37-43. | |
37 And it came to pass, that on the next day, when they were come down from the hill, much people met him. | |
38 And behold, a man of the company cried out, saying, Master, I beseech thee look upon my son: for he is mine only child. | |
39 And lo, a spirit taketh him, and he suddenly crieth out; and it teareth him that he foameth again, and, bruising him, hardly departeth from him. | |
40 And I besought thy disciples to cast him out, and they could not. | |
41 And Jesus, answering, said, O faithless and perverse generation, how long shall I be with you, and suffer you? Bring thy son hither. | |
42 And as he was yet a coming, the devil threw him down, and tare him. And Jesus rebuked the unclean spirit, and healed the child, and delivered him again to his father. | |
43 And they were all amazed at the mighty power of God. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. xvii. 22, 23. | CH. ix. 30-32. |
30 And they departed thence, and passed through Galilee; and he would not that any man should know it. | |
22 And while they abode in Galilee, Jesus said unto them, The Son of man shall be betrayed into the hands of men: | 31 For he taught his disciples, and said unto them, The Son of man is delivered into the hands of men, and they shall kill him; and after that he is killed, he shall rise the third day. |
23 And they shall kill him, and the third day he shall be raised again. And they were exceeding sorry. | 32 But they understood not that saying, and were afraid to ask him. |
Luke. | |
CH. IX. 43-45. | |
43 But while they wondered every one at all things which Jesus did, he said unto his disciples, | |
44 Let these sayings sink down into your ears: for the Son of man shall be delivered into the hands of men. | |
45 But they understood not this saying, and it was hid from them, that they perceived it not: and they feared to ask him of that saying. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XVII. 24-27. | CH. IX. 33. |
24 And when they were come to Capernaum, they that received tribute-money,194 came to Peter, and said, Doth not your Master pay tribute? | 33 And he came to Capernaum: |
25 He saith, Yes. And when he was come into the house, Jesus prevented him, saying, What thinkest thou, Simon? of whom do the kings of the earth take custom or tribute? of their own children, or of strangers? | |
26 Peter saith unto him, Of strangers. Jesus saith unto him, Then are the children free. | |
27 Notwithstanding, lest we should offend them, go thou to the sea, and cast a hook, and take up the fish that first cometh up: and when thou hast opened his mouth, thou shalt find a piece of money: that take, and give unto them for me and thee. | |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XVIII. 1-35. | CH. IX. 33-50. |
33 And being in the house, he asked them, What was it that ye disputed among yourselves by the way? | |
At the same time came the disciples unto Jesus, saying, Who is the greatest in the kingdom of heaven? | 34 But they held their peace: for by the way they had disputed among themselves, who should be the greatest. |
35 And he sat down, and called the twelve, and saith unto them, if any man desire to be first, the same shall be last of all, and servant of all. | |
2 And Jesus called a little child unto him, and set him in the midst of them, | 36 And he took a child, and set him in the midst of them: and when he had taken him in his arms, he said unto them, |
3 And said, Verily, I say unto you, Except ye be converted, and become as little children, ye shall not enter into the kingdom of heaven. | 37 Whosoever shall receive one of such children in my name, receiveth me: and whosoever shall receive me, receiveth not me, but him that sent me. |
4 Whosoever therefore shall humble himself as this little child, the same is greatest in the kingdom of heaven. | 38 And John answered him, saying, Master, we saw one casting out devils in thy name, and he followeth not us; and we forbade him, because he followeth not us. |
5 And whoso shall receive one such little child in my name, receiveth me. | |
6 But whoso shall offend one of these little ones which believe in me, it were better for him that a millstone were hanged about his neck, and that he were drowned in the depth of the sea. | 39 But Jesus said, Forbid him not: for there is no man which shall do a miracle in my name, that can lightly speak evil of me. |
40 For he that is not against us, is on our part. | |
7 Wo unto the world because of offences! for it must needs be that offences come; but wo to that man by whom the offence cometh: | 41 for whosoever shall give you a cup of water to drink in my name, because ye belong to Christ, verily I say unto you, he shall not lose his reward. |
8 Wherefore, if thy hand or thy foot offend thee, cut them off, and cast them from thee; it is better for thee to enter into life halt or maimed, rather than having two hands or two feet, to be cast into everlasting fire. | 42 And whosoever shall offend one of these little ones that believe in me, it is better for him that a millstone were hanged about his neck, and he were cast into the sea. |
9 And if thine eye offend thee, pluck it out, and cast it from thee: it is better for thee to enter into life with one eye, rather than having two eyes, to be cast into hell-fire. | 43 And if thy hand offend thee, cut it off: It is better for thee to enter into life maimed, than having two hands to go into hell, into the fire that never shall be quenched: |
10 Take heed that ye despise not one of these little ones: for I say unto you, That in heaven their angels do always behold the face of my Father which is in heaven. | 44 Where their worm dieth not, and the fire is not quenched. |
11 For the Son of man is come to save that which was lost. | 45 And if thy foot offend thee, cut it off: it is better for thee to enter halt into life, than having two feet to be cast into hell, into the fire that never shall be quenched. |
12 How think ye? If a man have a hundred sheep, and one of them be gone astray, doth he not leave the ninety and nine, and goeth into the mountains, and seeketh that which is gone astray? | 46 Where their worm dieth not, and the fire is not quenched. |
13 And if so be that he find it, verily I say unto you, he rejoiceth more of that sheep, than of the ninety and nine which went not astray. | 47 And if thine eye offend thee, pluck it out: it is better for thee to enter into the kingdom of God with one eye, than having two eyes, to be cast into hell-fire: |
14 Even so it is not the will of your Father which is in heaven, that one of these little ones should perish. | 48 Where their worm dieth not, and the fire is not quenched. |
15 Moreover, if thy brother shall trespass against thee, go and tell him his fault between thee and him alone; if he shall hear thee, thou hast gained thy brother. | 49 For every one shall be salted with fire, and every sacrifice shall be salted with salt. |
16 But if he will not hear thee, then take with thee one or two more, that in the mouth of two or three witnesses every word may be established. | 50 Salt is good: but if the salt have lost his saltness, wherewith will ye season it? Have salt in yourselves, and have peace one with another. |
17 And if he shall neglect to hear them, tell it unto the church: but if he neglect to hear the church, let him be unto thee as a heathen man and a publican. | |
18 Verily, I say unto you, Whatsoever ye shall bind on earth, shall be bound in heaven: and whatsoever ye shall loose on earth, shall be loosed in heaven. | |
19 Again I say unto you, That if two of you shall agree on earth, as touching anything that they shall ask, it shall be done for them of my Father which is in heaven. | |
20 For where two or three are gathered together in my name, there am I in the midst of them. | |
21 Then came Peter to him, and said, Lord, how oft shall my brother sin against me, and I forgive him? till seven times? | |
22 Jesus saith unto him, I say not unto thee, Until seven times: but, Until seventy times seven. | |
23 Therefore is the kingdom of heaven likened unto a certain king which would take account of his servants. | |
24 And when he had begun to reckon, one was brought unto him which owed him ten thousand talents. | |
25 But forasmuch as he had not to pay, his lord commanded him to be sold, and his wife and children, and all that he had, and payment to be made. | |
26 The servant therefore fell down, and worshipped him, saying, Lord, have patience with me, and I will pay thee all. | |
27 Then the lord of that servant was moved with compassion, and loosed him, and forgave him the debt | |
28 But the same servant went out, and found one of his fellow-servants, which owed him a hundred pence: and he laid hands on him, and took him by the throat, saying, Pay me that thou owest. | |
20 And his fellow-servant fell down at his feet, and besought him, saying, Have patience with me, and I will pay thee all. | |
30 And he would not: but went and cast him into prison, till he should pay the debt. | |
31 So when his fellow-servants saw what was done, they were very sorry, and came and told unto their lord all that was done. | |
32 Then his lord, after that he had called him, said unto him, O thou wicked servant, I forgave thee all that debt, because thou desiredst me: | |
33 Shouldest not thou also have had compassion on thy fellow-servant, even as I had pity on thee? | |
34 And his lord was wroth, and delivered him to the tormentors, till he should pay all that was due unto him. | |
35 So likewise shall my heavenly Father do also unto you, if ye from your hearts forgive not every one his brother their trespasses. |
Luke. | |
CH. IX. 46-50. | |
46 Then there arose a reasoning among them, which of them should be greatest. | |
47 And Jesus perceiving the thought of their heart, took a child, and set him by him, | |
48 And said unto them, Whosoever shall receive this child in my name, receiveth me; and whosoever shall receive me, receiveth him that sent me: for he that is least among you all, the same shall be great. | |
49 And John answered and said, Master, we saw one casting out devils195 in thy name; and we forbade him, because he followeth not with us. | |
50 And Jesus said unto him, Forbid him not: for he that is not against us, is for us.196 |
Luke. | |
CH. X. 1-16. | |
After these things, the Lord appointed other seventy also, and sent them two and two before his face into every city, and place, whither he himself would come. | |
2 Therefore said he unto them, The harvest truly is great, but the labourers are few: pray ye therefore the Lord of the harvest, that he would send forth labourers into his harvest. | |
3 Go your ways: behold, I send you forth as lambs among wolves. | |
4 Carry neither purse, nor scrip, nor shoes: and salute no man by the way.197 | |
5 And into whatsoever house ye enter, first say, Peace be to this house. | |
6 And if the son of peace be there, your peace shall rest upon it: if not, it shall turn to you again. | |
7 And in the same house remain, eating and drinking such things as they give: for the labourer is worthy of his hire. Go not from house to house. | |
8 And into whatsoever city ye enter, and they receive you, eat such things as are set before you. | |
9 And heal the sick that are therein, and say unto them, The kingdom of God is come nigh unto you. | |
10 But into whatsoever city ye enter, and they receive you not, go your ways out into the streets of the same, and say, | |
11 Even the very dust of your city which cleaveth on us, we do wipe off against you: notwithstanding, be ye sure of this, that the kingdom of God is come nigh unto you. | |
12 But I say unto you, That it shall be more tolerable in that day for Sodom than for that city. | |
13 Wo unto thee, Chorazin! wo unto thee, Bethsaida! for if the mighty works had been done in Tyre and Sidon, which have been done in you, they had a great while ago repented, sitting in sackcloth and ashes. | |
14 But it shall be more tolerable for Tyre and Sidon at the judgment, than for you. | |
15 And thou, Capernaum, which art exalted to heaven, shall be thrust down to hell. | |
16 He that heareth you, heareth me; and he that despiseth you, despiseth me; and he that despiseth me, despiseth him that sent me. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. IX. 51-56. | CH. VII. 2-10. |
51 And it came to pass, when the time was come that he should be received up, he steadfastly set his face to go to Jerusalem, | 2 Now the Jews' feast of tabernacles was at hand. |
52 And sent messengers before his face: and they went and entered into a village of the Samaritans, to make ready for him. | 3 His brethren therefore said unto him, Depart hence, and go into Judea, that thy disciples also may see the works that thou doest. |
53 And they did not receive him,198 because his face was as though he would go to Jerusalem. | 4 For there is no man that doeth anything in secret, and he himself seeketh to be known openly. If thou do these things, show thyself to the world. |
54 And when his disciples James and John saw this, they said, Lord, wilt thou that we command fire to come down from heaven, and consume them, even as Elias did? | 5 (For neither did his brethren believe in him.) |
55 But he turned, and rebuked them, and said, Ye know not what manner of spirit ye are of. | 6 Then Jesus said unto them, My time is not yet come: but your time is always ready. |
56 For the Son of man is not come to destroy men's lives, but to save them. And they went to another village. | 7 The world cannot hate you; but me it hateth, because I testify of it, that the works thereof are evil. |
8 Go ye up unto this feast: I go not up yet unto this feast; for my time is not yet full come. | |
9 When he had said these words unto them, he abode still in Galilee. | |
10 But when his brethren were gone up, then went he also up unto the feast, not openly, but as it were in secret. |
Luke. | |
CH. XVII. 11-19. | |
11 And it came to pass, as he went to Jerusalem, that he passed through the midst of Samaria and Galilee. | |
12 And as he entered into a certain village, there met him ten men that were lepers, which stood afar off: | |
13 And they lifted up their voices, and said, Jesus, Master, have mercy on us. | |
14 And when he saw them, he said unto them, Go shew yourselves unto the priests. And it came to pass, that, as they went, they were cleansed. | |
15 And one of them, when he saw that he was healed, turned back, and with a loud voice glorified God, | |
16 And fell down on his face at his feet, giving him thanks: and he was a Samaritan. | |
17 And Jesus answering, said, Were there not ten cleansed? but where are the nine? | |
18 There are not found that returned to give glory to God, save this stranger. | |
19 And he said unto him, Arise, go thy way: thy faith hath made thee whole. |
Time. Six months, less one week.
[pg 276]John. | |
CH. VII. 11-53. CH. VIII. 1. | |
11 Then the Jews sought him at the feast, and said, Where is he? | |
12 And there was much murmuring among the people concerning him: for some said, He is a good man: others said, Nay; but he deceiveth the people. | |
13 Howbeit, no man spake openly of him, for fear of the Jews. | |
14 Now, about the midst of the feast, Jesus went up into the temple and taught. | |
15 And the Jews marvelled, saying, How knoweth this man letters, having never learned? | |
16 Jesus answered them, and said, My doctrine is not mine, but his that sent me. | |
17 If any man will do his will, he shall know of the doctrine, whether it be of God, or whether I speak of myself. | |
18 He that speaketh of himself, seeketh his own glory: but he that seeketh his glory that sent him, the same is true, and no unrighteousness is in him. | |
19 Did not Moses give you the law, and yet none of you keepeth the law? Why go ye about to kill me? | |
20 The people answered and said, Thou hast a devil: who goeth about to kill thee? | |
21 Jesus answered and said unto them, I have done one work, and ye all marvel. | |
22 Moses therefore gave unto you circumcision, (not because it is of Moses, but of the fathers;) and ye on the sabbath-day circumcise a man.199 | |
23 If a man on the sabbath-day receive circumcision, that the law of Moses should not be broken; are ye angry at me, because I have made a man every whit whole on the sabbath-day? | |
24 Judge not according to the appearance, but judge righteous judgement. | |
25 Then said some of them of Jerusalem, Is not this he whom they seek to kill? | |
26 But lo, he speaketh boldly, and they say nothing unto him. Do the rulers know indeed that this is the very Christ? | |
27 Howbeit, we know this man, whence he is: but when Christ cometh, no man knoweth whence he is. | |
28 Then cried Jesus in the temple, as he taught, saying, Ye both know me, and ye know whence I am: and I am not come of myself, but he that sent me is true, whom ye know not. | |
29 But I know him; for I am from him, and he hath sent me. | |
30 Then they sought to take him: but no man laid hands on him, because his hour was not yet come. | |
31 And many of the people believed on him, and said, When Christ cometh, will he do more miracles than these which this man hath done? | |
32 The Pharisees heard that the people murmured such things concerning him: and the Pharisees and the chief priests sent officers to take him. | |
33 Then said Jesus unto them, Yet a little while am I with you, and then I go unto him that sent me. | |
34 Ye shall seek me, and shall not find me: and where I am, thither ye cannot come. | |
35 Then said the Jews among themselves, Whither will he go, that we shall not find him? will he go unto the dispersed among the Gentiles, and teach the Gentiles? | |
36 What manner of saying is this that he said, Ye shall seek me, and shall not find me, and where I am, thither ye cannot come; | |
37 In the last day, that great day of the feast,200 Jesus stood and cried, saying, If any man thirst, let him come unto me, and drink. | |
38 He that believeth on me, as the scripture hath said,201 out of his belly shall flow rivers of living water. | |
39 (But this spake he of the Spirit, which they that believe on him should receive, for the Holy Ghost was not yet given, because that Jesus was not yet glorified.) | |
40 Many of the people therefore, when they heard this saying, said, Of a truth this is the Prophet. | |
41 Others said, This is the Christ. But some said, Shall Christ come out of Galilee? | |
42 Hath not the scripture said,202 That Christ cometh of the seed of David, and out of the town of Bethlehem, where David was? | |
43 So there was a division among the people because of him. | |
44 And some of them would have taken him; but no man laid hands on him. | |
45 Then came the officers to the chief priests and Pharisees; and they said unto them, Why have ye not brought him? | |
46 The officers answered, Never man spake like this man. | |
47 Then answered them the Pharisees, Are ye also deceived? | |
48 Have any of the rulers, or of the Pharisees believed on him? | |
49 But this people who knoweth not the law are cursed. | |
50 Nicodemus saith unto them, (he that came to Jesus by night, being one of them,) | |
51 Doth our law judge any man before it hear him, and know what he doeth? | |
52 They answered and said unto him, Art thou also of Galilee: Search, and look: for out of Galilee ariseth no prophet. | |
53 And every man went unto his own house. | |
CH. VIII. | |
Jesus went unto the mount of Olives:203 |
John. | |
CH. VIII. 2-11. | |
2 And early in the morning he came again into the temple, and all the people came unto him; and he sat down and taught them. | |
3 And the scribes and Pharisees brought unto him a woman taken in adultery; and when they had set her in the midst, | |
4 They say unto him, Master, this woman was taken in adultery, in the very act. | |
5 Now Moses in the law204 commanded us, that such should be stoned:205 but what sayest thou? | |
6 This they said, tempting him, that they might have to accuse him. But Jesus stooped down, and with his finger wrote on the ground, as though he heard them not. | |
7 So when they continued asking him, he lifted up himself, and said unto them, He that is without sin among you, let him first cast a stone206 at her. | |
8 And again he stooped down, and wrote on the ground. | |
9 And they which heard it, being convicted by their own conscience, went out one by one, beginning at the eldest, even unto the last: and Jesus was left alone, and the woman standing in the midst. | |
10 When Jesus had lifted up himself, and saw none but the woman, he said unto her, Woman, where are those thine accusers? hath no man condemned thee? | |
11 She said, No man, Lord. And Jesus said unto her, Neither do I condemn thee: go, and sin no more. |
John. | |
CH. VIII. 12-59. | |
12 Then spake Jesus again unto them, saying, I am the light of the world: he that followeth me shall not walk in darkness, but shall have the light of life. | |
13 The Pharisees therefore said unto him, Thou bearest record of thyself; thy record is not true. | |
14 Jesus answered and said unto them, Though I bear record of myself, yet my record is true: for I know whence I came, and whither I go: but ye cannot tell207 whence I come, and whither I go. | |
15 Ye judge after the flesh, I judge no man. | |
16 And yet if I judge, my judgment is true: for I am not alone, but I and the Father that sent me. | |
17 It is also written in your law, that the testimony of two men is true.208 | |
18 I am one that bear witness of myself; and the Father that sent me, beareth witness of me. | |
19 Then said they unto him, Where is thy Father? Jesus answered, Ye neither know me, nor my Father: if ye had known me, ye should have known my Father also. | |
20 These words spake Jesus in the treasury, as he taught in the temple: and no man laid hands on him, for his hour was not yet come. | |
21 Then said Jesus again unto them, I go my way, and ye shall seek me, and shall die in your sins: whither I go, ye cannot come. | |
22 Then said the Jews, Will he kill himself? because he saith, Whither I go, ye cannot come. | |
23 And he said unto them, Ye are from beneath; I am from above: ye are of this world; I am not of this world. | |
24 I said therefore unto you, that ye shall die in your sins: for if ye believe not that I am he, ye shall die in your sins. | |
25 Then said they unto him, Who art thou? And Jesus saith unto them, Even the same that I said unto you from the beginning. | |
26 I have many things to say, and to judge of you: but he that sent me, is true; and I speak to the world those things which I have heard of him. | |
27 They understood not that he spake to them of the Father. | |
28 Then said Jesus unto them, When ye have lifted up the Son of man, then shall ye know that I am he, and that I do nothing of myself; but as my Father hath taught me, I speak these things. | |
29 And he that sent me is with me: the Father hath not left me alone; for I do always those things that please him. | |
30 As he spake these words, many believed on him.209 | |
31 Then said Jesus to those Jews which believed on him, If ye continue in my word, then are ye my disciples indeed; | |
32 And ye shall know the truth, and the truth shall make you free. | |
33 They answered him, We be Abraham's seed, and were never in bondage to any man: how sayest thou, Ye shall be made free? | |
34 Jesus answered them, Verily, verily, I say unto you, Whosoever committeth sin, is the servant of sin. | |
35 And the servant abideth not in the house for ever, but the Son abideth ever. | |
36 If the Son therefore shall make you free, ye shall be free indeed. | |
37 I know that ye are Abraham's seed; but ye seek to kill me, because my word hath no place in you. | |
38 I speak that which I have seen with my Father: and ye do that which ye have seen with your father. | |
39 They answered and said unto him, Abraham is our father. Jesus saith unto them, If ye were Abraham's children, ye would do the works of Abraham. | |
40 But now ye seek to kill me, a man that hath told you the truth, which I have heard of God: this did not Abraham. | |
41 Ye do the deeds of your father. Then said they to him, We be not born of fornication; we have one Father, even God. | |
42 Jesus said unto them, If God were your Father, ye would love me: for I proceeded forth and came from God; neither came I of myself, but he sent me. | |
43 Why do ye not understand my speech? even because ye cannot hear my word. | |
44 Ye are of your father the devil, and the lusts of your father ye will do: he was a murderer from the beginning, and abode not in the truth; because there is no truth in him. When he speaketh a lie, he speaketh of his own: for he is a liar, and the father of it. | |
45 And because I tell you the truth, ye believe me not. | |
46 Which of you convinceth me of sin? And if I say the truth, why do ye not believe me? | |
47 He that is of God, heareth God's words: ye therefore hear them not, because ye are not of God. | |
48 Then answered the Jews, and said unto him, Say we not well that thou art a Samaritan, and hast a devil? | |
49 Jesus answered, I have not a devil: but I honour my Father, and ye do dishonour me. | |
50 And I seek not mine own glory: there is one that seeketh and judgeth. | |
51 Verily, verily, I say unto you, If a man keep my saying, he shall never see death. | |
52 Then said the Jews unto him, Now we know that thou hast a devil. Abraham is dead, and the prophets; and thou sayest, If a man keep my saying, he shall never taste of death. | |
53 Art thou greater than our father Abraham, which is dead! and the prophets are dead: whom makest thou thyself? | |
54 Jesus answered, If I honour myself, my honour is nothing: it is my Father that honoureth me, of whom ye say, that he is your God. | |
55 Yet ye have not known him; but I know him: and if I should say, I know him not, I shall be a liar like unto you: but I know him, and keep his saying. | |
56 Your father Abraham rejoiced to see my day: and he saw it, and was glad. | |
57 Then said the Jews unto him, Thou art not yet fifty years old, and hast thou seen Abraham? | |
58 Jesus said unto them, Verily, verily, I say unto you, Before Abraham was, I am. | |
59 Then took they up stones to cast at him: but Jesus hid himself, and went out of the temple, going through the midst of them, and so passed by. |
Luke. | |
CH. X. 25-37. | |
25 And behold, a certain lawyer stood up, and tempted him, saying, Master, what shall I do to inherit eternal life? | |
26 He said unto him, What is written in the law? how readest thou? | |
27 And he answering said, Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy strength, and with all thy mind; and thy neighbour as thyself.210 | |
28 And he said unto him, Thou hast answered right: this do, and thou shalt live.211 | |
29 But he, willing to justify himself, said unto Jesus, And who is my neighbour? | |
30 And Jesus answering, said, A certain man went down212 from Jerusalem to Jericho, and fell among thieves, which stripped him of his raiment, and wounded him, and departed, leaving him half dead. | |
31 And by chance there came down a certain priest that way; and when he saw him, he passed by on the other side. | |
32 And likewise a Levite, when he was at the place, came and looked on him, and passed by on the other side. | |
33 But a certain Samaritan, as he journeyed, came where he was: and when he saw him, he had compassion on him, | |
34 And went to him, and bound up his wounds, pouring in oil and wine, and set him on his own beast, and brought him to an inn, and took care of him. | |
35 And on the morrow, when he departed, he took out two pence, and gave them to the host, and said unto him, Take care of him: and whatsoever thou spendest more, when I come again, I will repay thee. | |
36 Which now of these three, thinkest thou, was neighbour unto him that fell among the thieves? | |
37 And he said, He that shewed mercy on him. Then said Jesus unto him, Go, and do thou likewise. |
Luke. | |
CH. X. 38-42. | |
38 Now it came to pass, as they went, that he entered into a certain village: and a certain woman, named Martha, received him into her house. | |
39 And she had a sister called Mary, which also sat at Jesus' feet, and heard his word. | |
40 But Martha was cumbered about much serving, and came to him, and said, Lord, dost thou not care that my sister hath left me to serve alone? bid her therefore that she help me. | |
41 And Jesus answered, and said unto her, Martha, Martha, thou art careful, and troubled about many things: | |
42 But one thing is needful; and Mary hath chosen that good part, which shall not be taken away from her. |
Luke. | |
CH. XI. 1-13. | |
And it came to pass, that as he was praying in a certain place, when he ceased, one of his disciples said unto him, Lord, teach us to pray, as John also taught his disciples. | |
2 And he said unto them, When ye pray, say, Our Father which art in heaven, Hallowed be thy name. Thy kingdom come. Thy will be done, as in heaven, so in earth. | |
3 Give us day by day our daily bread. | |
4 And forgive us our sins; for we also forgive every one that is indebted to us. And lead us not into temptation; but deliver us from evil. | |
5 And he said unto them, Which of you shall have a friend, and shall go unto him at midnight,213 and say unto him, Friend, lend me three loaves: | |
6 For a friend of mine in his journey is come to me, and I have nothing to set before him? | |
7 And he from within shall answer and say, Trouble me not: the door is now shut, and my children are with me in bed; I cannot rise and give thee. | |
8 I say unto you, Though he will not rise and give him, because he is his friend, yet because of his importunity he will rise and give him as many as he needeth. | |
9 And I say unto you, Ask, and it shall be given you; seek, and ye shall find; knock, and it shall be opened unto you. | |
10 For every one that asketh receiveth; and he that seeketh findeth; and to him that knocketh, it shall be opened. | |
11 If a son shall ask bread of any of you that is a father, will he give him a stone? or if he ask a fish, will he for a fish give him a serpent? | |
12 Or if he shall ask an egg, will he offer him a scorpion? | |
13 If ye then, being evil, know how to give good gifts unto your children, how much more shall your heavenly Father give the Holy Spirit to them that ask him? |
Luke. | |
CH. X. 17-24. | |
17 And the seventy returned again with joy, saying, Lord, even the devils are subject unto us through thy name. | |
18 And he said unto them, I beheld Satan as lightning fall from heaven. | |
19 Behold, I give unto you power to tread on serpents and scorpions, and over all the power of the enemy: and nothing shall by any means hurt you. | |
20. Notwithstanding, in this rejoice not, that the spirits are subject unto you; but rather rejoice, because your names are written in heaven. | |
21 In that hour Jesus rejoiced in spirit, and said, I thank thee, O Father, Lord of heaven and earth, that thou hast hid these things from the wise and prudent, and hast revealed them unto babes: even so, Father; for so it seemed good in thy sight. | |
22 All things are delivered to me of my Father: and no man knoweth who the Son is, but the Father; and who the Father is, but the Son, and he to whom the Son will reveal him. | |
23 And he turned him unto his disciples, and said privately, Blessed are the eyes which see the things that ye see. | |
24 For I tell you, That many prophets and kings have desired to see those things which ye see, and have not seen them; and to hear those things which ye hear, and have not heard them. |
John. | |
CH. IX. 1-41. CH. X. 1-21. | |
And as Jesus passed by, he saw a man which was blind from his birth. | |
2 And his disciples asked him, saying, Master, who did sin, this man, or his parents, that he was born blind? | |
3 Jesus answered, Neither hath this man sinned, nor his parents: but that the works of God should be made manifest in him. | |
4 I must work the works of him that sent me, while it is day: the night cometh, when no man can work. | |
5 As long as I am in the world, I am the light of the world. | |
6 When he had thus spoken, he spat on the ground, and made clay of the spittle, and he anointed the eyes of the blind man with the clay, | |
7 And said unto him, Go, wash in the pool of Siloam, (which is by interpretation, Sent.) He went his way therefore, and washed, and came seeing. | |
8 The neighbours therefore, and they which before had seen him that he was blind, said, Is not this he that sat and begged? | |
9 Some said, This is he: others said, He is like him: but he said, I am he. | |
10 Therefore said they unto him, How were thine eyes opened? | |
11 He answered and said, A man that is called Jesus, made clay, and anointed mine eyes, and said unto me, Go to the pool of Siloam, and wash; and I went and washed, and I received sight. | |
12 Then said they unto him, Where is he? He said, I know not. | |
13 They brought to the Pharisees him that aforetime was blind. | |
14 And it was the sabbath-day when Jesus made the clay, and opened his eyes. | |
15 Then again the Pharisees also asked him how he had received his sight. He said unto them, He put clay upon mine eyes, and I washed, and do see. | |
16 Therefore said some of the Pharisees, This man is not of God, because he keepeth not the sabbath-day. Others said, How can a man that is a sinner do such miracles? And there was a division among them. | |
17 They say unto the blind man again, What sayest thou of him, that he hath opened thine eyes? He said, He is a prophet. | |
18 But the Jews did not believe concerning him, that he had been blind, and received his sight, until they called the parents of him that had received his sight. | |
19 And they asked them, saying, Is this your son, who ye say was born blind? How then doth he now see? | |
20 His parents answered them and said, We know that this is our son, and that he was born blind: | |
21 But by what means he now seeth, we know not; or who hath opened his eyes, we know not: he is of age; ask him: he shall speak for himself. | |
22 These words spake his parents, because they feared the Jews: for the Jews had agreed already, that if any man did confess that he was Christ, he should be put out of the synagogue. | |
23 Therefore said his parents, He is of age; ask him. | |
24 Then again called they the man that was blind, and said unto him, Give God the praise: we know that this man is a sinner. | |
25 He answered and said, Whether he be a sinner or no, I know not: one thing I know, that, whereas I was blind, now I see. | |
26 Then said they to him again, What did he to thee? how opened he thine eyes? | |
27 He answered them, I have told you already, and ye did not hear: wherefore would ye hear it again? will ye also be his disciples? | |
28 Then they reviled him, and said, Thou art his disciple, but we are Moses' disciples. | |
29 We know that God spake unto Moses; as for this fellow, we know not from whence he is. | |
30 The man answered and said unto them, Why, herein is a marvellous thing, that ye know not from whence he is, and yet he hath opened mine eyes. | |
31 Now we know that God heareth not sinners; but if any man be a worshipper of God, and doeth his will, him he heareth. | |
32 Since the world began was it not heard that any man opened the eyes of one that was born blind. | |
33 If this man were not of God, he could do nothing. | |
34 They answered and said unto him, Thou wast altogether born in sins, and dost thou teach us? And they cast him out. | |
35 Jesus heard that they had cast him out: and when he had found him, he said unto him, Dost thou believe on the Son of God? | |
36 He answered and said, Who is he, Lord, that I might believe on him? | |
37 And Jesus said unto him, Thou hast both seen him, and it is he that talketh with thee. | |
38 And he said, Lord, I believe. And he worshipped him. | |
39 And Jesus said, For judgment I am come into this world; that they which see not might see; and that they which see might be made blind. | |
40 And some of the Pharisees which were with him heard these words, and said unto him, Are we blind also? | |
41 Jesus said unto them, If ye were blind, ye should have no sin: but now ye say, We see; therefore your sin remaineth. | |
CH. X. | |
Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that entereth not by the door into the sheepfold, but climbeth up some other way, the same is a thief and a robber. | |
2 But he that entereth in by the door is the shepherd of the sheep. | |
3 To him the porter openeth; and the sheep hear his voice: and he calleth his own sheep by name, and leadeth them out. | |
4 And when he putteth forth his own sheep, he goeth before them, and the sheep follow him: for they know his voice. | |
5 And a stranger will they not follow, but will flee from him: for they know not the voice of strangers. | |
6 This parable spake Jesus unto them: but they understood not what things they were which he spake unto them. | |
7 Then said Jesus unto them again, Verily, verily, I say unto you, I am the door of the sheep. | |
8 All that ever came before me are thieves and robbers: but the sheep did not hear them. | |
9 I am the door: by me if any man enter in, he shall be saved, and shall go in and out, and find pasture. | |
10 The thief cometh not, but for to steal, and to kill, and to destroy: I am come that they might have life, and that they might have it more abundantly. | |
11 I am the good shepherd: the good shepherd giveth his life for the sheep. | |
12 But he that is a hireling, and not the shepherd, whose own the sheep are not, seeth the wolf coming, and leaveth the sheep, and fleeth; and the wolf catcheth them, and scattereth the sheep. | |
13 The hireling fleeth, because he is a hireling, and careth not for the sheep. | |
14 I am the good shepherd, and know my sheep, and am known of mine. | |
15 As the Father knoweth me, even so know I the Father: and I lay down my life for the sheep. | |
6 And other sheep I have, which are not of this fold: them also I must bring, and they shall hear my voice; and there shall be one fold, and one shepherd. | |
17 Therefore doth my Father love me, because I lay down my life, that I might take it again. | |
18 No man taketh it from me, but I lay it down of myself. I have power to lay it down, and I have power to take it again. This commandment have I received of my Father. | |
19 There was a division therefore again among the Jews for these sayings. | |
20 And many of them said, He hath a devil, and is mad; why hear ye him? | |
21 Others said, These are not the words of him that hath a devil. Can a devil open the eyes of the blind? |
John. | |
CH. X. 22-42. | |
22 And it was at Jerusalem the feast of the dedication, and it was winter. | |
23 And Jesus walked in the temple in Solomon's porch. | |
24 Then came the Jews round about him, and said unto him, How long dost thou make us to doubt? If thou be the Christ, tell us plainly. | |
25 Jesus answered them, I told you, and ye believed not: the works that I do in my Father's name, they bear witness of me. | |
28 But ye believe not, because ye are not of my sheep, as I said unto you. | |
27 My sheep hear my voice, and I know them, and they follow me: | |
28 And I give unto them eternal life; and they shall never perish, neither shall any pluck them out of my hand. | |
29 My Father, which gave them me, is greater than all; and none is able to pluck them out of my Father's hand. | |
30 I and my Father are one. | |
31 Then the Jews took up stones again to stone him. | |
32 Jesus answered them, Many good works have I shewed you from my Father; for which of those works do ye stone me? | |
33 The Jews answered him, saying, For a good work we stone thee not; but for blasphemy, and because that thou, being a man, makest thyself God. | |
34 Jesus answered them, Is it not written in your law, I said, Ye are gods?214 | |
35 If he called them gods, unto whom the word of God came, and the scripture cannot be broken; | |
36 Say ye of him whom the Father hath sanctified, and sent into the world, Thou blasphemest; because I said, I am the Son of God? | |
37 If I do not the works of my Father, believe me not. | |
38 But if I do, though ye believe not me, believe the works: that ye may know and believe that the Father is in me, and I in him. | |
39 Therefore they sought again to take him; but he escaped out of their hand, | |
40 And went away again beyond Jordan, into the place where John at first baptized; and there he abode. | |
41 And many resorted unto him, and said, John did no miracle; but all things that John spake of this man were true. | |
42 And many believed on him there. |
John. | |
CH. XI. 1-46. | |
Now a certain man was sick, named Lazarus, of Bethany, the town of Mary and her sister Martha. | |
2 (It was that Mary which anointed the Lord with ointment, and wiped his feet with her hair, whose brother Lazarus was sick.) | |
3 Therefore his sisters sent unto him, saying, Lord, behold, he whom thou lovest is sick. | |
4 When Jesus heard that, he said, This sickness is not unto death, but for the glory of God, that the Son of God might be glorified thereby. | |
5 Now Jesus loved Martha, and her sister, and Lazarus. | |
6 When he had heard therefore that he was sick, he abode two days still in the same place where he was. | |
7 Then after that saith he to his disciples, Let us go into Judea again. | |
8 His disciples say unto him, Master, the Jews of late sought to stone thee; and goest thou thither again? | |
9 Jesus answered, Are there not twelve hours in the day? If any man walk in the day, he stumbleth not, because he seeth the light of this world. | |
10 But if a man walk in the night, he stumbleth, because there is no light in him. | |
11 These things said he: and after that he saith unto them, Our friend Lazarus sleepeth; but I go that I may awake him out of sleep. | |
12 Then said his disciples, Lord, if he sleep, he shall do well. | |
13 Howbeit Jesus spake of his death: but they thought that he had spoken of taking of rest in sleep. | |
14 Then said Jesus unto them plainly, Lazarus is dead. | |
15 And I am glad for your sakes that I was not there, to the intent ye may believe; nevertheless, let us go unto him. | |
16 Then said Thomas, which is called Didymus, unto his fellow-disciples, Let us also go, that we may die with him. | |
17 Then when Jesus came, he found that he had lain in the grave four days already. | |
18 (Now Bethany was nigh unto Jerusalem, about fifteen furlongs off:) | |
19 And many of the Jews came to Martha and Mary, to comfort them concerning their brother. | |
20 Then Martha, as soon as she heard that Jesus was coming, went and met him: but Mary sat still in the house. | |
21 Then said Martha unto Jesus, Lord, if thou hadst been here, my brother had not died. | |
22 But I know that even now, whatsoever thou wilt ask of God, God will give it thee. | |
23 Jesus saith unto her, Thy brother shall rise again. | |
24 Martha saith unto him, I know that he shall rise again in the resurrection at the last day. | |
25 Jesus said unto her, I am the resurrection, and the life: he that believeth in me, though he were dead, yet shall he live: | |
26 And whosoever liveth, and believeth in me, shall never die. Believest thou this? | |
27 She saith unto him, Yea, Lord: I believe that thou art the Christ, the Son of God, which should come into the world. | |
28 And when she had so said, she went her way, and called Mary her sister secretly, saying, The master is come, and calleth for thee. | |
29 As soon as she heard that, she arose quickly, and came unto him. | |
30 Now Jesus was not yet come into the town, but was in that place where Martha met him. | |
31 The Jews then which were with her in the house, and comforted her, when they saw Mary that she rose up hastily, and went out, followed her, saying, She goeth unto the grave to weep there. | |
32 Then when Mary was come where Jesus was, and saw him, she fell down at his feet, saying unto him, Lord, if thou hadst been here, my brother had not died. | |
33 When Jesus therefore saw her weeping, and the Jews also weeping which came with her, he groaned in the spirit, and was troubled, | |
34 And said, Where have ye laid him? They say unto him, Lord, come and see. | |
36 Jesus wept. | |
36 Then said the Jews, Behold how he loved him! | |
37 And some of them said, Could not this man, which opened the eyes of the blind, have caused that even this man should not have died? | |
38 Jesus therefore again groaning in himself, cometh to the grave. It was a cave, and a stone lay upon it. | |
39 Jesus said, Take ye away the stone. Martha, the sister of him that was dead, saith unto him, Lord, by this time he stinketh: for he hath been dead four days. | |
40 Jesus saith unto her, Said I not unto thee, that if thou wouldest believe, thou shouldest see the glory of God? | |
41 Then they took away the stone from the place where the dead was laid. And Jesus lifted up his eyes, and said, Father, I thank thee that thou hast heard me. | |
42 And I knew that thou hearest me always: but because of the people which stand by, I said it, that they may believe that thou hast sent me. | |
43 And when he thus had spoken, he cried with a loud voice, Lazarus, come forth. | |
44 And he that was dead came forth, bound hand and foot with graveclothes: and his face was bound about with a napkin. Jesus saith unto them, Loose him, and let him go. | |
45 Then many of the Jews which came to Mary, and had seen the things which Jesus did, believed on him. | |
46 But some of them went their ways to the Pharisees, and told them what things Jesus had done. |
John. | |
CH. XI. 47-54. | |
47 Then gathered the chief priests and the Pharisees a council, and said, What do we? for this man doeth many miracles. | |
48 If we let him thus alone, all men will believe on him: and the Romans shall come, and take away both our place and nation. | |
49 And one of them, named Caiaphas, being the high priest that same year, said unto them, Ye know nothing at all, | |
50 Nor consider that it is expedient for us, that one man should die for the people, and that the whole nation perish not. | |
51 And this spake he not of himself: but being high priest that year, he prophesied that Jesus should die for that nation; | |
52 And not for that nation only, but that also he should gather together in one the children of God that were scattered abroad. | |
53 Then from that day forth they took counsel together for to put him to death. | |
54 Jesus therefore walked no more openly among the Jews; but went thence unto a country near to the wilderness, into a city called Ephraim, and there continued with his disciples. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XIX. 1, 2. | CH. X. 1. |
And it came to pass, that when Jesus had finished these sayings, he departed from Galilee, and came into the coasts of Judea, beyond Jordan: | And he arose from thence, and cometh into the coasts of Judea, by the farther side of Jordan: and the people resort unto him again; and, as he was wont, he taught them again. |
2 And great multitudes followed him, and he healed them there. |
Luke. | |
CH. XIII. 10-21. | |
10 And he was teaching in one of the synagogues on the sabbath. | |
11 And behold, there was a woman which had a spirit of infirmity eighteen years, and was bowed together, and could in no wise lift up herself. | |
12 And when Jesus saw her, he called her to him, and said unto her, Woman, thou art loosed from thine infirmity. | |
13 And he laid his hands on her: and immediately she was made straight, and glorified God. | |
14 And the ruler of the synagogue answered with indignation, because that Jesus had healed on the sabbath-day, and said unto the people, There are six days in which men ought to work: in them therefore come and be healed, and not on the sabbath-day. | |
15 The Lord then answered him, and said, Thou hypocrite, doth not each one of you on the sabbath loose his ox or his ass from the stall, and lead him away to watering? | |
16 And ought not this woman, being a daughter of Abraham, whom Satan hath bound, lo, these eighteen years, be loosed from this bond on the sabbath-day? | |
17 And when he had said these things, all his adversaries were ashamed: and all the people rejoiced for all the glorious things that were done by him. | |
18 Then said he, Unto what is the kingdom of God like? and whereunto shall I resemble it? | |
19 It is like a grain of mustard-seed which a man took, and cast into his garden, and it grew, and waxed a great tree; and the fowls of the air lodged in the branches of it. | |
20 And again he said, Whereunto shall I liken the kingdom of God? | |
21 It is like leaven, which a woman took and hid in three measures of meal, till the whole was leavened. |
Luke. | |
CH. XIII. 22-35. | |
22 And he went through the cities and villages, teaching, and journeying toward Jerusalem. | |
23 Then said one unto him, Lord, are there few that be saved? And he said unto them, | |
24 Strive to enter in at the strait gate: for many, I say unto you, will seek to enter in, and shall not be able. | |
25 When once the Master of the house is risen up, and hath shut to the door, and ye begin to stand without, and to knock at the door, saying, Lord, Lord, open unto us; and he shall answer and say unto you, I know you not whence ye are: | |
26 Then shall ye begin to say, We have eaten and drunk in thy presence, and thou hast taught in our streets. | |
27 But he shall say, I tell you, I know you not whence ye are; depart from me, all ye workers of iniquity. | |
28 There shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth, when ye shall see Abraham, and Isaac, and Jacob, and all the prophets, in the kingdom of God, and you yourselves thrust out. | |
29 And they shall come from the east, and from the west, and from the north, and from the south, and shall sit down in the kingdom of God. | |
30 And behold, there are last, which shall be first; and there are first, which shall be last. | |
31 The same day there came certain of the Pharisees, saying unto him, Get thee out, and depart hence; for Herod will kill thee. | |
32 And he said unto them, Go ye and tell that fox, Behold, I cast out devils, and I do cures to-day and to-morrow, and the third day I shall be perfected. | |
33 Nevertheless, I must work to-day and to-morrow, and the day following: for it cannot be that a prophet perish out of Jerusalem. | |
34 O Jerusalem, Jerusalem, which killest the prophets, and stonest them that are sent unto thee; how often would I have gathered thy children together, as a hen doth gather her brood under her wings, and ye would not! | |
35 Behold, your house is left unto you desolate.215 And verily, I say unto you, Ye shall not see me, until the time come when ye shall say, Blessed is he that cometh in the name of the Lord. |
Luke. | |
CH. XIV. 1-24. | |
And it came to pass, as he went into the house of one of the chief Pharisees to eat bread on the sabbath-day, that they watched him. | |
2 And behold, there was a certain man before him which had the dropsy. | |
3 And Jesus answering, spake unto the lawyers and Pharisees, saying, Is it lawful to heal on the sabbath-day? | |
4 And they held their peace. And he took him, and healed him, and let him go: | |
5 And answered them, saying, Which of you shall have an ass or an ox fallen into a pit, and will not straightway pull him out on the sabbath-day? | |
6 And they could not answer him again to these things. | |
7 And he put forth a parable to those which were bidden, when he marked how they chose out the chief rooms; saying unto them, | |
8 When thou art bidden of any man to a wedding, sit not down in the highest room, lest a more honourable man than thou be bidden of him; | |
9 And he that bade thee and him come and say to thee, Give this man place; and thou begin with shame to take the lowest room. | |
10 But when thou art bidden, go and sit down in the lowest room; that when he that bade thee cometh, he may say unto thee, Friend, go up higher: then shalt thou have worship in the presence of them that sit at meat with thee. | |
11 For whosoever exalteth himself shall be abased, and he that humbleth himself shall be exalted. | |
12 Then said he also to him that bade him, When thou makest a dinner or a supper, call not thy friends, nor thy brethren, neither thy kinsmen, nor thy rich neighbours; lest they also bid thee again, and a recompense be made thee. | |
13 But when thou makest a feast, call the poor, the maimed, the lame, the blind; | |
14 And thou shalt be blessed: for they cannot recompense thee: for thou shalt be recompensed at the resurrection of the just. | |
15 And when one of them that sat at meat with him heard these things, he said unto him, Blessed is he that shall eat bread in the kingdom of God. | |
16 Then said he unto him, A certain man made a great supper, and bade many: | |
17 And sent his servant at supper-time, to say to them that were bidden, Come, for all things are now ready. | |
18 And they all with one consent began to make excuse. The first said unto him, I have bought a piece of ground, and I must needs go and see it: I pray thee have me excused. | |
19 And another said, I have bought five yoke of oxen, and I go to prove them: I pray thee have me excused. | |
20 And another said, I have married a wife: and therefore I cannot come. | |
21 So that servant came, and shewed his lord these things. Then the master of the house being angry, said to his servant, Go out quickly into the streets and lanes of the city, and bring in hither the poor, and the maimed, and the halt, and the blind. | |
22 And the servant said, Lord, it is done as thou hast commanded, and yet there is room. | |
23 And the lord said unto the servant, Go out into the highways and hedges, and compel them to come in, that my house may be filled. | |
24 For I say unto you, that none of those men which were bidden, shall taste of my supper. |
Luke. | |
CH. XIV. 25-35. | |
25 And there were great multitudes with him: and he turned, and said unto them, | |
26 If any man come to me, and hate not his father, and mother, and wife, and children, and brethren, and sisters, yea, and his own life also, he cannot be my disciple. | |
27 And whosoever doth not bear his cross, and come after me, cannot be my disciple. | |
28 For which of you, intending to build a tower, sitteth not down first, and counteth the cost, whether he have sufficient to finish it? | |
29 Lest haply after he hath laid the foundation, and is not able to finish it, all that behold it begin to mock him, | |
30 Saying, This man began to build, and was not able to finish. | |
31 Or what king going, to make war against another king, sitteth not down first, and consulteth whether he be able with ten thousand to meet him that cometh against him with twenty thousand? | |
32 Or else, while the other is yet a great way off, he sendeth an ambassage, and desireth conditions of peace. | |
33 So likewise, whosoever he be of you that forsaketh not all that he hath, he cannot be my disciple. | |
34 Salt is good: but if the salt have lost his savour, wherewith shall it be seasoned? | |
35 It is neither fit for the land, nor yet for the dunghill; but men cast it out. He that hath ears to hear, let him hear. |
Luke. | |
CH. XV. 1-32. | |
Then drew near unto him all the publicans and sinners for to hear him. | |
2 And the Pharisees and scribes murmured, saying, This man receiveth sinners, and eateth with them. | |
3 And he spake this parable unto them, saying, | |
4 What man of you having a hundred sheep, if he lose one of them, doth not leave the ninety and nine in the wilderness, and go after that which is lost, until he find it? | |
5 And when he hath found it, he layeth it on his shoulders, rejoicing. | |
6 And when he cometh home, he calleth together his friends and neighbours, saying unto them, Rejoice with me; for I have found my sheep which was lost. | |
7 I say unto you, that likewise joy shall be in heaven over one sinner that repenteth, more than over ninety and nine just persons which need no repentance. | |
8 Either what woman having ten pieces of silver, if she lose one piece, doth not light a candle, and sweep the house, and seek diligently till she find it? | |
9 And when she hath found it, she calleth her friends and her neighbours together, saying, Rejoice with me; for I have found the piece which I had lost. | |
10 Likewise, I say unto you, There is joy in the presence of the angels of God over one sinner that repenteth. | |
11 And he said, A certain man had two sons: | |
12 And the younger of them said to his father, Father, give me the portion of goods that falleth to me. And he divided unto them his living. | |
13 And not many days after, the younger son gathered all together, and took his journey into a far country, and there wasted his substance with riotous living. | |
14 And when he had spent all, there arose a mighty famine in that land; and he began to be in want. | |
15 And he went and joined himself to a citizen of that country; and he sent him into his fields to feed swine. | |
16 And he would fain have filled his belly with the husks that the swine did eat; and no man gave unto him. | |
17 And when he came to himself, he said, How many hired servants of my father's have bread enough and to spare, and I perish with hunger! | |
18 I will arise and go to my father, and will say unto him, Father, I have sinned against heaven, and before thee, | |
19 And am no more worthy to be called thy son: make me as one of thy hired servants. | |
20 And he arose, and came to his father. But when he was yet a great way off, his father saw him, and had compassion, and ran, and fell on his neck, and kissed him. | |
21 And the son said unto him, Father, I have sinned against heaven, and in thy sight, and am no more worthy to be called thy son. | |
22 But the father said to his servants, Bring forth the best robe, and put it on him; and put a ring on his hand, and shoes on his feet: | |
23 And bring hither the fatted calf, and kill it; and let us eat, and be merry: | |
24 For this my son was dead, and is alive again; he was lost, and is found. And they began to be merry. | |
25 Now his elder son was in the field: and as he came and drew nigh to the house, he heard music and dancing. | |
26 And he called one of the servants, and asked what these things meant. | |
27 And he said unto him, Thy brother is come; and thy father hath killed the fatted calf, because he hath received him safe and sound. | |
28 And he was angry, and would not go in; therefore came his father out, and entreated him. | |
29 And he, answering, said to his father, Lo, these many years do I serve thee, neither transgressed I at any time thy commandment; and yet thou never gavest me a kid, that I might make merry with my friends: | |
30 But as soon as this thy son was came, which hath devoured thy living with harlots, thou hast killed for him the fatted calf. | |
31 And he said unto him, Son, thou art ever with me; and all that I have is thine. | |
32 It was meet that we should make merry, and be glad: for this thy brother was dead, and is alive again; and was lost, and is found. |
Luke. | |
CH. XVI. 1-13. | |
And he said also unto his disciples, There was a certain rich man which had a steward; and the same was accused unto him that he had wasted his goods. | |
2 And he called him, and said unto him, How is it that I hear this of thee? give an account of thy stewardship: for thou mayest be no longer steward. | |
3 Then the steward said within himself, What shall I do? for my lord taketh away from me the stewardship: I cannot dig; to beg I am ashamed. | |
4 I am resolved what to do, that when I am put out of the stewardship, they may receive me into their houses. | |
5 So he called every one of his lord's debtors unto him, and said unto the first, How much owest thou unto my lord? | |
6 And he said, A hundred measures of oil. And he said unto him, Take thy bill, and sit down quickly, and write fifty. | |
7 Then said he to another, And how much owest thou? And he said, A hundred measures of wheat. And he said unto him, Take thy bill, and write four-score. | |
8 And the lord commended the unjust steward, because he had done wisely: for the children of this world are in their generation wiser than the children of light. | |
9 And I say unto you, Make to yourselves friends of the mammon of unrighteousness; that when ye fail, they may receive you into everlasting habitations. | |
10 He that is faithful in that which is least, is faithful also in much; and he that is unjust in the least, is unjust also in much. | |
11 If therefore ye have not been faithful in the unrighteous mammon, who will commit to your trust the true riches? | |
12 And if ye have not been faithful in that which is another man's, who shall give you that which is your own? | |
13 No servant can serve two masters: for either he will hate the one, and love the other; or else he will hold to the one, and despise the other. Ye cannot serve God and mammon. |
Luke. | |
CH. XVI. 14-31. | |
14 And the Pharisees also, who were covetous, heard all these things, and they derided him. | |
15 And he said unto them, Ye are they which justify yourselves before men; but God knoweth your hearts: for that which is highly esteemed among men, is abomination in the sight of God. | |
16 The law and the prophets were until John: since that time the kingdom of God is preached, and every man presseth into it. | |
17 And it is easier for heaven and earth to pass, than one tittle of the law to fail. | |
18 Whosoever putteth away his wife, and marrieth another, committeth adultery; and whosoever marrieth her that is put away from her husband, committeth adultery. | |
19 There was a certain rich man, which was clothed in purple and fine linen, and fared sumptuously every day: | |
20 And there was a certain beggar named Lazarus, which was laid at his gate, full of sores, | |
21 And desiring to be fed with the crumbs which fell from the rich man's table: moreover, the dogs came and licked his sores. | |
22 And it came to pass, that the beggar died, and was carried by the angels into Abraham's bosom. The rich man also died, and was buried: | |
23 And in hell he lifted up his eyes, being in torments, and seeth Abraham afar off, and Lazarus in his bosom. | |
24 And he cried, and said, Father Abraham, have mercy on me, and send Lazarus, that he may dip the tip of his finger in water, and cool my tongue: for I am tormented in this flame. | |
25 But Abraham said, Son, remember that thou in thy lifetime receivedst thy good things, and likewise Lazarus evil things: but now he is comforted, and thou art tormented. | |
26 And besides all this, between us and you there is a great gulf fixed: so that they which would pass from hence to you, cannot; neither can they pass to us, that would come from thence. | |
27 Then he said, I pray thee therefore, father, that thou wouldest send him to my father's house: | |
28 For I have five brethren; that he may testify unto them, lest they also come into this place of torment. | |
29 Abraham saith unto him, They have Moses and the prophets, let them hear them. | |
30 And he said, Nay, father Abraham: but if one went unto them from the dead, they will repent. | |
31 And he said unto him, If they hear not Moses and the prophets, neither will they be persuaded, though one rose from the dead. |
Luke. | |
CH. XVII. 1-10. | |
Then said he unto his disciples, It is impossible but that offences will come: but wo unto him through whom they come! | |
2 It were better for him that a millstone were hanged about his neck, and he cast into the sea, than that he should offend one of these little ones. | |
3 Take heed to yourselves: If thy brother trespass against thee, rebuke him; and if he repent, forgive him. | |
4 And if he trespass against thee seven times in a day, and seven times in a day turn again to thee, saying, I repent; thou shalt forgive him. | |
5 And the apostles said unto the Lord, Increase our faith. | |
6 And the Lord said, If ye had faith as a grain of mustard-seed, ye might say unto this sycamine-tree, Be thou plucked up by the root, and be thou planted in the sea; and it should obey you. | |
7 But which of you having a servant ploughing, or feeding cattle, will say unto him by and by, when he is come from the field, Go and sit down to meat? | |
8 And will not rather say unto him, Make ready wherewith I may sup, and gird thyself, and serve me, till I have eaten and drunken; and afterward thou shalt eat and drink? | |
9 Doth he thank that servant, because he did the things that were commanded him? I trow not. | |
10 So likewise ye, when ye shall have done all those things which are commanded you, say, We are unprofitable servants: we have done that which was our duty to do. |
Luke. | |
CH. XVII. 20-37. | |
20 And when he was demanded of the Pharisees, when the kingdom of God should come, he answered them and said, The kingdom of God cometh not with observation. | |
21 Neither shall they say, Lo here! or, Lo there! for behold, the kingdom of God is within you. | |
22 And he said unto the disciples, The days will come, when ye shall desire to see one of the days of the Son of man, and ye shall not see it. | |
23 And they shall say to you, See here! or, See there! go not after them, nor follow them. | |
24 For as the lightning that lighteneth out of the one part under heaven, shineth unto the other part under heaven; so shall also the Son of man be in his day. | |
25 But first must he suffer many things, and be rejected of this generation. | |
26 And as it was in the days of Noe, so shall it be also in the days of the Son of man. | |
27 They did eat, they drank, they married wives, they were given in marriage, until the day that Noe entered into the ark, and the flood came, and destroyed them all.216 | |
28 Likewise also as it was in the days of Lot: they did eat, they drank, they bought, they sold, they planted, they builded; | |
29 But the same day that Lot went out of Sodom, it rained fire and brimstone from heaven, and destroyed them all:217 | |
30 Even thus shall it be in the day when the Son of man is revealed. | |
31 In that day, he which shall be upon the house-top, and his stuff in the house, let him not come down to take it away: and he that is in the field, let him likewise not return back. | |
32 Remember Lot's wife.218 | |
33 Whosoever shall seek to save his life, shall lose it; and whosoever shall lose his life, shall preserve it. | |
34 I tell you, in that night there shall be two men in one bed; the one shall be taken, and the other shall be left. | |
35 Two women shall be grinding together; the one shall be taken, and the other left. | |
36 Two men shall be in the field; the one shall be taken, and the other left. | |
37 And they answered and said unto him, Where, Lord? And he said unto them, Wheresoever the body is, thither will the eagles be gathered together. |
Luke. | |
CH. XVIII. 1-14. | |
And he spake a parable unto them to this end, that men ought always to pray, and not to faint; | |
2 Saying, There was in a city a judge, which feared not God, neither regarded man. | |
3 And there was a widow in that city; and she came unto him, saying, Avenge me of mine adversary. | |
4 And he would not for a while: but afterward he said within himself, Though I fear not God, nor regard man; | |
5 Yet, because this widow troubleth me, I will avenge her, lest by her continual coming she weary me. | |
6 And the Lord said, Hear what the unjust judge saith. | |
7 And shall not God avenge his own elect, which cry day and night unto him, though he bear long with them? | |
8 I tell you that he will avenge them speedily. Nevertheless, when the Son of man cometh, shall he find faith on the earth? | |
9 And he spake this parable unto certain which trusted in themselves that they were righteous, and despised others: | |
10 Two men went up into the temple to pray; the one a Pharisee, and the other a publican. | |
11 The Pharisee stood and prayed thus with himself, God, I thank thee, that I am not as other men are, extortioners, unjust, adulterers, or even as this publican. | |
12 I fast twice in the week, I give tithes of all that I possess. | |
13 And the publican, standing afar off, would not lift up so much as his eyes unto heaven, but smote upon his breast, saying, God be merciful to me a sinner. | |
14 I tell you, this man went down to his house justified rather than the other: for every one that exalteth himself shall be abased; and he that humbleth himself shall be exalted. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XIX. 3-12.219 | CH. X. 2-12. |
3 The Pharisees also came unto him, tempting him, and saying unto him, Is it lawful for a man to put away his wife for every cause? | 2 And the Pharisees came to him, and asked him, Is it lawful for a man to put away his wife? tempting him. |
4 And he answered and said unto them, Have ye not read,220 that he which made them at the beginning, made them male and female, | 3 And he answered and said unto them, What did Moses command you? |
5 And said,221 For this cause shall a man leave father and mother, and shall cleave to his wife: and they twain shall be one flesh? | 4 And they said, Moses suffered to write a bill of divorcement, and to put her away. |
5 And Jesus answered and said unto them, For the hardness of your heart, he wrote you this precept: | |
6 Wherefore they are no more twain, but one flesh. What therefore God hath joined together, let not man put asunder. | 6 But from the beginning of the creation, God made them male and female. |
7 They say unto him, Why did Moses then command to give a writing of divorcement, and to put her away?222 | 7 For this cause shall a man leave his father and mother, and cleave to his wife; |
8 He saith unto them, Moses, because of the hardness of your hearts, suffered you to put away your wives: but from the beginning it was not so. | 8 And they twain shall be one flesh: so then they are not more twain, but one flesh. |
9 What, therefore, God hath joined together, let not man put asunder. | |
9 And I say unto you, Whosoever shall put away his wife, except it be for fornication, and shall marry another, committeth adultery; and whoso marrieth her which is put away, doth commit adultery. | 10 And in the house his disciples asked him again of the same matter. |
11 And he saith unto them, Whosoever shall put away his wife, and marry another, committeth adultery against her. | |
10 His disciples say unto him, If the case of the man be so with his wife, it is not good to marry. | 12 And if a woman shall put away her husband,223 and be married to another, she committeth adultery. |
11 But he said unto them, All men cannot receive this saying, save they to whom it is given. | |
12 For there are some eunuchs, which were so born from their mother's womb: and there are some eunuchs, which were made eunuchs of men: and there be eunuchs, which have made themselves eunuchs for the kingdom of heaven's sake. He that is able to receive it, let him receive it. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XIX. 13-15. | CH. X. 13-16. |
13 Then were there brought unto him little children, that he should put his hands on them, and pray: and the disciples rebuked them. | 13 And they brought young children to him, that he should touch them; and his disciples rebuked those that brought them. |
14 But Jesus said, Suffer little children, and forbid them not, to come unto me: for of such is the kingdom of heaven. | 14 But when Jesus saw it, he was much displeased, and said unto them, Suffer the little children to come unto me, and forbid them not: for of such is the kingdom of God. |
15 Verily I say unto you, Whosoever shall not receive the kingdom of God as a little child, he shall not enter therein. | |
15 And he laid his hands on them, and departed thence. | 16 And he took them up in his arms; put his hands upon them, and blessed them. |
Luke. | |
CH. XVIII. 15-17. | |
15 And they brought unto him also infants, that he would touch them: but when his disciples saw it, they rebuked them. | |
16 But Jesus called them unto him, and said, Suffer little children to come unto me, and forbid them not: for of such is the kingdom of God. | |
17 Verily, I say unto you, Whosoever shall not receive the kingdom of God as a little child, shall in no wise enter therein. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XIX. 16-30. CH. XX 1-16. | CH. X. 17-31. |
16 And behold, one came and said unto him, Good Master, what good thing shall I do that I may have eternal life? | 17 And when he was gone forth into the way, there came one running, and kneeled to him, and asked him, Good Master, what shall I do that I may inherit eternal life? |
17 And he said unto him, Why callest thou me good? there is none good but one, that is, God: but if thou wilt enter into life, keep the commandments. | 18 And Jesus said unto him, Why callest thou me good? there is none good, but one, that is God. |
18 He saith unto him, Which? Jesus said, Thou shalt do no murder. Thou shalt not commit adultery, Thou shalt not steal, Thou shalt not bear false witness, | 19 Thou knowest the commandments, Do not commit adultery, Do not kill, Do not steal, Do not bear false witness, Defraud not, Honour thy father and mother. |
19 Honour thy father and thy mother: and, Thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself.224 | |
20 The young man saith unto him, All these things have I kept from my youth up: what lack I yet? | 20 And he answered and said unto him, Master, all these have I observed from my youth. |
21 Jesus said unto him, If thou wilt be perfect, go and sell that thou hast, and give to the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven: and come and follow me. | 21 Then Jesus beholding him, loved him, and said unto him, One thing thou lackest: go thy way, sell whatsoever thou hast, and give to the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven; and come, take up the cross, and follow me. |
22 But when the young man heard that saying, he went away sorrowful: for he had great possessions. | 22 And he was sad at that saying, and went away grieved: for he had great possessions. |
23 Then said Jesus unto his disciples, Verily, I say unto you, That a rich man shall hardly enter into the kingdom of heaven. | 23 And Jesus looked round about, and saith unto his disciples, How hardly shall they that have riches enter into the kingdom of God! |
24 And the disciples were astonished at his words. But Jesus answereth again, and saith unto them, Children, how hard is it for them that trust in riches to enter into the kingdom of God! | |
24 And again I say unto you, It is easier for a camel to go through the eye of a needle, than for a rich man to enter into the kingdom of God. | 25 It is easier for a camel to go through the eye of a needle, than for a rich man to enter into the kingdom of God. |
25 When his disciples heard it, they were exceedingly amazed, saying Who then can be saved? | 26 And they were astonished out of measure, saying among themselves, Who then can be saved? |
26 But Jesus beheld them, and said unto them, With men this is impossible, but with God all things are possible. | 27 And Jesus, looking upon them, With men it is impossible, but not with God: for with God all things are possible. |
27 Then answered Peter, and said unto him, Behold, we have forsaken all, and followed thee; what shall we have therefore? | 28 Then Peter began to say unto him, Lo, we have left all, and have followed thee. |
28 And Jesus said unto them, Verily, I say unto you, That ye which have followed me in the regeneration, when the Son of man shall sit in the throne of his glory, ye also shall sit upon twelve thrones, judging the twelve tribes of Israel. | 29 And Jesus answered and said, Verily I say unto you, There is no man that hath left house, or brethren, or sisters, or father, or mother, or wife, or children, or lands, for my sake, and the gospel's, |
29 And every one that hath forsaken houses, or brethren, or sisters, or father, or mother, or wife, or children, or lands, for my name's sake, shall receive a hundred-fold, and shall inherit everlasting life. | 30 But he shall receive a hundred-fold now in this time, houses, and brethren, and sisters, and mothers, and children, and lands, with persecutions; and in the world to come, eternal life. |
30 But many that are first shall be last, and the last shall be first. | 31 But many that are first shall be last; and the last first. |
CH. XX. | |
For the kingdom of heaven is like unto a man that is a householder, which went out early in the morning to hire labourers into his vineyard. | |
2 And when he had agreed with the labourers for a penny a day, he sent them into his vineyard. | |
3 And he went out about the third hour, and saw others standing idle in the market-place, | |
4 And said unto them, Go ye also into the vineyard; and whatsoever is right, I will give you. And they went their way. | |
5 Again he went out about the sixth and ninth hour, and did likewise. | |
6 And about the eleventh hour he went out, and found others standing idle, and saith unto them, Why stand ye here all the day idle? | |
7 They say unto him, Because no man hath hired us. He saith unto them, Go ye also into the vineyard; and whatsoever is right, that shall ye receive. | |
8 So when evening was come, the lord of the vineyard saith unto his steward, Call the labourers, and give them their hire, beginning from the last unto the first. | |
9 And when they came that were hired about the eleventh hour, they received every man a penny. | |
10 But when the first came, they supposed that they should have received more; and they likewise received every man a penny. | |
11 And when they had received it, they murmured against the good man of the house, | |
12 Saying, These last have wrought but one hour, and thou hast made them equal unto us, which have borne the burden and heat of the day. | |
13 But he answered one of them, and said, Friend, I do thee no wrong: didst not thou agree with me for a penny? | |
14 Take that thine is, and go thy way: I will give unto this last, even as unto thee. | |
15 Is it not lawful for me to do what I will with mine own? is thine eye evil because I am good? | |
16 So the last shall be first, and the first last: for many be called, but few chosen. |
Luke. | |
CH. XVIII. 18-30. | |
18 And a certain ruler asked him, saying, Good Master, what shall I do to inherit eternal life? | |
19 And Jesus said unto him, Why callest thou me good? none is good, save one, that is God. | |
20 Thou knowest the commandments, Do not commit adultery, Do not kill, Do not steal, Do not bear false witness, Honour thy father and thy mother. | |
21 And he said, All these have I kept from my youth up. | |
22 Now, when Jesus heard these things, he said unto him, Yet lackest thou one thing: sell all that thou hast, and distribute unto the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven: and come, follow me. | |
23 And when he heard this, he was very sorrowful: for he was very rich. | |
24 And when Jesus saw that he was very sorrowful, he said, How hardly shall they that have riches enter into the kingdom of God! | |
25 For it is easier for a camel to go through a needle's eye, than for a rich man to enter into the kingdom of God! | |
26 And they that heard it, said, Who then can be saved? | |
27 And he said, The things which are impossible with men, are possible with God. | |
28 Then Peter said, Lo, we have left all, and followed thee. | |
29 And he said unto them, Verily, I say unto you, There is no man that hath left house, or parents, or brethren, or wife, or children, for the kingdom of God's sake, | |
30 Who shall not receive manifold more in this present time, and in the world to come life everlasting. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XX. 17-19. | CH. X. 32-34. |
17 And Jesus, going up to Jerusalem, took the twelve disciples apart in the way, and said unto them, | 32 And they were in the way, going up to Jerusalem; and Jesus went before them: and they were amazed; and as they followed, they were afraid. And he took again the twelve, and began to tell them what things should happen unto him. |
18 Behold, we go up to Jerusalem; and the Son of man shall be betrayed unto the chief priests, and unto the scribes, and they shall condemn him to death, | 33 Saying, Behold, we go up to Jerusalem; and the Son of man shall be delivered unto the chief priests, and unto the scribes; and they shall condemn him to death, and shall deliver him to the Gentiles; |
19 And shall deliver him to the Gentiles to mock, and to scourge, and to crucify him: and the third day he shall rise again. | 34 And they shall mock him, and shall scourge him, and shall spit upon him, and shall kill him: and the third day he shall rise again. |
Luke. | |
CH. XVIII. 31-34. | |
31 Then he took unto him the twelve, and said unto them, Behold, we go up to Jerusalem, and all things that are written by the prophets concerning the Son of man shall be accomplished. | |
32 For he shall be delivered unto the Gentiles, and shall be mocked, and spitefully entreated, and spitted on; | |
33 And they shall scourge him, and put him to death: and the third day he shall rise again. | |
34 And they understood none of these things: and this saying was hid from them, neither knew they the things which were spoken. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XX. 20-28. | CH. X. 35-45. |
20 Then came to him the mother of Zebedee's children, with her sons, worshipping him, and desiring a certain thing of him. | 35 And James and John, the sons of Zebedee, come unto him, saying, Master, we would that thou shouldest do for us whatsoever we shall desire. |
21 And he said unto her, What wilt thou? She saith225 unto him, Grant that these my two sons may sit, the one on thy right hand, and the other on the left, in thy kingdom. | 36 And he said unto them, What would ye that I should do for you? |
37 They said unto him, Grant unto us that we may sit, one on thy right hand, and the other on thy left hand, in thy glory. | |
22 But Jesus answered and said, Ye know not what ye ask. Are ye able to drink of the cup that I shall drink of, and to be baptized with the baptism that I am baptized with? They say unto him, We are able. | 38 But Jesus said unto them, Ye know not what ye ask: can ye drink of the cup that I drink of? and be baptized with the baptism that I am baptized with? |
23 And he saith unto them, Ye shall drink indeed of my cup, and be baptized with the baptism that I am baptized with; but, to sit on my right hand, and on my left, is not mine to give, but it shall be given to them for whom it is prepared of my Father. | 39 And they said unto him, We can. And Jesus said unto them, Ye shall indeed drink of the cup that I drink of; and with the baptism that I am baptized withal shall ye be baptized: |
40 But to sit on my right hand and on my left hand, is not mine to give; but it shall be given to them for whom it is prepared. | |
24 And when the ten heard it, they were moved with indignation against the two brethren. | 41 And when the ten heard it, they began to be much displeased with James and John. |
25 But Jesus called them unto him, and said, Ye know that the princes of the Gentiles exercise dominion over them, and they that are great exercise authority upon them. | 42 But Jesus called them to him, and saith unto them, Ye know that they which are accounted to rule over the Gentiles, exercise lordship over them; and their great ones exercise authority upon them. |
26 But it shall not be so among you: but whosoever will be great among you, let him be your minister; | 43 But so shall it not be among you: but whosoever will be great among you, shall be your minister: |
27 And whosoever will be chief among you, let him be your servant: | 44 And whosoever of you will be the chiefest, shall be servant of all. |
28 Even as the Son of man came not to be ministered unto, but to minister, and to give his life a ransom for many. | 45 For even the Son of man came not to be ministered unto, but to minister, and to give his life a ransom for many. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XX. 29-34. | CH. X. 46-52. |
29 And as they departed from Jericho, a great multitude followed him. | 46 And they came to Jericho: and as he went out of Jericho with his disciples, and a great number of people, blind Bartimeus, the son of Timeus, sat by the highway side, begging. |
30 And behold, two blind men sitting by the wayside, when they heard that Jesus passed by, cried out, saying, Have mercy on us, O Lord, thou son of David. | 47 And when he heard that it was Jesus of Nasareth, he began to cry out and say, Jesus, thou son of David, have mercy on me. |
31 And the multitude rebuked them, because they should hold their peace: but they cried the more, saying, Have mercy on us, O Lord, thou son of David. | 48 And many charged him that he should hold his peace: but he cried the more a great deal, Thou son of David, have mercy on me. |
32 And Jesus stood still, and called them, and said, What will ye that I shall do unto you? | 49 And Jesus stood still, and commanded him to be called: and they call the blind man, saying unto him, Be of good comfort, rise; he calleth thee. |
50 And he, casting away his garment, rose, and came to Jesus. | |
33 They say unto him, Lord, that our eyes may be opened. | 51 And Jesus answered and said unto him, What wilt thou that I should do unto thee? The blind man said unto him, Lord, that I might receive my sight. |
34 So Jesus had compassion on them, and touched their eyes: and immediately their eyes received sight, and they followed him. | 52 And Jesus said unto him, Go thy way; thy faith hath made thee whole. And immediately he received his sight, and followed Jesus in the way. |
Luke. | |
CH. XVIII. 35-43. CH. XIX. 1. | |
35 And it came to pass, that as he was come nigh226 unto Jericho, a certain blind man sat by the wayside begging; | |
36 And hearing the multitude pass by, he asked what it meant. | |
37 And they told him, that Jesus of Nazareth passeth by. | |
38 And he cried, saying, Jesus, thou son of David, have mercy on me. | |
39 And they which went before rebuked him, that he should hold his peace: but he cried so much the more, Thou son of David, have mercy on me. | |
40 And Jesus stood and commanded him to be brought unto him: and when he was come near, he asked him, | |
41 Saying, What wilt thou that I shall do unto thee? And he said, Lord, that I may receive my sight. | |
42 And Jesus said unto him, Receive thy sight: thy faith hath saved thee. | |
43 And immediately he received his sight, and followed him, glorifying God: and all the people, when they saw it, gave praise unto God. | |
CH. XIX. | |
And Jesus entered and passed through Jericho. |
Luke. | |
CH. XIX. 2-28. | |
2 And behold there was a man named Zaccheus, which was the chief among the publicans, and he was rich. | |
3 And he sought to see Jesus who he was; and could not for the press, because he was little of stature. | |
4 And he ran before, and climbed up into a sycamore-tree to see him; for he was to pass that way. | |
5 And when Jesus came to the place, he looked up, and saw him, and said unto him, Zaccheus, make haste, and come down: for to-day I must abide at thy house. | |
6 And he made haste, and came down, and received him joyfully. | |
7 And when they saw it, they all murmured, saying, That he was gone to be guest with a man that is a sinner. | |
8 And Zaccheus stood, and said unto the Lord; Behold, Lord, the half of my goods I give to the poor; and if I have taken any thing from any man, by false accusation, I restore him four-fold. | |
9 And Jesus said unto him, This day is salvation come to this house, forasmuch as he also is a son of Abraham. | |
10 For the Son of man is come to seek and to save that which was lost. | |
11 And as they heard these things, he added and spake a parable, because he was nigh to Jerusalem, and because they thought that the kingdom of God should immediately appear. | |
12 He said therefore, A certain nobleman went into a far country to receive for himself a kingdom, and to return.227 | |
13 And he called his ten servants, and delivered them ten pounds, and said unto them, Occupy till I come. | |
14 But his citizens hated him, and sent a message after him, saying, We will not have this man to reign over us. | |
15 And it came to pass, that when he was returned, having received the kingdom, then he commanded these servants to be called unto him, to whom he had given the money, that he might know how much every man had gained by trading. | |
16 Then came the first, saying, Lord, thy pound hath gained ten pounds. | |
17 And he said unto him, Well, thou good servant: because thou hast been faithful in a very little, have thou authority over ten cities. | |
18 And the second came, saying, Lord, thy pound hath gained five pounds. | |
19 And he said likewise to him, Be thou also over five cities. | |
20 And another came, saying, Lord, behold here is thy pound, which I have kept laid up in a napkin: | |
21 For I feared thee, because thou art an austere man: thou takest up that thou layedst not down, and reapest that thou didst not sow. | |
22 And he saith unto him, Out of thine own mouth will I judge thee, thou wicked servant. Thou knewest that I was an austere man, taking up that I laid not down, and reaping that I did not sow: | |
23 Wherefore then gavest not thou my money into the bank, that at my coming I might have required mine own with usury? | |
24 And he said unto them that stood by, Take from him the pound, and give it to him that hath ten pounds. | |
25 (And they said unto him, Lord, he hath ten pounds.) | |
26 For I say unto you, That unto every one which hath, shall be given; and from him that hath not, even that he hath shall be taken away from him. | |
27 But those mine enemies, which would not that I should reign over them, bring hither, and slay them before me. | |
28 And when he had thus spoken, he went before, ascending up to Jerusalem. |
John. | |
CH. XI. 55-57. CH. XII. 1, 9-11. | |
55 And the Jews' passover was nigh at hand: and many went out of the country up to Jerusalem before the passover, to purify themselves. | |
56 Then sought they for Jesus, and spake among themselves, as they stood in the temple, What think ye, that he will not come to the feast? | |
57 Now both the chief priests and the Pharisees had given a commandment, that, if any man knew where he were, he should shew it, that they might take him. | |
CH. XII. | |
Then Jesus, six days before the passover, came to Bethany, where Lazarus was which had been dead, whom he raised from the dead. | |
9 Much people of the Jews therefore knew that he was there: and they came, not for Jesus' sake only, but that they might see Lazarus also, whom he had raised from the dead. | |
10 But the chief priests consulted that they might put Lazarus also to death; | |
11 Because that by reason of him many of the Jews went away, and believed on Jesus. |
Time. Five days.
[pg 362]Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXI. 1-11, 14-17. | CH. XI. 1-11. |
And when they drew nigh unto Jerusalem, and were come to Bethphage, unto the mount of Olives, then sent Jesus two disciples, | And when they came nigh to Jerusalem, unto Bethphage, and Bethany, at the mount of Olives, he sendeth forth two of his disciples, |
2 Saying unto them, Go into the village over against you, and straightway ye shall find an ass tied, and a colt with her: loose them, and bring them unto me. | 2 And saith unto them, Go your way into the village over against you: and as soon as ye be entered into it, ye shall find a colt tied, whereon never man sat; loose him, and bring him. |
3 And if any man say aught unto you, ye shall say, The Lord hath need of them; and straightway he will send them. | 3 And if any man say unto you, Why do ye this? say ye that the Lord hath need of him; and straightway he will send him hither. |
4 All this was done, that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by the prophet, saying,228 | |
5 Tell ye the daughter of Sion, Behold, thy King cometh unto thee, meek, and sitting upon an ass, and a colt the foal of an ass. | |
6 And the disciples went, and did as Jesus commanded them, | 4 And they went their way and found the colt tied by the door without, in a place where two ways met; and they loose him. |
5 And certain of them that stood there said unto them, What do ye, loosing the colt? | |
6 And they said unto them even as Jesus had commanded: and they let them go. | |
7 And brought the ass and the colt, and put on them their clothes,229 and they set him thereon. | 7 And they brought the colt to Jesus, and cast their garments on him; and he sat upon him. |
8 And a very great multitude spread their garments in the way: others cut down branches from the trees, and strewed them in the way. | 8 And many spread their garments in the way: and others cut down branches off the trees, and strewed them in the way. |
9 And the multitudes that went before, and that followed, cried, saying, Hosanna to the Son of David: Blessed is he that cometh in the name of the Lord: Hosanna in the highest. | 9 And they that went before, and they that followed, cried, saying, Hosanna: Blessed is he that cometh in the name of the Lord. |
10 Blessed be the kingdom of our father David, that cometh in the name of the Lord: Hosanna in the highest. | |
10 And when he was come into Jerusalem, all the city was moved, saying, Who is this? | |
11 And the multitude said, This is Jesus the prophet of Nazareth of Galilee. | |
14 And the blind and the lame came to him in the temple; and he healed them. | |
15 And when the chief priests and scribes saw the wonderful things that he did, and the children crying in the temple, and saying, Hosanna to the son of David; they were sore displeased, | |
16 And said unto him, Hearest thou what these say? And Jesus saith unto them, Yea: have ye never read, Out of the mouth of babes and sucklings thou hast perfected praise?230 | |
17 And he left them, and went out of the city into Bethany, and he lodged there. | 11 And Jesus entered into Jerusalem, and into the temple: and when he had looked round about upon all things, and now the even-tide was come, he went out unto Bethany, with the twelve. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XIX. 29-44. | CH. XII. 12-19. |
29 And it came to pass, when he was come nigh to Bethphage and Bethany, at the mount called the mount of Olives, he sent two of his disciples, | 12 On the next day, much people that were come to the feast, when they heard that Jesus was coming to Jerusalem, |
30 Saying, Go ye into the village over against you; in the which at your entering ye shall find a colt tied, whereon yet never man sat: loose him, and bring him hither. | |
31 And if any man ask you, Why do ye loose him? thus shall ye say unto him, Because the Lord hath need of him. | |
32 And they that were sent went their way, and found even as he had said unto them. | |
33 And as they were loosing the colt, the owners thereof said unto them, Why loose ye the colt? | |
34 And they said, The Lord hath need of him. | |
35 And they brought him to Jesus: and they cast their garments upon the colt and they set Jesus thereon. | |
36 And as he went, they spread their clothes in the way. | |
37 And when he was come nigh, even now at the descent of the mount of Olives, the whole multitude of the disciples began to rejoice and praise God with a loud voice for all the mighty works that they had seen; | 13 Took branches of palm-trees, and went forth to meet him, and cried, Hosanna; Blessed is the King of Israel that cometh in the name of the Lord.231 |
38 Saying, Blessed be the King that cometh in the name of the Lord: Peace in heaven, and glory in the highest. | 14 And Jesus, when he had found a young ass, sat thereon; as it is written, |
15 Fear not, daughter of Sion: behold, thy King cometh, sitting on an ass's colt. | |
16 These things understood not his disciples at the first: but when Jesus was glorified, then remembered they that these things were written of him, and that they had done these things unto him. | |
17 The people therefore that was with him when he called Lazarus out of his grave, and raised him from the dead, bare record. | |
18 For this cause the people also met him, for that they heard that he had done this miracle. | |
39 And some of the Pharisees from among the multitude said unto him, Master, rebuke thy disciples. | 19 The Pharisees therefore said among themselves, Perceive ye how ye prevail nothing? behold, the world is gone after him. |
40 And he answered and said unto them, I tell you, that if these should hold their peace, the stones would immediately cry out. | |
41 And when he was come near, he beheld the city, and wept over it. | |
42 Saying, If thou hadst known, even thou, at least in this thy day, the things which belong unto thy peace! but now they are hid from thine eyes. | |
43 For the days shall come upon thee, that thine enemies shall cast a trench about thee, and compass thee round, and keep thee in on every side, | |
44 And shall lay thee even with the ground, and thy children within thee: and they shall not leave in thee one stone upon another: because thou knewest not the time of thy visitation. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXI. 12, 13, 18, 19. | CH. XI. 12-19. |
18 Now in the morning, as he returned into the city, he hungered. | 12 And on the morrow, when they were come from Bethany, he was hungry. |
19 And when he saw a fig-tree in the way, he came to it, and found nothing thereon, but leaves only, and said unto it, Let no fruit grow on thee henceforward for ever. And presently the fig-tree withered away. | 13 And seeing a fig-tree afar off, having leaves, he came, if haply he might find any thing thereon: and when he came to it, he found nothing but leaves: for the time of figs was not yet. |
14 And Jesus answered and said unto it, No man eat fruit of thee hereafter for ever. And his disciples heard it. | |
12 And Jesus went into the temple of God, and cast out all them that sold and bought in the temple, and overthrew the tables of the money-changers, and the seats of them that sold doves, | 15 And they come to Jerusalem: and Jesus went into the temple, and began to cast out them that sold and bought in the temple, and overthrew the tables of the money-changers, and the seats of them that sold doves: |
16 And would not suffer that any man should carry any vessel through the temple. | |
13 And said unto them, It is written,232 My house shall be called the house of prayer, but ye have made it a den of thieves. | 17 And he taught, saying unto them, Is it not written, My house shall be called, of all nations, the house of prayer? but ye have made it a den of thieves. |
18 And the scribes and chief priests heard it, and sought how they might destroy him: for they feared him, because all the people was astonished at his doctrine. | |
19 And when even was come, he went out of the city. |
Luke. | |
CH. XIX. 45-48. CH. XXI. 37, 38. | |
45 And he went into the temple, and began to cast out them that sold therein, and them that bought, | |
46 Saying unto them, It is written, My house is the house of prayer, but ye have made it a den of thieves. | |
47 And he taught daily in the temple. But the chief priests, and the scribes, and the chief of the people sought to destroy him, | |
48 And could not find what they might do: for all the people were very attentive to hear him. | |
CH. XXI. | |
37 And in the day-time he was teaching in the temple; and at night he went out, and abode in the mount that is called the mount of Olives. | |
38 And all the people came early in the morning to him in the temple, for to hear him. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXI. 20-22. | CH. XI. 20-26. |
20 And in the morning, as they passed by, they saw the fig-tree dried up from the roots. | |
20 And when the disciples233 saw it, they marvelled, saying, How soon is the fig-tree withered away! | 21 And Peter calling to remembrance, saith unto him, Master, behold, the fig-tree which thou cursed is withered away. |
21 Jesus answered and said unto them, Verily, I say unto you, If ye have faith, and doubt not, ye shall not only do this which is done to the fig-tree, but also, if ye shall say unto this mountain, Be thou removed, and be thou cast into the sea; it shall be done. | 22 And Jesus answering, saith unto them, Have faith in God. |
23 For verily I say unto you, That whosoever shall say unto this mountain, Be thou removed, and be thou cast into the sea; and shall not doubt in his heart, but shall believe that those things which he saith shall come to pass; he shall have whatsoever he saith. | |
22 And all things whatsoever ye shall ask in prayer, believing, ye shall receive. | 24 Therefore I say unto you, What things soever ye desire when ye pray, believe that ye receive them, and ye shall have them. |
25 And when ye stand praying, forgive, if ye have aught against any: that your Father also which is in heaven may forgive you your trespasses. | |
26 But if ye do not forgive, neither will your Father which is in heaven forgive your trespasses. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXI. 23-32. | CH. XI. 27-33. |
23 And when he was come into the temple, the chief priests and the elders of the people came unto him as he was teaching, and said, By what authority doest thou these things? and who gave thee this authority? | 27 And they come again to Jerusalem: and as he was walking in the temple, there come to him the chief priests, and the scribes, and the elders, |
28 And say unto him, By what authority doest thou these things? and who gave thee this authority to do these things? | |
24 And Jesus answered and said unto them, I also will ask you one thing, which if ye tell me, I in like wise will tell you by what authority I do these things. | 29 And Jesus answered and said unto them, I will also ask of you one question, and answer me, and I will tell you by what authority I do these things. |
25 The baptism of John, whence was it? from heaven, or of men? And they reasoned with themselves, saying, If we shall say, From heaven; he will say unto us, Why did ye not then believe him? | 30 The baptism of John, was it from heaven, or of men? answer me. |
31 And they reasoned with themselves, saying, If we shall say, From heaven; he will say, Why then did ye not believe him? | |
26 But if we shall say, Of men; we fear the people: for all hold John as a prophet. | 32 But if we shall say, Of men; they feared the people: for all men counted John, that he was a prophet indeed. |
27 And they answered Jesus, and said, We cannot tell. And he said unto them, Neither tell I you by what authority I do these things. | 33 And they answered and said unto Jesus, We cannot tell. And Jesus answering saith unto them, Neither do I tell you by what authority I do these things. |
28 But what think ye? A certain man had two sons; and he came to the first, and said, Son, go work to-day in my vineyard. | |
29 He answered and said, I will not; but afterward he repented, and went. | |
30 And he came to the second, and said likewise. And he answered and said, I go, sir: and went not. | |
31 Whether of them twain did the will of his father? They say unto him, The first. Jesus saith unto them, Verily I say unto you, That the publicans and the harlots go into the kingdom of God before you. | |
32 For John came unto you in the way of righteousness, and ye believed him not: but the publicans and the harlots believed him: and ye, when ye had seen it, repented not afterward, that ye might believe him. |
Luke. | |
CH. XX. 1-8. | |
And it came to pass, that on one of those days, as he taught the people in the temple, and preached the gospel, the chief priests and the scribes came upon him, with the elders, | |
2 And spake unto him, saying, Tell us, By what authority doest thou these things? or who is he that gave thee this authority? | |
3 And he answered and said unto them, I will also ask you one thing; and answer me: | |
4 The baptism of John, was it from heaven, or of men? | |
5 And they reasoned with themselves, saying, If we shall say, From heaven; he will say, Why then believed ye him not? | |
6 But and if we say, Of men; all the people will stone us: for they be persuaded that John was a prophet. | |
7 And they answered, That they could not tell whence it was. | |
8 And Jesus said unto them, Neither tell I you by what authority I do these things. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXI. 33-46. | CH. XII. |
33 Hear another parable; There was a certain householder, which planted a vineyard, and hedged it round about, and digged a wine-press in it, and built a tower, and let it out to husbandmen, and went into a far country: | And he began to speak unto them by parables. A certain man planted a vineyard, and set an hedge about it, and digged a place for the wine-fat, and built a tower, and let it out to husbandmen, and went into a far country. |
34 And when the time of the fruit drew near, he sent his servants234 to the husbandmen, that they might receive the fruits of it. | 2 And at the season he sent to the husbandmen a servant,235 that he might receive from the husbandmen of the fruit of the vineyard. |
35 And the husbandmen took his servants, and beat one, and killed another, and stoned another. | 3 And they caught him, and beat him, and sent him away empty. |
36 Again he sent other servants more than the first: and they did unto them likewise. | 4 And again he sent unto them another servant: and at him they cast stones, and wounded him in the head, and sent him away shamefully handled. |
5 And again he sent another; and him they killed, and many others; beating some, and killing some. | |
37 But last of all, he sent unto them his son, saying, They will reverence my son. | 6 Having yet therefore one son, his well-beloved, he sent him also last unto them, saying, They will reverence my son. |
38 But when the husbandmen saw the son, they said among themselves, This is the heir; come, let us kill him, and let us seize on his inheritance. | 7 But those husbandmen said among themselves, This is the heir; come, let us kill him, and the inheritance shall be ours. |
39 And they caught him, and cast him out of the vineyard, and slew him. | 8 And they took him, and killed him, and cast him out of the vineyard. |
40 When the lord therefore of the vineyard cometh, what will he do unto those husbandmen? | 9 What shall therefore the lord of the vineyard do? He will come and destroy the husbandmen, and will give the vineyard unto others. |
41 They say unto him, He will miserably destroy those wicked men, and will let out his vineyard unto other husbandmen, which shall render him the fruits in their seasons. | |
42 Jesus saith unto them, Did ye never read in the scriptures, The stone which the builders rejected, the same is become the head of the corner: this is the Lord's doing, and it is marvellous in our eyes?236 | 10 And have ye not read this scripture; The stone which the builders rejected is become the head of the corner: |
43 Therefore say I unto you, The kingdom of God shall be taken from you, and given to a nation bringing forth the fruits thereof. | 11 This was the Lord's doing, and it is marvellous in our eyes? |
43 Therefore say I unto you, The kingdom of God shall be taken from you, and given to a nation bringing forth the fruits thereof. | |
44 And whosoever shall fall on this stone, shall be broken: but on whomsoever it shall fall, it will grind him to powder.237 | |
45 And when the chief priests and Pharisees had heard his parables, they perceived that he spake of them. | 12 And they sought to lay hold on him, but feared the people; for they knew that he had spoken the parable against them: and they left him, and went their way. |
46 But when they sought to lay hands on him, they feared the multitude, because they took him for a prophet. |
Luke. | |
CH. XX. 9-19. | |
9 Then began he to speak to the people this parable: A certain man planted a vineyard, and let it forth to husbandmen, and went into a far Country for a long time. | |
10 And at the season he sent a servant to the husbandmen, that they should give him of the fruit of the vineyard: but the husbandmen beat him, and sent him away empty. | |
11 And again he sent another servant: and they beat him also, and entreated him shamefully, and sent him away empty. | |
12 And again he sent a third: and they wounded him also, and cast him out. | |
13 Then said the lord of the vineyard, What shall I do? I will send my beloved son: it may be they will reverence him when they see him. | |
14 But when the husbandmen saw him, they reasoned among themselves, saying, This is the heir: come, let us kill him, that the inheritance may be ours. | |
15 So they cast him out of the vineyard, and killed him. What therefore shall the lord of the vineyard do unto them? | |
16 He shall come and destroy these husbandmen, and shall give the vineyard to others. And when they heard it, they said, God forbid. | |
17 And he beheld them, and said, What is this then that is written, The stone which the builders rejected, the same is become the head of the corner? | |
18 Whosoever shall fall upon that stone, shall be broken: but on whomsoever it shall fall, it will grind him to powder. | |
19 And the chief priests and the scribes the same hour sought to lay hands on him; and they feared the people: for they perceived that he had spoken this parable against them. |
Matthew. | |
CH. XXII. 1-14. | |
And Jesus answered and spake unto them again by parables, and said, | |
2 The kingdom of heaven is like unto a certain king, which made a marriage for his son, | |
3 And sent forth his servants to call them that were bidden to the wedding: and they would not come. | |
4 Again he sent forth other servants, saying, Tell them which are bidden, Behold, I have prepared my dinner: my oxen and my fatlings are killed, and all things are ready: come unto the marriage. | |
5 But they made light of it, and went their ways, one to his farm, another to his merchandise. | |
6 And the remnant took his servants, and entreated them spitefully, and slew them. | |
7 But when the king heard thereof, he was wroth: and he sent forth his armies, and destroyed those murderers, and burned up their city. | |
8 Then saith he to his servants, The wedding is ready, but they which were bidden were not worthy. | |
9 Go ye therefore into the highways, and as many as ye shall find, bid to the marriage. | |
10 So those servants went out into the highways, and gathered together all as many as they found, both bad and good: and the wedding was furnished with guests. | |
11 And when the king came in to see the guests, he saw there a man which had not on a wedding-garment: | |
12 And he saith unto him, Friend, how camest thou in hither, not having a wedding-garment? And he was speechless. | |
13 Then said the king to the servants, Bind him hand and foot, and take him away, and cast him into outer darkness: there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth.238 | |
14 For many are called, but few are chosen. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXII. 15-22. | CH. XII. 13-17. |
15 Then went the Pharisees, and took counsel how they might entangle him in his talk. | 13 And they send unto him certain of the Pharisees, and of the Herodians, to catch him in his words. |
16 And they sent out unto him their disciples, with the Herodians, saying, Master, we know that thou art true, and teachest the way of God in truth, neither carest thou for any man: for thou regardest not the person of men. | 14 And when they were come, they say unto him, Master, we know that thou art true, and carest for no man: for thou regardest not the person of men, but teachest the way of God in truth: Is it lawful to give tribute to Cesar, or not? |
17 Tell us therefore, What thinkest thou? Is it lawful to give tribute unto Cesar, or not? | |
18 But Jesus perceived their wickedness, and said, Why tempt ye me, ye hypocrites? | 15 Shall we give, or shall we not give? But he, knowing their hypocrisy, said unto them, Why tempt ye me? bring me a penny, that I may see it. |
19 Shew me the tribute-money. And they brought unto him a penny. | 16 And they brought it. And he saith unto them, Whose is this image and superscription? And they said unto him, Cesar's. |
20 And he saith unto them, Whose is this image, and superscription? | |
21 They say unto him, Cesar's. Then saith he unto them, Render therefore unto Cesar, the things which are Cesar's; and unto God, the things that are God's. | 17 And Jesus answering, said unto them, Render to Cesar the things that are Cesar's, and to God the things that are God's. And they marvelled at him. |
22 When they had heard these words, they marvelled, and left him, and went their way. |
Luke. | |
CH. XX. 20-26. | |
20 And they watched him, and sent forth spies, which should feign themselves just men, that they might take hold of his words, that so they might deliver him unto the power and authority of the governor. | |
21 And they asked him, saying, Master, we know that thou sayest and teachest rightly, neither acceptest thou the person of any, but teachest the way of God truly: | |
22 Is it lawful for us to give tribute unto Cesar, or no? | |
23 But he perceived their craftiness, and said unto them, Why tempt ye me? | |
24 Shew me a penny. Whose image and superscription hath it? They answered and said, Cesar's. | |
25 And he said unto them, Render therefore unto Cesar the things which be Cesar's, and unto God the things which be God's. | |
26 And they could not take hold of his words before the people: and they marvelled at his answer, and held their peace. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXII. 23-33. | CH. XII. 18-27. |
23 The same day came to him the Sadducees, which say that there is no resurrection, and asked him, | 18 Then come unto him the Sadducees, which say there is no resurrection; and they asked him, saying, |
24 Saying, Master, Moses said, If a man die, having no children, his brother shall marry his wife, and raise up seed unto his brother.239 | 19 Master, Moses wrote unto us, If a man's brother die, and leave his wife behind him, and leave no children, that his brother should take his wife, and raise up seed unto his brother. |
25 Now, there were with us seven brethren: and the first, when he had married a wife, deceased: and having no issue, left his wife unto his brother. | 20 Now, there were seven brethren: and the first took a wife, and dying left no seed. |
26 Likewise the second also, and the third, unto the seventh. | 21 And the second took her, and died, neither left he any seed: and the third likewise. |
27 And last of all the woman died also. | 22 And the seven had her, and left no seed: last of all the woman died also. |
28 Therefore, in the resurrection, whose wife shall she be of the seven? for they all had her. | 23 In the resurrection therefore, when they shall rise, whose wife shall she be of them? for the seven had her to wife. |
29 Jesus answered and said unto them, Ye do err, not knowing the scriptures, nor the power of God. | 24 And Jesus answering, said unto them, Do ye not therefore err, because ye know not the scriptures, neither the power of God? |
30 For in the resurrection they neither marry, nor are given in marriage, but are as the angels of God in heaven. | 25 For when they shall rise from the dead, they neither marry, nor are given in marriage; but are as the angels which are in heaven. |
31 But, as touching the resurrection of the dead, have ye not read that which was spoken unto you by God, saying, | 26 And as touching the dead, that they rise; have ye not read in the book of Moses, how in the bush God spake unto him, saying, I am the God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob? |
32 I am the God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob?240 God is not the God of the dead, but of the living. | 27 He is not the God of the dead, but the God of the living: ye therefore do greatly err. |
33 And when the multitude heard this, they were astonished at his doctrine. |
Luke. | |
CH. XX. 27-40. | |
27 Then came to him certain of the Sadducees (which deny that there is any resurrection) and they asked him, | |
28 Saying, Master, Moses wrote unto us, If any man's brother die, having a wife, and he die without children, that his brother should take his wife, and raise up seed unto his brother. | |
29 There were therefore seven brethren: and the first took a wife, and died without children. | |
30 And the second took her to wife, and he died childless. | |
31 And the third took her; and in like manner the seven also: and they left no children, and died. | |
32 Last of all the woman died also. | |
33 Therefore in the resurrection, whose wife of them is she? for seven had her to wife. | |
34 And Jesus answering, said unto them, The children of this world marry, and are given in marriage: | |
35 But they which shall be accounted worthy to obtain that world, and the resurrection from the dead, neither marry, nor are given in marriage: | |
36 Neither can they die any more:241 for they are equal unto the angels; and are the children of God, being the children of the resurrection. | |
37 Now that the dead are raised, even Moses shewed at the bush, when he calleth the Lord the God of Abraham, and the God of Isaac, and the God of Jacob. | |
38 For he is not a God of the dead, but of the living: for all live unto him. | |
39 Then certain of the scribes answering, said, Master, thou hast well said. | |
40 And after that, they durst not ask him any question at all. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXII. 34-40. | CH. XII. 28-34. |
34 But when the Pharisees had heard that he had put the Sadducees to silence, they were gathered together. | 28 And one of the scribes came, and having heard them reasoning together, and perceiving that he had answered them well, asked him, Which is the first commandment of all? |
35 Then one of them which was a lawyer, asked him a question, tempting him, and saying, | |
36 Master, which is the great commandment in the law? | |
29 And Jesus answered him, The first of all the commandments is, Hear, O Israel; The Lord our God is one Lord: | |
37 Jesus said unto him, Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy mind.242 | 30 And thou shalt love the Lord thy God with all thy heart, and with all thy soul, and with all thy mind, and with all thy strength: this is the first commandment. |
38 This is the first and great commandment. | 31 And the second is like, namely this, Thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself: there is none other commandment greater than these. |
39 And the second is like unto it, Thou shalt love thy neighbour as thyself.243 | 32 And the scribe said unto him, Well Master, thou hast said the truth: for there is one God; and there is none other but he: |
33 And to love him with all the heart, and with all the understanding, and with all the soul, and with all the strength, and to love his neighbour as himself, is more than all whole burnt-offerings and sacrifices. | |
34 And when Jesus saw that he answered discreetly, he said unto him, Thou art not far from the kingdom of God. And no man after that durst ask him any question. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXII. 41-46. | CH. XII. 35-37. |
41 While the Pharisees were gathered together, Jesus asked them, | |
42 Saying, What think ye of Christ? whose son is he? They say unto him, The son of David. | |
43 He saith unto them, How then doth David in spirit call him Lord, saying, | 35 And Jesus answered and said, while he taught in the temple, How say the scribes that Christ is the son of David? |
44 The Lord said unto my Lord, Sit thou on my right hand, till I make thine enemies thy footstool?244 | Holy Ghost, The Lord said unto my Lord, Sit thou on my right hand, till I make thine enemies thy footstool. |
45 If David then call him Lord, how is he his son? | 37 David therefore himself calleth him Lord, and whence is he then his son? And the common people heard him gladly. |
46 And no man was able to answer him a word, neither durst any man, from that day forth, ask him any more questions. |
Luke. | |
CH. XX. 41-44. | |
41 And he said unto them, How say they that Christ is David's son? | |
42 And David himself saith in the book of Psalms, The Lord said unto my Lord, Sit thou on my right hand, | |
43 Till I make thine enemies thy footstool. | |
44 David therefore calleth him Lord, how is he then his son? |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXIII. 1-12. | CH. XII. 38, 39. |
Then spake Jesus to the multitude, and to his disciples, | 38 And he said unto them in his doctrine, Beware of the scribes, which love to go in long clothing, and love salutations in the market-places, |
2 Saying, The scribes and the Pharisees sit in Moses' seat: | 39 And the chief seats in the synagogues, and the uppermost rooms at feasts: |
3 All therefore whatsoever they bid you observe, that observe and do: but do not ye after their works: for they say, and do not. | |
4 For they bind heavy burdens, and grievous to be borne, and lay them on men's shoulders; but they themselves will not move them with one of their fingers. | |
5 But all their works they do for to be seen of men: they make broad their phylacteries, and enlarge the borders of their garments, | |
6 And love the uppermost rooms at feasts, and the chief seats in the synagogues, | |
7 And greetings in the markets, and to be called of men, Rabbi, Rabbi. | |
8 But be ye not called Rabbi: for one is your Master, even Christ; and all ye are brethren. | |
9 And call no man your father upon the earth: for one is your Father which is in heaven. | |
10 Neither be ye called masters: for one is your master, even Christ. | |
11 But he that is greatest among you, shall be your servant. | |
12 And whosoever shall exalt himself, shall be abased; and he that shall humble himself, shall be exalted. |
Luke. | |
CH. XX. 45, 46. | |
45 Then in the audience of all the people, he said unto his disciples, | |
46 Beware of the scribes, which desire to walk in long robes, and love greetings in the markets, and the highest seats in the synagogues, and the chief rooms at feasts; |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXIII. 13-39. | CH. XII. 40. |
13 But wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye shut up the kingdom of heaven against men: for ye neither go in yourselves, neither suffer ye them that are entering, to go in. | |
14 Wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye devour widows' houses, and for a pretence make long prayer: therefore ye shall receive the greater damnation. | 40 Which devour widows' houses and for a pretence make long prayers these shall receive greater damnation |
15 Wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye compass sea and land to make one proselyte; and when he is made, ye make him two-fold more the child of hell than yourselves. | |
16 Wo unto you, ye blind guides, which say, Whosoever shall swear by the temple, it is nothing; but whosoever shall swear by the gold of the temple, he is a debtor. | |
17 Ye fools, and blind! for whether is greater, the gold, or the temple that sanctifieth the gold? | |
18 And whosoever shall swear by the altar, it is nothing; but whosoever sweareth by the gift that is upon it, he is guilty. | |
19 Ye fools, and blind! for whether is greater, the gift, or the altar that sanctifieth the gift? | |
20 Whoso therefore shall swear by the altar, sweareth by it, and by all things thereon. | |
21 And whoso shall swear by the temple, sweareth by it, and by him that dwelleth therein. | |
22 And he that shall swear by heaven, sweareth by the throne of God, and by him that sitteth thereon. | |
23 Wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye pay tithe of mint, and anise, and cummin, and have omitted the weightier matters of the law, judgment, mercy, and faith: these ought ye to have done, and not to leave the other undone. | |
24 Ye blind guides, which strain at a gnat, and swallow a camel. | |
25 Wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye make clean the outside of the cup and of the platter, but within they are full of extortion and excess. | |
26 Thou blind Pharisee, cleanse first that which is within the cup and platter, that the outside of them may be clean also. | |
27 Wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! for ye are like unto whited sepulchres, which indeed appear beautiful outward, but are within full of dead men's bones, and of all uncleanness. | |
28 Even so ye also outwardly appear righteous unto men, but within ye are full of hypocrisy and iniquity. | |
29 Wo unto you, scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites! because ye build the tombs of the prophets, and garnish the sepulchres of the righteous, | |
30 And say, If we had been in the days of our fathers, we would not have been partakers with them in the blood of the prophets. | |
31 Wherefore ye be witnesses unto yourselves, that ye are the children of them which killed the prophets. | |
32 Fill ye up then the measure of your fathers. | |
33 Ye serpents, ye generation of vipers, how can ye escape the damnation of hell? | |
34 Wherefore, behold, I send unto you prophets, and wise men, and scribes; and some of them ye shall kill and crucify, and some of them shall ye scourge in your synagogue, and persecute them from city to city: | |
35 That upon you may come all the righteous blood shed upon the earth, from the blood of righteous Abel, unto the blood of Zacharias, son of Barachias, whom ye slew between the temple and the altar.245 | |
36 Verily, I say unto you, All these things shall come upon this generation. | |
37 O Jerusalem, Jerusalem, thou that killest the prophets, and stonest them which are sent unto thee, how often would I have gathered thy children together, even as a hen gathereth her chickens under her wings, and ye would not! | |
38 Behold, your house is left unto you desolate.246 | |
39 For I say unto you, Ye shall not see me henceforth, till ye shall say, Blessed is he that cometh in the name of the Lord.247 |
Luke. | |
CH. XX. 47. | |
Which devour widows' houses, and for a shew make long prayers: the same shall receive greater damnation. |
Mark. | Luke. |
CH. XII. 41-44. | CH. XXI. 1-4. |
41 And Jesus sat over against the treasury, and beheld how the people cast money into the treasury: and many that were rich cast in much. | And he looked up and saw the rich men casting their gifts into the treasury. |
42 And there came a certain poor widow, and she threw in two mites, which make a farthing. | 2 And he saw also a certain poor widow, casting in thither two mites. |
43 And he called unto him his disciples, and saith unto them, Verily, I say unto you, That this poor widow hath cast more in, than all they which have cast into the treasury. | 3 And he said, Of a truth I say unto you, That this poor widow hath cast in more than they all. |
44 For all they did cast in of their abundance: but she of her want did cast in all that she had, even all her living. | 4 For all these have of their abundance cast in unto the offerings of God: but she of her penury hath cast in all the living that she had. |
John. | |
CH. XII. 20-36. | |
20 And there were certain Greeks among them, that came up to worship at the feast. | |
21 The same came therefore to Philip, which was of Bethsaida of Galilee, and desired him, saying, Sir, we would see Jesus. | |
22 Philip cometh and telleth Andrew: and again, Andrew and Philip tell Jesus. | |
23 And Jesus answered them, saying, The hour is come, that the Son of man should be glorified. | |
24 Verily, verily, I say unto you, Except a corn of wheat fall into the ground and die, it abideth alone: but if it die, it bringeth forth much fruit. | |
25 He that loveth his life shall lose it; and he that hateth his life in this world, shall keep it unto life eternal. | |
26 If any man serve me, let him follow me, and where I am, there shall also my servant be: if any man serve me, him will my Father honour. | |
27 Now is my soul troubled; and what shall I say? Father, save me from this hour: but for this cause came I unto this hour. | |
28 Father, glorify thy name. Then came there a voice from heaven, saying, I have both glorified it, and will glorify it again. | |
29 The people therefore that stood by, and heard it, said that it thundered. Others said, An angel spake to him. | |
30 Jesus answered and said, This voice came not because of me, but for your sakes. | |
31 Now is the judgment of this world: now shall the prince of this world be cast out. | |
32 And I, if I be lifted up from the earth, will draw all men unto me. | |
33 (This he said, signifying what death he should die.) | |
34 The people answered him, We have heard out of the law that Christ abideth for ever:248 and how sayest thou, The Son of man must be lifted up? Who is this Son of man? | |
35 Then Jesus said unto them, Yet a little while is the light with you. Walk while ye have the light, lest darkness come upon you: for he that walketh in darkness knoweth not whither he goeth. | |
36 While ye have light, believe in the light, that ye may be the children of light. These things spake Jesus, and departed, and did hide himself from them. |
John. | |
CH. XII. 37-50. | |
37 But though he had done so many miracles before them, yet they believed not on him. | |
38 That the saying of Esaias the prophet might be fulfilled, which he spake, Lord, who hath believed our report? and to whom hath the arm of the Lord been revealed?249 | |
39 Therefore they could not believe, because that Esaias said again, | |
40 He hath blinded their eyes, and hardened their heart; that they should not see with their eyes, nor understand with their heart, and be converted, and I should heal them.250 | |
41 These things said Esaias, when he saw his glory, and spake of him.251 | |
42 Nevertheless, among the chief rulers also many believed on him; but because of the Pharisees they did not confess him, lest they should be put out of the synagogue: | |
43 For they loved the praise of men more than the praise of God. | |
44 Jesus cried, and said, He that believeth on me, believeth not on me, but on him that sent me. | |
45 And he that seeth me, seeth him that sent me. | |
46 I am come a light into the world, that whosoever believeth on me should not abide in darkness. | |
47 And if any man hear my words, and believe not, I judge him not: for I came not to judge the world, but to save the world. | |
48 He that rejecteth me, and receiveth not my words, hath one that judgeth him: the word that I have spoken, the same shall judge him in the last day. | |
49 For I have not spoken of myself; but the Father which sent me, he gave me a commandment, what I should say, and what I should speak. | |
50 And I know that his commandment is life everlasting: whatsoever I speak therefore, even as the Father said unto me, so I speak. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXIV. 1-14. | CH. XIII. 1-13. |
And Jesus went out, and departed from the temple: and his disciples came to him for to shew him the buildings of the temple. | And as he went out of the temple, one of his disciples saith unto him, Master, see what manner of stones, and what buildings are here! |
2 And Jesus said unto them, See ye not all these things? verily, I say unto you, There shall not be left here one stone upon another, that shall not be thrown down. | 2 And Jesus answering, said unto him, Seest thou these great buildings? there shall not be left one stone upon another, that shall not be thrown down. |
3 And as he sat upon the mount of Olives, the disciples came unto him privately, saying, Tell us, when shall these things be? and what shall be the sign of thy coming, and of the end of the world. | 3 And as he sat upon the mount of Olives, over against the temple, Peter, and James, and John, and Andrew, asked him privately, |
4 Tell us, when shall these things be? and what shall be the sign when all these things shall be fulfilled? | |
4 And Jesus answered and said unto them, Take heed that no man deceive you. | 5 And Jesus answering them, began to say. Take heed lest any man deceive you: |
5 For many shall come in my name, saying, I am Christ; and shall deceive many. | 6 For many shall come in my name, saying, I am Christ; and shall deceive many. |
6 And ye shall hear of wars, and rumours of wars: see that ye be not troubled: for all these things must come to pass, but the end is not yet. | 7 And when ye shall hear of wars, and rumours of wars, be ye not troubled: for such things must needs be; but the end shall not be yet. |
7 For nation shall rise against nation, and kingdom against kingdom: and there shall be famines, and pestilence, and earthquakes in divers places. | 8 For nation shall rise against nation, and kingdom against kingdom: and there shall be earthquakes in divers places, and there shall be famines, and troubles: these are the beginnings of sorrows. |
8 All these are the beginning of sorrows. | |
9 Then shall they deliver you up to be afflicted, and shall kill you: and ye shall be hated of all nations for my name's sake. | 9 But take heed to yourselves: for they shall deliver you up to councils; and in the synagogues ye shall be beaten: and ye shall be brought before rulers and kings for my sake, for a testimony against them. |
10 And the gospel must first be published among all nations. | |
11 But when they shall lead you, and deliver you up, take no thought beforehand what ye shall speak, neither do ye premeditate: but whatsoever shall be given you in that hour, that speak ye: for it is not ye that speak, but the Holy Ghost. | |
10 And then shall many be offended, and shall betray one another, and shall hate one another. | 12 Now, the brother shall betray the brother to death, and the father the son: and children shall rise up against their parents, and shall cause them to be put to death. |
11 And many false prophets shall rise, and shall deceive many. | |
12 And because iniquity shall abound, the love of many shall wax cold. | |
13 But he that shall endure unto the end, the same shall be saved. | 13 And ye shall be hated of all men for my name's sake: but he that shall endure unto the end, the same shall be saved. |
14 And this gospel of the kingdom shall be preached in all the world, for a witness unto all nations; and then shall the end come. |
Luke. | |
CH. XXI. 5-19. | |
5 And as some spake of the temple, how it was adorned with goodly stones, and gifts, he said, | |
6 As for these things which ye behold, the days will come, in the which there shall not be left one stone upon another, that shall not be thrown down. | |
7 And they asked him, saying, Master, but when shall these things be? and what sign will there be when these things shall come to pass? | |
8 And he said, Take heed that ye be not deceived: for many shall come in my name, saying, I am Christ; and the time draweth near: go ye not therefore after them. | |
9 But when ye shall hear of wars, and commotions, be not terrified: for these things must first come to pass; but the end is not by and by. | |
10 Then said he unto them, Nation shall rise against nation, and kingdom against kingdom: | |
11 And great earthquakes shall be in divers places, and famines, and pestilences: and fearful sights, and great signs shall there be from heaven. | |
12 But before all these they shall lay their hands on you, and persecute you, delivering you up to the synagogues, and into prisons, being brought before kings and rulers for my name's sake. | |
13 And it shall turn to you for a testimony. | |
14 Settle it therefore in your hearts, not to meditate before what ye shall answer. | |
15 For I will give you a mouth and wisdom, which all your adversaries shall not be able to gainsay nor resist. | |
16 And ye shall be betrayed both by parents, and brethren, and kinsfolks, and friends; and some of you shall they cause to be put to death.252 | |
17 And ye shall be hated of all men for my name's sake. | |
18 But there shall not an hair of your head perish. | |
19 In your patience possess ye your souls. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXIV. 15-42. | CH. XXIII. 14-37. |
15 When ye, therefore, shall see the abomination of desolation, spoken of by Daniel the prophet,253 stand in the holy place, (whoso readeth, let him understand,) | 14 But when ye shall see the abomination of desolation, spoken of by Daniel the prophet, standing where it ought not, (let him that readeth understand) then let them that be in Judea flee to the mountains: |
16 Then let them which be in Judea flee into the mountains: | |
17 Let him which is on the housetop not come down to take any thing out of his house: | 15 And let him that is on the housetop not go down into the house, neither enter therein, to take any thing out of his house: |
18 Neither let him which is in the field return back to take his clothes. | 16 And let him that is in the field not turn back again for to take up his garment. |
19 And wo unto them that are with child, and to them that give suck in those days! | 17 But wo to them that are with child, and to them that give suck in those days! |
20 But pray ye that your flight be not in the winter, neither on the sabbath-day: | 18 And pray ye that your flight be not in the winter. |
21 For then shall be great tribulation, such as was not since the beginning of the world to this time, no, nor ever shall be. | 19 For in those days shall be affliction, such as was not from the beginning of the creation which God created unto this time, neither shall be. |
22 And except those days should be shortened, there should no flesh be saved: but for the elect's sake those days shall be shortened. | 20 And except that the Lord had shortened these days, no flesh should be saved: but for the elect's sake, whom he hath chosen, he hath shortened the days. |
23 Then if any man shall say unto you, Lo, here is Christ, or there; believe it not. | 21 And then, if any man shall say to you, Lo, here is Christ; or lo, he is there; believe him not. |
24 For there shall arise false Christs, and false prophets, and shall shew great signs and wonders; insomuch that, if it were possible, they shall deceive the very elect. | 22 For false Christs, and false prophets shall rise, and shall shew signs and wonders, to seduce, if it were possible, even the elect. |
25 Behold, I have told you before. | 23 But take ye heed: behold, I have foretold you all things. |
26 Wherefore, if they shall say unto you, Behold, he is in the desert; go not forth: behold, he is in the secret chambers; believe it not. | |
27 For as the lightning cometh out of the east, and shineth even unto the west; so shall also the coming of the Son of man be. | |
28 For wheresoever the carcass is, there will the eagles be gathered together. | |
29 Immediately after the tribulation of those days, shall the sun be darkened, and the moon shall not give her light, and the stars shall fall from heaven, and the powers of the heavens shall be shaken:254 | 24 But in those days, after that tribulation, the sun shall be darkened, and the moon shall not give her light, |
25 And the stars of heaven shall fall, and the powers that are in heaven shall be shaken. | |
30 And then shall appear the sign of the Son of man in heaven: and then shall all the tribes of the earth mourn, and they shall see the Son of man coming in the clouds of heaven with power and great glory. | 26 And then shall they see the Son of man coming in the clouds with great power and glory. |
31 And he shall send his angels with a great sound of a trumpet, and they shall gather together his elect from the four winds, from one end of heaven to the other. | 27 And then shall he send his angels, and shall gather together his elect from the four winds, from the uttermost part of the earth to the uttermost part of heaven. |
32 Now learn a parable of the fig-tree; When his branch is yet tender, and putteth forth leaves, ye know that summer is nigh: | 28 Now learn a parable of the fig-tree: When her branch is yet tender, and putteth forth leaves, ye know that summer is near: |
33 So likewise ye, when ye shall see all these things, know that it is near, even at the doors. | 29 So ye in like manner, when ye shall see these things come to pass, know that it is nigh, even at the doors. |
34 Verily, I say unto you, This generation shall not pass, till all these things be fulfilled. | 30 Verily, I say unto you, That this generation shall not pass, till all these things be done. |
35 Heaven and earth shall pass away, but my words shall not pass away. | 31 Heaven and earth shall pass away: but my words shall not pass away. |
36 But of that day and hour knoweth no man, no, not the angels of heaven, but my Father only. | 32 But of that day and that hour knoweth no man, no, not the angels which are in heaven, neither the Son, but the Father. |
37 But as the days of Noe were, so shall also the coming of the Son of man be. | 33 Take ye heed, watch and pray: for ye know not when the time is. |
38 For as in the days that were before the flood, they were eating and drinking, marrying and giving in marriage, until the day that Noe entered into the ark,255 | 34 For the Son of man is as a man taking a far journey, who left his house, and gave authority to his servants, and to every man his work; and commanded the porter to watch. |
39 And knew not until the flood came, and took them all away: so shall also the coming of the Son of man be. | |
40 Then shall two be in the field; the one shall be taken, and the other left. | |
41 Two women shall be grinding at the mill; the one shall be taken, and the other left. | |
42 Watch therefore; for ye know not what hour your Lord doth come. | 35 Watch ye therefore: for ye know not when the master of the house cometh, at even, or at midnight, or at the cock-crowing, or in the morning: |
36 Lest coming suddenly, he find you sleeping. | |
37 And what I say unto you, I say unto all, Watch. |
Luke. | |
CH. XXI. 20-36. | |
20 And when ye shall see Jerusalem compassed with armies, then know that the desolation thereof is nigh. | |
21 Then let them which are in Judea flee to the mountains; and let them which are in the midst of it depart out; and let not them that are in the countries enter thereinto. | |
22 For these be the days of vengeance, that all things which are written may be fulfilled. | |
23 But wo unto them that are with child, and to them that give suck in those days! for there shall be great distress in the land, and wrath upon this people. | |
24 And they shall fall by the edge of the sword, and shall be led away captive into all nations: and Jerusalem shall be trodden down of the Gentiles, until the times of the Gentiles be fulfilled. | |
25 And there shall be signs in the sun, and in the moon, and in the stars; and upon the earth distress of nations, with perplexity; the sea and the waves roaring; | |
26 Men's hearts failing them for fear, and for looking after those things which are coming on the earth: for the powers of heaven shall be shaken. | |
29 And he spake to them a parable; Behold the fig-tree, and all the trees; | |
30 When they now shoot forth, ye see and know of your ownselves that summer is now nigh at hand. | |
31 So likewise ye, when ye see these things come to pass, know ye that the kingdom of God is nigh at hand. | |
32 Verily, I say unto you, This generation shall not pass away, till all be fulfilled. | |
33 Heaven and earth shall pass away: but my words shall not pass away. | |
34 And take heed to yourselves, lest at any time your hearts be overcharged with surfeiting and drunkenness, and cares of this life, and so that day come upon you unawares. | |
35 For as a snare shall it come on all them that dwell on the face of the whole earth. | |
36 Watch ye therefore, and pray always, that ye may be accounted worthy to escape all these things that shall come to pass, and to stand before the Son of man. |
Matthew. | |
CH. XXIV. 43-51. CH. XXV. 1-30. | |
43 But know this, that if the good man of the house had known in what watch the thief would come, he would have watched, and would not have suffered his house to be broken up. | |
44 Therefore be ye also ready: for in such an hour as ye think not, the Son of man cometh. | |
45 Who then is a faithful and wise servant, whom his lord hath made ruler over his household, to give them meat in due season? | |
46 Blessed is that servant, whom his lord, when he cometh, shall find so doing. | |
47 Verily I say unto you, That he shall make him ruler over all his goods. | |
48 But and if that evil servant shall say in his heart, My lord delayeth his coming; | |
49 And shall begin to smite his fellow-servants, and to eat and drink with the drunken; | |
50 The lord of that servant shall come in a day when he looketh not for him, and in an hour that he is not aware of, | |
51 And shall cut him asunder, and appoint him his portion with the hypocrites: there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth. | |
CH. XXV. | |
Then shall the kingdom of heaven be likened unto ten virgins, which took their lamps, and went forth to meet the bridegroom. | |
2 And five of them were wise, and five were foolish. | |
3 They that were foolish took their lamps, and took no oil with them: | |
4 But the wise took oil in their vessels with their lamps. | |
5 While the bridegroom tarried, they all slumbered and slept. | |
6 And at midnight there was a cry made, Behold, the bridegroom cometh: go ye out to meet him. | |
7 Then all those virgins arose, and trimmed their lamps. | |
8 And the foolish said unto the wise, Give us of your oil: for our lamps are gone out. | |
9 But the wise answered, saying, Not so; lest there be not enough for us and you: but go ye rather to them that sell, and buy for yourselves. | |
10 And while they went to buy, the bridegroom came; and they that were ready, went in with him to the marriage: and the door was shut. | |
11 Afterward came also the other virgins, saying, Lord, Lord, open to us. | |
12 But he answered and said, Verily, I say unto you, I know you not. | |
13 Watch therefore, for ye know neither the day nor the hour wherein the Son of man cometh. | |
14 For the kingdom of heaven is as a man travelling into a far country, who called his own servants, and delivered unto them his goods. | |
15 And unto one he gave five talents, to another two, and to another one; to every man according to his several ability; and straightway took his journey. | |
16 Then he that had received the five talents, went and traded with the same, and made them other five talents. | |
17 And likewise he that had received two, he also gained other two. | |
18 But he that had received one, went and digged in the earth, and hid his lord's money. | |
19 After a long time the lord of those servants cometh, and reckoneth with them. | |
20 And so he that had received five talents, came and brought other five talents, saying, Lord, thou deliveredst unto me five talents: behold, I have gained besides them five talents more. | |
21 His lord said unto him, Well done, thou good and faithful servant; thou hast been faithful over a few things, I will make thee ruler over many things: enter thou into the joy of thy lord. | |
22 He also that had received two talents came, and said, Lord, thou deliveredst unto me two talents: behold, I have gained two other talents besides them. | |
23 His lord said unto him, Well done, good and faithful servant; thou hast been faithful over a few things, I will make thee ruler over many things: enter thou into the joy of thy lord. | |
24 Then he which had received the one talent came, and said, Lord, I knew thee that thou art an hard man, reaping where thou hast not sown, and gathering where thou hast not strewed: | |
25 And I was afraid, and went and hid thy talent in the earth: lo, there thou hast that is thine. | |
26 His lord answered and said unto him, Thou wicked and slothful servant, thou knewest256 that I reap where I sowed not, and gather where I have not strewed: | |
27 Thou oughtest therefore to have put my money to the exchangers, and then at my coming I should have received mine own with usury. | |
28 Take therefore the talent from him, and give it unto him which hath ten talents. | |
29 For unto every one that hath shall be given, and he shall have abundance: but from him that hath not, shall be taken away even that which he hath. | |
30 And cast ye the unprofitable servant into outer darkness: there shall be weeping and gnashing of teeth. |
Matthew. | |
CH. XXV. 31-46. | |
31 When the Son of man shall come in his glory, and all the holy angels with him, then shall he sit upon the throne of his glory: | |
32 And before him shall be gathered all nations: and he shall separate them one from another, as a shepherd divideth his sheep from the goats: | |
33 And he shall set the sheep on his right hand, but the goats on the left. | |
34 Then shall the King say unto them on his right hand, Come, ye blessed of my Father, inherit the kingdom prepared for you from the foundation of the world: | |
35 For I was an hungered, and ye gave me meat: I was thirsty, and ye gave me drink: I was a stranger, and ye took me in: | |
36 Naked, and ye clothed me: I was sick, and ye visited me: I was in prison, and ye came unto me. | |
37 Then shall the righteous answer him, saying, Lord, when saw we thee an hungered, and fed thee? or thirsty, and gave thee drink? | |
38 When saw we thee a stranger, and took thee in? or naked, and clothed thee? | |
39 Or when saw we thee sick, or in prison, and came unto thee? | |
40 And the King shall answer and say unto them, Verily I say unto you, Inasmuch as ye have done it unto one of the least of these my brethren, ye have done it unto me. | |
41 Then shall he say also unto them on the left hand, Depart from me, ye cursed, into everlasting fire, prepared for the devil and his angels: | |
42 For I was an hungered, and ye gave me no meat: I was thirsty, and ye gave me no drink: | |
43 I was a stranger, and ye took me not in: naked, and ye clothed me not: sick, and in prison, and ye visited me not. | |
44 Then shall they also answer him, saying, Lord, when saw we thee an hungered, or athirst, or a stranger, or naked, or sick, or in prison, and did not minister unto thee? | |
45 Then shall he answer them, saying, Verily, I say unto you, Inasmuch as ye did it not to one of the least of these, ye did it not to me. | |
46 And these shall go away into everlasting punishment: but the righteous into life eternal. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVI. 1-16. | CH. XIV. 1-11. |
And it came to pass, when Jesus had finished all these sayings, he said| unto his disciples, | |
2 Ye know that after two days is the feast of the passover, and the Son of man is betrayed to be crucified. | After two days was the feast of the passover, and of unleavened bread: and the chief priests, and the scribes, sought how they might take him by craft, and put him to death. |
3 Then assembled together the chief priests, and the scribes, and the elders of the people, unto the palace of the high priest, who was called Caiaphas, | |
4 And consulted that they might take Jesus by subtilty, and kill him. | |
5 But they said, Not on the feast-day, lest there be an uproar among the people. | 2 But they said, Not on the feast-day, lest there be an uproar of the people. |
6 Now when Jesus was in Bethany, in the house of Simon the leper, | 3 And being in Bethany, in the house of Simon the leper, as he sat at meat, there came a woman having an alabaster-box of ointment of spikenard, very precious; and she brake the box, and poured it on his head. |
7 There came unto him a woman having an alabaster-box of very precious ointment, and poured it on his head as he sat at meat. | |
8 But when his disciples257 saw it, they had indignation, saying, To what purpose is this waste? | 4 And there were some that had indignation within themselves, and said, Why was this waste of the ointment made? |
9 For this ointment might have been sold for much, and given to the poor. | 5 For it might have been sold for more than three hundred pence, and have been given to the poor. And they murmured against her. |
10 When Jesus understood it, he said unto them, Why trouble ye the woman? for she hath wrought a good work upon me. | 6 And Jesus said, Let her alone: why trouble ye her? she hath wrought a good work on me. |
11 For ye have the poor always with you; but me ye have not always. | 7 For ye have the poor with you always, and whensoever ye will ye may do them good: but me ye have not always. |
12 For in that she hath poured this ointment on my body, she did it for my burial. | 8 She hath done what she could: she is come aforehand to anoint my body to the burying. |
13 Verily, I say unto you, Wheresoever this gospel shall be preached in the whole world, there shall also this, that this woman hath done, be told for a memorial of her. | 9 Verily, I say unto you, Wheresoever this gospel shall be preached throughout the whole world, this also that she hath done shall be spoken of, for a memorial of her. |
14 Then one of the twelve, called Judas Iscariot, went unto the chief priests, | 10 And Judas Iscariot, one of the twelve, went unto the chief priests, to betray him unto them. |
15 And said unto them, What will ye give me, and I will deliver him unto you? And they covenanted with him for thirty pieces of silver. | 11 And when they heard it, they were glad, and promised to give him money. And he sought how he might conveniently betray him. |
16 And from that time he sought opportunity to betray him. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXII. 1-6. | CH. XII. 2-8. |
Now the feast of unleavened bread drew nigh, which is called the Passover. | |
2 And the chief priests and scribes sought how they might kill him: for they feared the people. | |
2 There they made him a supper; and Martha served: but Lazarus was one of them that sat at the table with him. | |
3 Then took Mary a pound of ointment of spikenard, very costly, and anointed the feet258 of Jesus, and wiped his feet with her hair: and the house was filled with the odour of the ointment. | |
4 Then saith one of his disciples, Judas Iscariot,259 Simon's son, which should betray him, | |
5 Why was not this ointment sold for three hundred pence, and given to the poor? | |
6 This he said, not that he cared for the poor, but because he was a thief, and had the bag, and bare what was put therein. | |
7 Then said Jesus, Let her alone: against the day of my burying hath she kept this. | |
8 For the poor always ye have with you; but me ye have not always. | |
3 Then entered Satan into Judas, surnamed Iscariot, being of the number of the twelve. | |
4 And he went his way, and communed with the chief priests and captains, how he might betray him unto them. | |
5 And they were glad, and covenanted to give him money. | |
6 And he promised, and sought opportunity to betray him unto them in the absence of the multitude. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVI. 17-19. | CH. XIV. 12-16. |
17 Now the first day of the feast of unleavened bread, the disciples came to Jesus, saying unto him, Where wilt thou that we prepare for thee to eat the passover? | 12 And the first day of unleavened bread, when they killed the passover, his disciples said unto him, Where wilt thou that we go and prepare, that thou mayest eat the passover? |
18 And he said, Go into the city to such a man, and say unto him, The Master saith, My time is at hand; I will keep the passover at thy house with my disciples.260 | 13 And he sendeth forth two of his disciples, and saith unto them, Go ye into the city, and there shall meet you a man bearing a pitcher of water: follow him. |
14 And wheresoever he shall go in, say ye to the good man of the house, The Master saith, Where is the guest-chamber, where I shall eat the passover with my disciples? | |
15 And he will shew you a large upper room furnished and prepared: there make ready for us. | |
19 And the disciples did as Jesus had appointed them; and they made ready the passover. | 16 And his disciples when forth, and came into the city, and found as he had said unto them: and they made ready the passover. |
Luke. | |
CH. XXII. 7-13. | |
7 Thence came the day of unleavened bread, when the passover must be killed. | |
8 And he sent Peter and John, saying, Go and prepare us the passover, that we may eat. | |
9 And they said unto him, Where wilt thou that we prepare? | |
10 And he said unto them, Behold, when ye are entered into the city, there shall a man meet you, bearing a pitcher of water; follow him into the house where he entereth in. | |
11 And ye shall say unto the good man of the house, The Master saith unto thee, Where is the guest-chamber, where I shall eat the passover with my disciples? | |
12 And he shall shew you a large upper room furnished: there make ready. | |
13 And they went and found as he had said unto them: and they made ready the passover. |
Time. Two days.
[pg 414]Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVI. 20. | CH. XIV. 17. |
20 Now when the even was come, he sat down with the twelve. | 17 And in the evening he cometh with the twelve. |
Luke. | |
CH. XXII. 14-18, 24-30. | |
14 And when the hour was come, he sat down, and the twelve apostles with him. | |
15 And he said unto them, With desire I have desired to eat this passover with you before I suffer. | |
16 For I say unto you, I will not any more eat thereof, until it be fulfilled in the kingdom of God. | |
17 And he took the cup, and gave thanks, and said, Take this, and divide it among yourselves. | |
18 For I say unto you, I will not drink of the fruit of the vine, until the kingdom of God shall come. | |
24 And there was also a strife among them, which of them should be accounted the greatest. | |
25 And he said unto them, The kings of the Gentiles exercise lordship over them; and they that exercise authority upon them are called benefactors. | |
26 But ye shall not be so: but he that is greatest among you, let him be as the younger; and he that is chief, as he that doth serve. | |
27 For whether is greater, he that sitteth at meat, or he that serveth? is not he that sitteth at meat? but I am among you as he that serveth. | |
28 Ye are they which have continued with me in my temptations. | |
29 And I appoint unto you a kingdom, as my Father hath appointed unto me; | |
30 That ye may eat and drink at my table in my kingdom, and sit on thrones, judging the twelve tribes of Israel. |
John. | |
CH. XII. 1-20. | |
Now before the feast of the passover, when Jesus knew that his hour was come that he should depart out of this world unto the Father, having loved his own which were in the world, he loved them unto the end. | |
2 And supper being ended, (the devil having now put into the heart of Judas Iscariot, Simon's son, to betray him,) | |
3 Jesus knowing that the Father had given all things into his hands, and that he was come from God, and went to God; | |
4 He riseth from supper, and laid aside his garments; and took a towel, and girded himself. | |
5 After that, he poureth water into a basin, and began to wash the disciples' feet, and to wipe them with the towel wherewith he was girded. | |
6 Then cometh he to Simon Peter: and Peter saith unto him, Lord, dost thou wash my feet? | |
7 Jesus answered and said unto him, What I do thou knowest not now; but thou shalt know hereafter. | |
8 Peter saith unto him, Thou shalt never wash my feet. Jesus answered him, If I wash thee not, thou hast no part with me. | |
9 Simon Peter saith unto him, Lord, not my feet only, but also my hands and my head. | |
10 Jesus saith to him, He that is washed needeth not save to wash his feet, but is clean every whit: and ye are clean, but not all. | |
11 For he knew who should betray him: therefore said he, Ye are not all clean. | |
12 So after he had washed their feet, and had taken his garments, and was set down again, he said unto them, Know ye what I have done to you? | |
13 Ye call me Master, and Lord: and ye say well; for so I am. | |
14 If I then, your Lord and Master, have washed your feet; ye also ought to wash one another's feet. | |
15 For I have given you an example, that ye should do as I have done to you. | |
16 Verily, verily, I say unto you, The servant is not greater than his lord; neither he that is sent greater than he that sent him. | |
17 If ye know these things, happy are ye if ye do them. | |
18 I speak not of you all; I know whom I have chosen; but that the scripture may be fulfilled, He that eateth bread with me, hath lifted up his heel against me.261 | |
19 Now I tell you before it come, that when it is come to pass, ye may believe that I am he. | |
20 Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that receiveth whomsoever I send, receiveth me; and he that receiveth me, receiveth him that sent me. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVI. 21-25. | CH. XIV. 18-21. |
21 And as they did eat, he said, Verily I say unto you, That one of you shall betray me. | 18 And as they sat, and did eat, Jesus said, Verily I say unto you, One of you which eateth with me, shall betray me. |
22 And they were exceeding sorrowful, and began every one of them to say unto him, Lord, is it I? | 19 And they began to be sorrowful, and to say unto him one by one, Is it I? and another said, Is it I? |
23 And he answered and said, He that dippeth his hand with me in the dish, the same shall betray me. | 20 And he answered and said unto them, It is one of the twelve that dippeth with me in the dish. |
24 The Son of man goeth, as it is written of him: but wo unto that man by whom the Son of man is betrayed! it had been good for that man if he had not been born. | 21 The Son of man indeed goeth, as it is written of him: but wo to that man by whom the Son of man is betrayed! good were it for that man if he had never been born. |
25 Then Judas, which betrayed him, answered and said, Master, is it I? He said unto him, Thou hast said. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXII. 21-23. | CH. XIII. 21-35. |
21 But behold, the hand of him that betrayeth me is with me on the table. | 21 When Jesus had thus said, he was troubled in spirit, and testified, and said, Verily, verily, I say unto you, that one of you shall betray me. |
22 And truly the Son of man goeth as it was determined: but wo unto that man by whom he is betrayed! | |
22 Then the disciples looked one on another, doubting of whom he spake. | |
23 Now there was leaning on Jesus' bosom, one of his disciples, whom Jesus loved. | |
23 And they began to inquire among themselves, which of them it was that should do this thing. | 24 Simon Peter therefore beckoned to him, that he should ask who it should be of whom he spake. |
25 He then, lying on Jesus' breast, saith unto him, Lord, who is it? | |
26 Jesus answered, He it is to whom I shall give a sop, when I have dipped it. And when he had dipped the sop, he gave it to Judas Iscariot the son of Simon. | |
27 And after the sop Satan entered into him. Then said Jesus unto him, That thou doest, do quickly. | |
28 Now no man at the table knew for what intent he spake this unto him. | |
29 For some of them thought, because Judas had the bag, that Jesus had said unto him, Buy those things that we have need of against the feast; or, that he should give something to the poor. | |
30 He then, having received the sop, went immediately out: and it was night. | |
31 Therefore, when he was gone out, Jesus said, Now is the Son of man glorified, and God is glorified in him. | |
32 If God be glorified in him, God shall also glorify him in himself, and shall straightway glorify him. | |
33 Little children, yet a little while I am with you. Ye shall seek me; and, as I said unto the Jews, Whither I go, ye cannot come, so now I say to you. | |
34 A new commandment I give unto you, That ye love one another; as I have loved you, that ye also love one another. | |
35 By this shall all men know that ye are my disciples, if ye have love one to another. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVI. 31-35. | CH. XIV. 27-31. |
31 Then saith Jesus unto them, All ye shall be offended because of me this night: for it is written, I will smite the Shepherd, and the sheep of the flock shall be scattered abroad.262 | 27 And Jesus saith unto them, All ye shall be offended because of me this night: for it is written, I will smite the Shepherd, and the sheep shall be scattered. |
32 But after I am risen again, I will go before you into Galilee. | 28 But after that I am risen, I will go before you into Galilee. |
33 Peter answered and said unto him, Though all men shall be offended because of thee, yet will I never be offended. | 29 But Peter said unto him, Although all shall be offended, yet will not I. |
34 Jesus said unto him, Verily, I say unto thee, That this night, before the cock crow, thou shalt deny me thrice. | 30 And Jesus saith unto him, Verily, I say unto thee, That this day, even in this night, before the cock crow twice,263 thou shalt deny me thrice. |
35 Peter said unto him, Though I should die with thee, yet will not I deny thee. Likewise also said all the disciples. | 31 But he spake the more vehemently, If I should die with thee, I will not deny thee in any wise. Likewise also said they all. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXII. 31-38. | CH. XIII. 36-38. |
31 And the Lord said, Simon, Simon, behold, Satan hath desired to have you, that he may sift you as wheat: | 36 Simon Peter said unto him, Lord, whither goest thou? Jesus answered him, Whither I go, thou canst not follow me now; but thou shalt follow me afterward. |
32 But I have prayed for thee, that thy faith fail not: and when thou art converted, strengthen thy brethren. | |
33 And he said unto him, Lord, I am ready to go with thee, both into prison, and to death. | 37 Peter said unto him, Lord, why cannot I follow thee now? I will lay down my life for thy sake. |
34 And he said, I tell thee, Peter, the cock shall not crow this day, before that thou shalt thrice deny that thou knowest me. | 38 Jesus answered him, Wilt thou lay down thy life for my sake? Verily, verily, I say unto thee, The cock shall not crow, till thou hast denied me thrice. |
35 And he said unto them, When I sent you without purse, and scrip, and shoes, lacked ye any thing? And they said, Nothing. | |
36 Then said he unto them, But now, he that hath a purse, let him take it, and likewise his scrip: and he that hath no sword, let him sell his garment, and buy one.264 | |
37 For I say unto you, that this that is written must yet be accomplished in me, And he was reckoned among the transgressors:265 for the things concerning me have an end. | |
38 And they said, Lord, behold, here are two swords. And he said unto them, It is enough. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVI. 26-29. | CH. XIV. 22-25. |
26 And266 as they were eating,267 Jesus took bread, and blessed it, and brake it, and gave it to the disciples, and said, Take, eat; this is my body. | 22 And as they did eat, Jesus took bread, and blessed, and brake it, and gave to them, and said, Take, eat: this is my body. |
27 And he took the cup, and gave thanks, and gave it to them, saying, Drink ye all of it; | 23 And he took the cup, and when he had given thanks, he gave it to them: and they all drank of it. |
28 For this is my blood of the new testament,268 which is shed for many for the remission of sins. | 24 And he said unto them, This is my blood of the new testament, which is shed for many. |
29 But I say unto you, I will not drink henceforth of this fruit of the vine, until that day when I drink it new with you in my Father's kingdom. | 25 Verily, I say unto you, I will drink no more of the fruit of the vine, until that day that I drink it new in the kingdom of God. |
Luke. | |
CH. XXII. 19-20. | |
19 And he took bread, and gave thanks, and brake it, and gave unto them, saying, This is my body which is given for you: this do in remembrance of me. | |
20 Likewise also the cup after supper, saying, This cup is the new testament in my blood, which is shed for you. |
John. | |
CH. XIV. 1-31. | |
Let not your heart be troubled: ye believe in God, believe also in me. | |
2 In my Father's house are many mansions; if it were not so, I would have told you. I go to prepare a place for you. | |
3 And if I go and prepare a place for you, I will come again and receive you unto myself; that where I am, there ye may be also. | |
4 And whither I go ye know, and the way ye know. | |
5 Thomas saith unto him, Lord, we know not whither thou goest; and how can we know the way? | |
6 Jesus saith unto him, I am the way, and the truth, and the life: no man cometh unto the Father, but by me. | |
7 If ye had known me, ye should have known my Father also: and from henceforth ye know him, and have seen him. | |
8 Philip saith unto him, Lord, shew us the Father, and it sufficeth us. | |
9 Jesus saith unto him, Have I been so long time with you, and yet hast thou not known me, Philip? he that hath seen me, hath seen the Father; and how sayest thou then, Shew us the Father? | |
10 Believest thou not that I am in the Father, and the Father in me? the words that I speak unto you, I speak not of myself: but the Father, that dwelleth in me, he doeth the works. | |
11 Believe me that I am in the Father, and the Father in me: or else believe me for the very works' sake. | |
12 Verily, verily, I say unto you, He that believeth on me, the works that I do shall he do also; and greater works than these shall he do; because I go unto my Father. | |
13 And whatsoever ye shall ask in my name, that will I do, that the Father may be glorified in the Son. | |
14 If ye shall ask any thing in my name, I will do it. | |
15 If ye love me, keep my commandments: | |
16 And I will pray the Father, and he shall give you another Comforter, that he may abide with you for ever; | |
17 Even the Spirit of truth; whom the world cannot receive, because it seeth him not, neither knoweth him: but ye know him; for he dwelleth with you, and shall be in you. | |
18 I will not leave you comfortless: I will come to you. | |
19 Yet a little while, and the world seeth me no more; but ye see me: because I live, ye shall live also. | |
20 At that day ye shall know that I am in my Father, and ye in me, and I in you. | |
21 He that hath my commandments, and keepeth them, he it is that loveth me: and he that loveth me, shall be loved of my Father, and I will love him, and will manifest myself to him. | |
22 Judas saith unto him, (not Iscariot) Lord, how is it that thou wilt manifest thyself unto us, and not unto the world? | |
23 Jesus answered and said unto him, If a man love me, he will keep my words: and my Father will love him, and we will come unto him, and make our abode with him. | |
24 He that loveth me not, keepeth not my sayings: and the word which ye hear is not mine, but the Father's which sent me. | |
25 These things have I spoken unto you, being yet present with you. | |
26 But the Comforter, which is the Holy Ghost, whom the Father will send in my name, he shall teach you all things, and bring all things to your remembrance, whatsoever I have said unto you. | |
27 Peace I leave with you, my peace I give unto you: not as the world giveth, give I unto you. Let not your heart be troubled, neither let it be afraid. | |
28 Ye have heard how I said unto you, I go away, and come again unto you. If ye loved me, ye would rejoice, because I said, I go unto the Father: for my Father is greater than I. | |
29 And now I have told you before it come to pass, that when it is come to pass, ye might believe. | |
30 Hereafter I will not talk much with you: for the prince of this world cometh, and hath nothing in me. | |
31 But that the world may know that I love the Father; and as the Father gave me commandment, even so I do. Arise, let us go hence. |
John. | |
CH. XV. 1-27. | |
I am the true vine, and my Father is the husbandman. | |
2 Every branch in me that beareth not fruit, he taketh away: and every branch that beareth fruit, he purgeth it, that it may bring forth more fruit. | |
3 Now ye are clean through the word which I have spoken unto you. | |
4 Abide in me, and I in you. As the branch cannot bear fruit of itself, except it abide in the vine: no more can ye, except ye abide in me. | |
5 I am the vine, ye are the branches: He that abideth in me, and I in him, the same bringeth forth much fruit: for without me ye can do nothing. | |
6 If a man abide not in me, he is cast forth as a branch, and is withered; and men gather them, and cast them into the fire, and they are burned. | |
7 If ye abide in me, and my words abide in you, ye shall ask what ye will, and it shall be done unto you. | |
8 Herein is my Father glorified, that ye bear much fruit; so shall ye be my disciples. | |
9 As the Father hath loved me, so have I loved you: continue ye in my love. | |
10 If ye keep my commandments, ye shall abide in my love; even as I have kept my Father's commandments, and abide in his love. | |
11 These things have I spoken unto you, that my joy might remain in you, and that your joy might be full. | |
12 This is my commandment, That ye love one another, as I have loved you. | |
13 Greater love hath no man than this, that a man lay down his life for his friends. | |
14 Ye are my friends, if ye do whatsoever I command you. | |
15 Henceforth I call you not servants; for the servant knoweth not what his lord doeth: but I have called you friends; for all things that I have heard of my Father, I have made known unto you. | |
16 Ye have not chosen me, but I have chosen you, and ordained you, that ye should go and bring forth fruit, and that your fruit should remain: that whatsoever ye shall ask of the Father in my name, he may give it to you. | |
17 These things I command you, that ye love one another. | |
18 If the world hate you, ye know that it hated me before it hated you. | |
19 If ye were of the world, the world would love his own; but because ye are not of the world, but I have chosen you out of the world, therefore the world hateth you. | |
20 Remember the word that I said unto you, The servant is not greater than his lord. If they have persecuted me, they will also persecute you: if they have kept my saying, they will keep yours also. | |
21 But all these things will they do unto you for my name's sake, because they know not him that sent me. | |
22 If I had not come and spoken unto them, they had not had sin: but now they have no cloak for their sin. | |
23 He that hateth me, hateth my Father also. | |
24 If I had not done among them the works which none other man did, they had not had sin: but now have they both seen, and hated both me and my Father. | |
25 But this cometh to pass, that the word might be fulfilled that is written in their law, They hated me without a cause.269 | |
26 But when the Comforter is come, whom I will send unto you from the Father, even the Spirit of truth, which proceedeth from the Father, he shall testify of me. | |
27 And ye also shall bear witness, because ye have been with me from the beginning. |
John. | |
CH. XVI. 1-33. | |
These things have I spoken unto you, that ye should not be offended. | |
2 They shall put you out of the synagogues: yea, the time cometh, that whosoever killeth you, will think that he doeth God service. | |
3 And these things will they do unto you, because they have not known the Father, nor me. | |
4 But these things have I told you, that when the time shall come, ye may remember that I told you of them. And these things I said not unto you at the beginning because I was with you. | |
5 But now I go my way to him that sent me, and none of you asketh me, Whither goest thou? | |
6 But because I have said these things unto you, sorrow hath filled your heart. | |
7 Nevertheless, I tell you the truth: It is expedient for you that I go away: for if I go not away, the Comforter will not come unto you; but if I depart, I will send him unto you. | |
8 And when he is come, he will reprove the world of sin, and of righteousness, and of judgment: | |
9 Of sin, because they believe not on me; | |
10 Of righteousness, because I go to my Father, and ye see me no more; | |
11 Of judgment, because the prince of this world is judged. | |
12 I have yet many things to say unto you, but ye cannot bear them now. | |
13 Howbeit, when he, the Spirit of truth is come, he will guide you into all truth: for he shall not speak of himself; but whatsoever he shall hear, that shall he speak: and he will shew you things to come. | |
14 He shall glorify me: for he shall receive of mine, and shall shew it unto you. | |
15 All things that the Father hath are mine: therefore said I, that he shall take of mine, and shall shew it unto you. | |
16 A little while, and ye shall not see me: and again, a little while, and ye shall see me, because I go to the Father. | |
17 Then said some of his disciples among themselves, What is this that he saith unto us, A little while, and ye shall not see me: and again, a little while, and ye shall see me; and, Because I go to the Father? | |
18 They said therefore, What is this that he saith, A little while? we cannot tell what he saith. | |
19 Now Jesus knew that they were desirous to ask him, and said unto them, Do ye inquire among yourselves of that I said, A little while, and ye shall not see me: and again, a little while, and ye shall see me? | |
20 Verily, verily, I say unto you, that ye shall weep and lament, but the world shall rejoice: and ye shall be sorrowful, but your sorrow shall be turned into joy. | |
21 A woman when she is in travail hath sorrow, because her hour is come: but as soon as she is delivered of the child, she remembereth no more the anguish, for joy that a man is born into the world. | |
22 And ye now therefore have sorrow: but I will see you again, and your heart shall rejoice, and your joy no man taketh from you. | |
23 And in that day ye shall ask me nothing. Verily, verily, I say unto you, Whatsoever ye shall ask the Father in my name, he will give it you. | |
24 Hitherto have ye asked nothing in my name: ask, and ye shall receive, that your joy may be full. | |
25 These things have I spoken unto you in proverbs: but the time cometh when I shall no more speak unto you in proverbs, but I shall shew you plainly of the Father. | |
26 At that day ye shall ask in my name: and I say not unto you, that I will pray the Father for you: | |
27 For the Father himself loveth you, because ye have loved me, and have believed that I came out from God. | |
28 I came forth from the Father, and am come into the world: again, I leave the world, and go to the Father. | |
29 His disciples said unto him, Lo, now speakest thou plainly, and speakest no proverb. | |
30 Now are we sure that thou knowest all things, and needest not that any man should ask thee: by this we believe that thou camest forth from God. | |
31 Jesus answered them, Do ye now believe? | |
32 Behold, the hour cometh, yea, is now come, that ye shall be scattered every man to his own, and shall leave me alone: and yet I am not alone, because the Father is with me. | |
33 These things I have spoken unto you, that in me ye might have peace. In the world ye shall have tribulation, but be of good cheer: I have overcome the world. |
John. | |
CH. XVII. 1-26. | |
These words spake Jesus, and lifted up his eyes to heaven, and said, Father, the hour is come; glorify thy Son, that thy Son also may glorify thee: | |
2 As thou hast given him power over all flesh, that he should give eternal life to as many as thou hast given him. | |
3 And this is life eternal, that they might know thee the only true God, and Jesus Christ whom thou hast sent. | |
4 I have glorified thee on the earth: I have finished the work which thou gavest me to do. | |
5 And now, O Father, glorify thou me with thine own self, with the glory which I had with thee before the world was. | |
6 I have manifested thy name unto the men which thou gavest me out of the world: thine they were, and thou gavest them me; and they have kept thy word. | |
7 Now they have known that all things whatsoever thou hast given me are of thee: | |
8 For I have given unto them the words which thou gavest me; and they have received them, and have known surely that I came out from thee, and they have believed that thou didst send me. | |
9 I pray for them: I pray not for the world, but for them which thou hast given me; for they are thine. | |
10 And all mine are thine, and thine are mine; and I am glorified in them. | |
11 And now I am no more in the world, but these are in the world, and I come to thee. Holy Father, keep through thine own name those whom thou hast given me, that they may be one, as we are. | |
12 While I was with them in the world, I kept them in thy name: those that thou gavest me I have kept, and none of them is lost, but the son of perdition; that the scripture might be fulfilled.270 | |
13 And now come I to thee, and these things I speak in the world, that they might have my joy fulfilled in themselves. | |
14 I have given them thy word; and the world hath hated them, because they are not of the world, even as I am not of the world. | |
15 I pray not that thou shouldest take them out of the world, but that thou shouldest keep them from the evil. | |
16 They are not of the world, even as I am not of the world. | |
17 Sanctify them through thy truth: thy word is truth. | |
18 As thou hast sent me into the world, even so have I also sent them into the world. | |
19 And for their sakes I sanctify myself, that they also might be sanctified through the truth. | |
20 Neither pray I for these alone; but for them also which shall believe on me through their word: | |
21 That they all may be one; as thou, Father, art in me, and I in thee, that they also may be one in us: that the world may believe that thou hast sent me. | |
22 And the glory which thou gavest me, I have given them; that they may be one, even as we are one; | |
23 I in them, and thou in me, that they may be made perfect in one; and that the world may know that thou hast sent me, and hast loved them as thou hast loved me. | |
24 Father, I will that they also whom thou hast given me be with me where I am; that they may behold my glory which thou hast given me: for thou lovedst me before the foundation of the world. | |
25 O righteous Father, the world hath not known thee: but I have known thee, and these have known that thou hast sent me. | |
26 And I have declared unto them thy name, and will declare it: that the love wherewith thou hast loved me, may be in them, and I in them. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVI. 30, 36-46. | CH. XIV. 26, 32-42. |
30 And when they had sung a hymn, they went out into the mount of Olives. | 26 And when they had sung an hymn, they went out into the mount of Olives. |
36 Then cometh Jesus with them unto a place called Gethsemane, and saith unto the disciples, Sit ye here, while I go and pray yonder. | 32 And they came to a place which was named Gethsemane: and he saith to his disciples, Sit ye here, while I shall pray. |
37 And he took with him Peter, and the two sons of Zebedee, and began to be sorrowful and very heavy. | 33 And he taketh with him Peter, and James, and John, and began to be sore amazed, and to be very heavy; |
38 Then saith he unto them, My soul is exceeding sorrowful, even unto death: tarry ye here, and watch with me. | 34 And saith unto them, My soul is exceeding sorrowful unto death: tarry ye here, and watch. |
39 And he went a little further, and fell on his face, and prayed, saying, O my Father, if it be possible, let this cup pass from me: nevertheless, not as I will, but as thou wilt. | 35 And he went forward a little, and fell on the ground, and prayed that, if it were possible, the hour might pass from him. |
36 And he said, Abba, Father, all things are possible unto thee; take away this cup from me: nevertheless, not what I will, but what thou wilt. | |
40 And he cometh unto the disciples, and findeth them asleep, and saith unto Peter, What! could ye not watch with me one hour? | 37 And he cometh, and findeth them sleeping, and saith unto Peter, Simon, sleepest thou? couldest not thou watch one hour? |
41 Watch and pray, that ye enter not into temptation: the spirit indeed is willing, but the flesh is weak. | 38 Watch ye and pray, lest ye enter into temptation. The spirit truly is ready, but the flesh is weak. |
42 He went away again the second time, and prayed, saying, O my Father, if this cup may not pass away from me, except I drink it, thy will be done. | 39 And again he went away, and prayed, and spake the same words. |
43 And he came and found them asleep again: for their eyes were heavy. | 40 And when he returned, he found them asleep again, (for their eyes were heavy;) neither wist they what to answer him. |
44 And he left them, and went away again, and prayed the third time, saying the same words. | |
45 Then cometh he to his disciples, and saith unto them, Sleep on now, and take your rest: behold, the hour is at hand, and the Son of man is betrayed into the hands of sinners. | 41 And he cometh the third time, and saith unto them, Sleep on now, and take your rest: it is enough, the hour is come: behold, the Son of man is betrayed into the hands of sinners. |
46 Rise, let us be going: behold, he is at hand that doth betray me. | 42 Rise up, let us go; lo, he that betrayeth me is at hand. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXII. 39-46. | CH. XVIII. 1. |
39 And he came out, and went, as he was wont, to the mount of Olives; and his disciples also followed him. | When Jesus had spoken these words, he went forth with his disciples over the brook Cedron, where was a garden, into which he entered, and his disciples. |
40 And when he was at the place, he said unto them, Pray that ye enter not into temptation. | |
41 And he was withdrawn from them about a stone's cast, and kneeled down, and prayed, | |
42 Saying, Father, if thou be willing, remove this cup from me: nevertheless, not my will, but thine, be done. | |
43 And there appeared an angel unto him from heaven, strengthening him. | |
44 And being in an agony, he prayed more earnestly: and his sweat was as it were great drops of blood271 falling down to the ground. | |
45 And when he rose up from prayer, and was come to his disciples, he found them sleeping for sorrow,272 | |
46 And said unto them, Why sleep ye? rise and pray, lest ye enter into temptation. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVI. 47-56. | CH. XIV. 43-52 |
47 And while he yet spake, lo, Judas, one of the twelve, came, and with him a great multitude with swords and staves, from the chief priests and elders of the people. | 43 And immediately while he yet spake, cometh Judas, one of the twelve, and with him a great multitude with swords and staves, from the chief priests, and the scribes, and the elders. |
48 Now, he that betrayed him, gave them a sign, saying, Whomsoever I shall kiss, that same is he; hold him fast. | 44 And he that betrayed him, had given them a token, saying, Whomsoever I shall kiss, that same is he; take him, and lead him away safely. |
49 And forthwith he came to Jesus, and said, Hail Master; and kissed him. | 45 And as soon as he was come, he goeth straightway to him, and saith, Master, Master; and kissed him. |
50 And Jesus said unto him, Friend, wherefore art thou come? Then came they, and laid hands on Jesus, and took him. | |
51 And behold, one of them which were with Jesus, stretched out his hand, and drew his sword, and struck a servant of the high priest, and smote off his ear. | 47 And one of them that stood by, drew a sword, and smote a servant of the high priest, and cut off his ear. |
52 Then said Jesus unto him, Put up again thy sword into his place: for all they that take the sword, shall perish with the sword.273 | |
53 Thinkest thou that I cannot now pray to my Father, and he shall presently give me more than twelve legions of angels? | |
54 But how then shall the scriptures be fulfilled, that thus it must be? | |
55 In that same hour said Jesus to the multitudes, Are ye come out as against a thief with swords and staves for to take me? I sat daily with you teaching in the temple, and ye laid no hold on me. | 48 And Jesus answered and said unto them, Are ye come out as against a thief, with swords and with staves to take me? |
56 But all this was done, that the scriptures of the prophets might be fulfilled. | 49 I was daily with you in the temple, teaching, and ye took me not: but the scriptures must be fulfilled. |
Then all the disciples forsook him, and fled. | 50 And they all forsook him and fled. |
51 And there followed him a certain young man, having a linen cloth cast about his naked body; and the young men laid hold on him. | |
52 And he left the linen cloth, and fled from them naked. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXII. 47-53. | CH. XVIII. 2-21. |
47 And while he yet spake, behold a multitude, and he that was called Judas, one of the twelve, went before them, and drew near unto Jesus to kiss him. | 2 And Judas also, which betrayed him, knew the place: for Jesus ofttimes resorted thither with his disciples. |
3 Judas then, having received a band of men and officers from the chief priests and Pharisees, cometh thither with lanterns, and torches, and weapons. | |
48 But Jesus said unto him, Judas, betrayest thou the Son of man with a kiss? | 4 Jesus therefore, knowing all things that should come upon him, went forth, and said unto them, Whom seek ye? |
49 When they which were about him, saw what would follow, they said unto him, Lord, shall we smite with the sword? | 5 They answered him, Jesus of Nazareth. Jesus saith unto them, I am he.274 And Judas also, which betrayed him, stood with them. |
6 As soon then as he had said unto them, I am he, they went backward, and fell to the ground. | |
7 Then asked he them again, Whom seek ye? And they said, Jesus of Nazareth. | |
8 Jesus answered, I have told you that I am he. If therefore ye seek me, let these go their way: | |
9 That the saying might be fulfilled which he spake, Of them which thou gavest me, have I lost none. | |
50 And one of them smote the servant of the high priest, and cut off his right ear. | 10 Then Simon Peter,275 having a sword, drew it, and smote the high priest's servant, and cut off his right ear. The servant's name was Malchus. |
51 And Jesus answered and said, Suffer ye thus far. And he touched his ear, and healed him. | 11 Then said Jesus unto Peter, Put up thy sword into the sheath: the cup which my Father hath given me, shall I not drink it? |
52 Then Jesus said unto the chief priests, and captains of the temple, and the elders which were come to him, Be ye come out as against a thief with swords and staves? | |
53 When I was daily with you in the temple, ye stretched forth no hands against me: but this is your hour, and power of darkness. | 12 Then the band, and the captain, and officers of the Jews took Jesus, and bound him. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVI. 57, 58, 69-75. | CH. XIV. 53, 54, 66-72. |
57 And they that had laid hold on Jesus, led him away to Caiaphas the high priest, where the scribes and the elders were assembled. | 53 And they led Jesus away to the high priest: and with him were assembled all the chief priests, and the elders and the scribes. |
58 But Peter followed him afar off, unto the high priest's palace, and went in, and sat with the servants to see the end. | 54 And Peter followed him afar off, even into the palace of the high priest: and he sat with the servants, and warmed himself at the fire. |
69 Now Peter sat without in the palace: and a damsel came unto him, saying, Thou also wast with Jesus of Galilee. | 66 And as Peter was beneath in the palace, there cometh one of the maids of the high priest: |
67 And when she saw Peter warming himself, she looked upon him, and said, And thou also wast with Jesus of Nazareth. | |
70 But he denied before them all, saying, I know not what thou sayest. | 68 But he denied, saying, I know not, neither understand I what thou sayest. And he went out into the porch; and the cock crew. |
71 And when he was gone out into the porch,276 another maid saw him, and said unto them that were there, This fellow was also with Jesus of Nazareth. | 69 And a maid saw him again, and began to say to them that stood by, This is one of them. |
72 And again he denied with an oath, I do not know the man. | 70 And he denied it again. And a little after, they that stood by said again to Peter, Surely thou art one of them: for thou art a Galilean, and thy speech agreeth thereto. |
73 And after a while came unto him they that stood by, and said to Peter, Surely thou also art one of them; for thy speech bewrayeth thee. | |
74 Then began he to curse and to swear, saying, I know not the man. And immediately the cock crew. | 71 But he began to curse and to swear, saying, I know not this man of whom ye speak. |
75 And Peter remembered the word of Jesus, which said unto him, Before the cock crow thou shalt deny me thrice. And he went out, and wept bitterly. | 72 And the second time the cock crew. And Peter called to mind the word that Jesus said unto him, Before the cock crow twice, thou shalt deny me thrice. And when he thought thereon, he wept. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXII. 54-62. | CH. XVIII. 13-18, 25-27. |
Then took they him, and led him and brought him into the high priest's house. And Peter followed afar off. | 13 And led him away to Annas first,277 (for he was father-in-law to Caiaphas, which was the high priest that same year.) |
14 Now Caiaphas was he which gave counsel to the Jews, that it was expedient that one man should die for the people. | |
15 And Simon Peter followed Jesus, and so did another disciple. That disciple was known unto the high priest, and went in with Jesus, into the palace of the high priest. | |
16 But Peter stood at the door without. Then went out that other disciple which was known unto the high priest, and spake unto her that kept the door, and brought in Peter. | |
55 And when they had kindled a fire in the midst of the hall, and were set down together, Peter sat down among them. | 18 And the servants and officers stood there, who had made a fire of coals; (for it was cold) and they warmed themselves: and Peter stood with them, and warmed himself. |
56 But a certain maid beheld him as he sat by the fire, and earnestly looked upon him, and said, This man was also with him. | 17 Then saith the damsel that kept the door unto Peter, Art not thou also one of this man's disciples? He saith, I am not. |
57 And he denied him, saying, Woman, I know him not. | |
58 And after a little while another saw him, and said, Thou art also of them. And Peter said, Man, I am not. | 25 And Simon Peter stood and warmed himself. They said therefore unto him, Art not thou also one of his disciples? He denied it, and said, I am not. |
59 And about the space of one hour after, another confidently affirmed, saying, Of a truth this fellow also was with him: for he is a Galilean. | 26 One of the servants of the high priest (being his kinsman whose ear Peter cut off) saith, did not I see thee in the garden with him? |
60 And Peter said, Man, I know not278 what thou sayest. And immediately, while he yet spake, the cock crew. | 27 Peter then denied again: and immediately the cock crew.279 |
61 And the Lord turned, and looked upon Peter. And Peter remembered the word of the Lord, how he had said unto him, Before the cock crow, thou shalt deny me thrice. | |
62 And Peter went out and wept bitterly. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVI. 59-68. | CH. XIV. 55-65. |
59 Now the chief priests and elders, and all the council, sought false witness against Jesus, to put him to death; | 55 And the chief priests, and all the council sought for witness against Jesus to put him to death; and found none: |
60 But found none: yea, though many false witnesses came, yet found they none. At the last came two false witnesses, | 56 For many bare false witness against him, but their witness agreed not together. |
57 And there arose certain, and bare false witness against him, saying, | |
61 And said, This fellow said, I am able to destroy the temple of God, and to build it in three days. | 58 We heard him say, I will destroy this temple that is made with hands, and within three days I will build another made without hands. |
59 But neither so did their witness agree together. | |
62 And the high priest arose, and said unto him, Answerest thou nothing? what is it which these witness against thee? | 60 And the high priest stood up in the midst, and asked Jesus, saying, Answerest thou nothing? what is it which these witness against thee? |
63 But Jesus held his peace. And the high priest answered and said unto him, I adjure thee by the living God, that thou tell us whether thou be the Christ, the Son of God. | 61 But he held his peace, and answered nothing. Again the high priest asked him, and said unto him, Art thou the Christ, the Son of the Blessed? |
64 Jesus saith unto him, Thou hast said: nevertheless, I say unto you, Hereafter shall ye see the Son of man sitting on the right hand of power, and coming in the clouds of heaven. | 62 And Jesus said, I am: and ye shall see the Son of man sitting on the right hand of power, and coming in the clouds of heaven. |
65 Then the high priest rent his clothes, saying, He hath spoken blasphemy; what further need have we of witnesses? behold, now ye have heard his blasphemy. | 63 Then the high priest rent his clothes, and saith, What need we any further witnesses? |
66 What think ye? They answered and said, He is guilty of death. | 64 Ye have heard the blasphemy: what think ye? And they all condemned him to be guilty of death. |
67 Then did they spit in his face, and buffeted him; and others smote him with the palms of their hands, | 65 And some began to spit on him, and to cover his face, and to buffet him, and to say unto him, Prophesy: and the servants did strike him with the palms of their hands. |
68 Saying, Prophesy unto us,280 thou Christ, Who is he that smote thee? |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXII. 63-71. | CH. XVIII. 19-24. |
66 And as soon as it was day, the elders of the people, and the chief priests, and the scribes, came together, and led him into their council, saying, | |
67 Art thou the Christ? tell us. And he said unto them, If I tell you, ye will not believe. | 19 The high priest then asked Jesus of his disciples, and of his doctrine. |
68 And if I also ask you, ye will not answer me, nor let me go. | 20 Jesus answered him, I spake openly to the world; I ever taught in the synagogue, and in the temple, whither the Jews always resort; and in secret have I said nothing. |
69 Hereafter shall the Son of man sit on the right hand of the power of God. | |
70 Then said they all, Art thou then the Son of God? And he said unto them, Ye say that I am. | 21 Why askest thou me? ask them which heard me, what I have said unto them: behold, they know what I said. |
71 And they said, What need we any further witness? for we ourselves have heard of his own mouth. | 22 And when he had thus spoken, one of the officers which stood by, struck Jesus with the palm of his hand, saying, Answerest thou the high priest so? |
63 And the men that held Jesus, mocked him, and smote him. | |
64 And when they had blindfolded him, they struck him on the face, and asked him, saying, Prophesy, who is it that smote thee? | 23 Jesus answered him, If I have spoken evil, bear witness of the evil: but if well, why smitest thou me? |
65 And many other things blasphemously spake they against him. | 24 (Now Annas had sent him bound unto Caiaphas the high priest.) |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVII. 1, 2, 11-14. | CH. XV. 1-5. |
When the morning was come, all the chief priests and elders of the people took counsel against Jesus to put him to death. | And straightway in the morning the chief priests held a consultation with the elders and scribes, and the whole council, and bound Jesus, and carried him away, and delivered him to Pilate. |
2 And when they had bound him, they led him away, and delivered him to Pontius Pilate the governor. | |
11 And Jesus stood before the governor: and the governor asked him, saying, Art thou the King of the Jews? And Jesus said unto him, Thou sayest. | 2 And Pilate asked him, Art thou the King of the Jews? And he answering, said unto him, Thou sayest it. |
12 And when he was accused of the chief priests and elders, he answered nothing. | 3 And the chief priests accused him of many things: but he answered nothing. |
13 Then saith Pilate unto him, Hearest thou not how many things they witness against thee? | 4 And Pilate asked him again, saying, Answerest thou nothing? behold how many things they witness against thee. |
14 And he answered him to never a word; insomuch that the governor marvelled greatly. | 5 But Jesus yet answered nothing: so that Pilate marvelled. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXIII. 1-5. | CH. XVIII. 28-38. |
And the whole multitude of them arose, and led him unto Pilate. | 28 Then led they Jesus from Caiaphas unto the hall of judgment: and it was early; and they themselves went not into the judgment-hall, lest they should be defiled; but that they might eat the passover. |
2 And they began to accuse him, saying, We found this fellow perverting the nation, and forbidding to give tribute to Cesar, saying, That he himself is Christ, a King. | 29 Pilate then went out unto them, and said, What accusation bring ye against this man? |
30 They answered and said unto him, If he were not a malefactor, we would not have delivered him up unto thee. | |
31 Then said Pilate unto them, Take ye him, and judge him according to your law. The Jews therefore said unto him, It is not lawful for us to put any man to death: | |
32 That the saying of Jesus might be fulfilled, which he spake, signifying what death he should die. | |
3 And Pilate asked him saying, Art thou the King of the Jews? And he answered him and said, Thou sayest it. | 33 Then Pilate entered into the judgment-hall again, and called Jesus, and said unto him, Art thou the King of the Jews? |
34 Jesus answered him, Sayest thou this thing of thyself, or did others tell it thee of me? | |
35 Pilate answered, Am I a Jew? Thine own nation, and the chief priests, have delivered thee unto me. What hast thou done? | |
36 Jesus answered, My kingdom is not of this world: if my kingdom were of this world, then would my servants fight,281 that I should not be delivered to the Jews: but now is my kingdom not from hence. | |
37 Pilate therefore said unto him, Art thou a king then? Jesus answered, Thou sayest that I am a king. To this end was I born, and for this cause came I into the world, that I should bear witness unto the truth. Every one that is of the truth, heareth my voice. | |
4 Then said Pilate to the chief priests, and to the people, I find no fault in this man. | 38 Pilate saith unto him, What is truth? And when he had said this, he went out again unto the Jews, and saith them, I find in him no fault at all. |
5 And they were the more fierce, saying, He stirreth up the people, teaching throughout all Jewry, beginning from Galilee to this place. |
Luke. | |
CH. XXIII. 6-12. | |
6 When Pilate heard of Galilee, he asked whether the man were a Galilean. | |
7 And as soon as he knew that he belonged unto Herod's jurisdiction, he sent him to Herod, who himself was also at Jerusalem at that time.282 | |
8 And when Herod saw Jesus, he was exceeding glad: for he was desirous to see him of a long season, because he had heard many things of him; and he hoped to have seen some miracle done by him. | |
9 Then he questioned with him in many words; but he answered him nothing. | |
10 And the chief priests and scribes stood and vehemently accused him. | |
11 And Herod with his men of war set him at nought, and mocked him, and arrayed him in a gorgeous robe, and sent him again to Pilate. | |
12 And the same day Pilate and Herod were made friends together; for before they were at enmity between themselves. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVII. 15-26. | CH. XV. 6-15. |
15 Now at that feast, the governor was wont to release unto the people a prisoner, whom they would. | 6 Now at that feast he released unto them one prisoner, whomsoever they desired. |
16 And they had then a notable prisoner, called Barabbas. | 7 And there was one named Barabbas, which lay bound with them that had made insurrection with him, who had committed murder in the insurrection. |
17 Therefore, when they were gathered together, Pilate said unto them, Whom will ye that I release unto you? Barabbas, or Jesus, which is called Christ? | 8 And the multitude crying aloud, began to desire him to do as he had ever done unto them. |
9 But Pilate answered them, saying, Will ye that I release unto you the King of the Jews? | |
18 (For he knew that for envy they had delivered him.) | 10 (For he knew that the chief priests had delivered him for envy.) |
19 When he was set down on the judgment-seat, his wife sent unto him, saying, Have thou nothing to do with that just man: for I have suffered many things this day in a dream, because of him. | |
20 But the chief priests and elders persuaded the multitude that they should ask Barabbas, and destroy Jesus. | 11 But the chief priests moved the people that he should rather release Barabbas unto them. |
21 The governor answered and said unto them, Whether of the twain, will ye that I release unto you? They said, Barabbas. | 12 And Pilate answered, and said again unto them, What will ye then, that I shall do unto him whom ye call the King of the Jews? |
22 Pilate saith unto them, What shall I do then with Jesus, which is called Christ? They all say unto him, Let him be crucified. | 13 And they cried out again, Crucify him. |
23 And the governor said, Why! what evil hath he done? But they cried out the more, saying, Let him be crucified. | 14 Then Pilate said unto them, Why, what evil hath he done? And they cried out the more exceedingly, Crucify him. |
24 When Pilate saw that he could prevail nothing, but that rather a tumult was made, he took water, and washed his hands before the multitude, saying, I am innocent of the blood of this just person: see ye to it. | |
25 Then answered all the people, and said, His blood be on us, and on our children. | |
26 Then released he Barabbas unto them: | 15 And so Pilate, willing to content the people, released Barabbas unto them. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXIII. 13-25. | CH. XVIII. 39, 40. |
13 And Pilate, when he had called together the chief priests, and the rulers, and the people, | |
14 Said unto them, Ye have brought this man unto me, as one that perverteth the people: and behold, I, having examined him before you, have found no fault in this man, touching those things whereof ye accuse him; | |
15 No, nor yet Herod: for I sent you to him; and lo, nothing worthy of death is done unto him: | |
16 I will therefore chastise him, and release him. | 39 But ye have a custom that I should release unto you one at the passover: will ye therefore, that I release unto you the king of the Jews? |
17 (For of necessity he must release one unto them at the feast.) | |
18 And they cried out all at once, saying, Away with this man, and release unto us Barabbas: | 40 Then cried they all again, saying, Not this man, but Barabbas. Now Barabbas was a robber. |
19 (Who, for a certain sedition made in the city, and for murder, was cast into prison.) | |
20 Pilate therefore, willing to release Jesus, spake again unto them. | |
21 But they cried, saying, Crucify him, crucify him. | |
22 And he said unto them the third time, Why, what evil hath he done? I have found no cause of death in him; I will therefore chastise him, and let him go. | |
23 And they were instant with loud voices, requiring that he might be crucified: and the voices of them, and of the chief priests prevailed. | |
24 And Pilate gave sentence283 that it should be as they required. | |
25 And he released unto them him that for sedition and murder was cast into prison, whom they had desired; but he delivered Jesus to their will. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVII. 26-30. | CH. XV. 15-19. |
26 And when he had scourged Jesus, he delivered him to be crucified. | 15 And delivered Jesus, when he had scourged him, to be crucified. |
27 Then the soldiers of the governor took Jesus into the common hall, and gathered unto him the whole band of soldiers. | 16 And the soldiers led him away into the hall, called Pretorium; and they call together the whole band; |
28 And they stripped him, and put on him a scarlet robe. | 17 And they clothed him with purple, and platted a crown of thorns, and put it about his head, |
29 And when they had platted a crown of thorns, they put it upon his head, and a reed in his right hand: and they bowed the knee before him, and mocked him, saying, Hail, King of the Jews! | 18 And began to salute him, Hail, King of the Jews! |
30 And they spit upon him, and took the reed, and smote him on the head. | 19 And they smote him on the head with a reed, and did spit upon him, and bowing their knees, worshipped him. |
John. | |
CH. XIX. 1-3. | |
Then Pilate therefore took Jesus and scourged him. | |
2 And the soldiers platted a crown of thorns, and put it on his head, and they put on him a purple robe, | |
3 And said, Hail, King of the Jews! and they smote him with their hands. |
John. | |
CH. XIX. 4-16. | |
4 Pilate therefore went forth again, and saith unto them, Behold, I bring him forth to you, that ye may know that I find no fault in him. | |
5 Then came Jesus forth, wearing the crown of thorns, and the purple robe. And Pilate saith unto them, Behold the man! | |
6 When the chief priests therefore and officers saw him, they cried out, saying, Crucify him, crucify him. Pilate saith unto them, Take ye him, and crucify him: for I find no fault in him. | |
7 The Jews answered him, We have a law, and by our law he ought to die, because he made himself the Son of God. | |
8 When Pilate therefore heard that saying, he was the more afraid; | |
9 And went again into the judgment-hall, and saith unto Jesus, Whence art thou? But Jesus gave him no answer. | |
10 Then saith Pilate unto him, Speakest thou not unto me? knowest thou not, that I have power to crucify thee, and have power to release thee? | |
11 Jesus answered, Thou couldest have no power at all against me, except it were given thee from above: therefore he that delivered me unto thee hath the greater sin. | |
12 And from thenceforth Pilate sought to release him; but the Jews cried out, saying, If thou let this man go, thou art not Cesar's friend. Whosoever maketh himself a king, speaketh against Cesar. | |
13 When Pilate therefore heard that saying, he brought Jesus forth, and sat down in the judgment-seat, in a place that is called the Pavement, but in the Hebrew, Gabbatha. | |
14 And it was the preparation of the passover, and about the sixth hour:284 and he saith unto the Jews, Behold your King! | |
15 But they cried out, Away with him, away with him, crucify him. Pilate saith unto them, shall I crucify your King? The chief priests answered, We have no king but Cesar. | |
16 Then delivered he him therefore unto them to be crucified. |
Matthew. | |
CH. XXVII. 3-10. | |
3 Then Judas, which had betrayed him, when he saw that he was condemned, repented himself, and brought again the thirty pieces of silver to the chief priests and elders, | |
4 Saying, I have sinned in that I have betrayed the innocent blood. And they said, What is that to us? see thou to that. | |
5 And he cast down the pieces of silver in the temple, and departed, and went and hanged himself. | |
6 And the chief priests took the silver pieces, and said, It is not lawful for to put them into the treasury, because it is the price of blood. | |
7 And they took counsel, and bought with them the potter's field, to bury strangers in. | |
8 Wherefore that field was called, The field of blood, unto this day. | |
9 Then was fulfilled that which was spoken by Jeremy285 the prophet, saying, And they took the thirty pieces of silver, the price of him that was valued, whom they of the children of Israel did value; | |
10 And gave them for the potter's field, as the Lord appointed me.286 |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVII. 31-34. | CH. XV. 20-23. |
31 And after that they had mocked him, they took the robe off from him, and put his own raiment on him, and led him away to crucify him. | 20 And when they had mocked him, they took off the purple from him, and put his own clothes on him, and led him out to crucify him. |
32 And as they came out, they found a man of Cyrene, Simon by name: him they compelled to bear his cross. | 21 And they compel one Simon a Cyrenian, who passed by, coming out of the country, the father of Alexander and Rufus,287 to bear his cross. |
33 And when they were come unto a place called Golgotha, that is to say, A place of a skull, | 22 And they bring him unto the place Golgotha, which is, being interpreted, The place of a skull. |
34 They gave him vinegar to drink, mingled with gall: and when he had tasted thereof, he would not drink. | 23 And they gave him to drink, wine mingled with myrrh: but he received it not. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXIII. 26-33. | CH. XIX. 16-17. |
26 And as they led him away, they laid hold upon one Simon a Cyrenian, coming out of the country, and on him they laid the cross, that he might bear it after Jesus. | 16 And they took Jesus, and led him away. |
27 And there followed him a great company of people, and of women, which also bewailed and lamented him. | 17 And he bearing his cross |
28 But Jesus turning unto them, said, Daughters of Jerusalem, weep not for me, but weep for yourselves, and for your children. | |
29 For behold, the days are coming, in the which they shall say, Blessed are the barren, and the wombs that never bare, and the paps which never gave suck.288 | |
30 Then shall they begin to say to the mountains, Fall on us; and to the hills, Cover us.289 | |
31 For if they do these things in a green tree, what shall be done in the dry? | |
32 And there were also two others, malefactors, led with him to be put to death. | |
33 And when they were come to the place which is called Calvary, | went forth into a place called the place of a skull, which is called in the Hebrew, Golgotha. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVII. 35-38. | CH. XV. 24-28. |
35 And they crucified him, and parted his garments, casting lots: that it might be fulfilled which was spoken by the prophet; They parted my garments among them, and upon my vesture did they cast lots.290 | 24 And when they had crucified him, they parted his garments, casting lots upon them, what every man should take. |
36 And sitting down, they watched him there: | 25 And it was the third hour, and they crucified him. |
37 And set up over his head his accusation291 written, THIS IS JESUS THE KING OF THE JEWS. | 26 And the superscription of his accusation was written over, THE KING OF THE JEWS. |
38 Then were there two thieves crucified with him: one on the right hand, and another on the left. | 27 And with him they crucify two thieves, the one on his right hand, and the other on his left. |
28 And the scripture was fulfilled, which saith, And he was numbered with the transgressors.292 |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXIII. 33, 34, 38. | CH. XIX. 18-24. |
33 There they crucified him, and the malefactors; one on the right hand, and the other on the left. | 18 Where they crucified him, and two other with him, on either side one, and Jesus in the midst. |
34 Then said Jesus, Father, forgive them: for they know not what they do. And they parted his raiment, and cast lots. | |
38 And a superscription also was written over him, in letters of Greek, and Latin, and Hebrew, THIS IS THE KING OF THE JEWS. | 19 And Pilate wrote a title, and put it on the cross. And the writing was, JESUS OF NAZARETH, THE KING OF THE JEWS. |
20 This title then read many of Jews: for the place where Jesus was crucified was nigh to the city: and it was written in Hebrew, and Greek, and Latin. | |
21 Then said the chief priests of the Jews to Pilate, Write not, The King of the Jews; but that he said, I am King of the Jews. | |
22 Pilate answered, What I have written, I have written. | |
23 Then the soldiers, when they had crucified Jesus, took his garments, and made four parts,293 to every soldier a part; and also his coat: now the coat was without seam, woven from the top throughout. | |
24 They said therefore among themselves, Let us not rend it, but cast lots for it whose it shall be: that the scripture might be fulfilled, which saith, They parted my raiment among them, and for my vesture they did cast lots. These things therefore the soldiers did. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVII. 39-44. | CH. XV. 29-32. |
39 And they that passed by, reviled him, wagging their heads, | 29 And they that passed by, railed on him, wagging their heads, and saying, Ah, thou that destroyest the temple, and buildest it in three days, |
40 And saying, Thou that destroyest the temple, and buildest it in three days, save thyself. If thou be the Son of God, come down from the cross. | 30 Save thyself, and come down from the cross. |
41 Likewise also the chief priests mocking him, with the scribes and elders, said, | 31 Likewise also the chief priests mocking, said among themselves with the scribes, He saved others; himself he cannot save. |
42 He saved others; himself he cannot save. If he be the King of Israel, let him now come down from the cross, and we will believe him. | 32 Let Christ the King of Israel descend now from the cross, that we may see and believe. And they that were crucified with him, reviled him. |
43 He trusted in God; let him deliver him now if he will have him: for he said, I am the Son of God.294 | |
44 The thieves also which were crucified with him, cast the same in his teeth. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXIII. 35-37, 39-43. | CH. XIX. 25-27. |
35 And the people stood beholding. And the rulers also with them derided him, saying, He saved others; let him save himself, if he be Christ, the chosen of God. | |
36 And the soldiers also mocked him, coming to him, and offering him vinegar,295 | |
37 And saying, If thou be the King of the Jews, save thyself. | |
39 And one of the malefactors,296 which were hanged, railed on him, saying, If thou be Christ, save thyself and us. | |
40 But the other answering, rebuked him, saying, Dost not thou fear God, seeing thou art in the same condemnation? | |
41 And we indeed justly; for we receive the due reward of our deeds: but this man hath done nothing amiss. | |
42 And he said unto Jesus, Lord, remember me when thou comest into thy kingdom. | |
43 And Jesus said unto him, Verily, I say unto thee, To-day shalt thou be with me in paradise. | |
25 Now there stood by the cross of Jesus, his mother, and his mother's sister, Mary the wife of Cleophas, and Mary Magdalene. | |
26 When Jesus therefore saw his mother, and the disciple standing by whom he loved, he saith unto his mother, Woman, behold thy son! | |
27 Then saith he to the disciple, Behold thy mother! And from that hour that disciple took her unto his own home. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVII. 45-50. | CH. XV. 33-37. |
45 Now, from the sixth hour there was darkness over all the land unto the ninth hour. | 33 And when the sixth hour was come, there was darkness over the whole land, until the ninth hour. |
46 And about the ninth hour Jesus cried with a loud voice, saying, Eli, Eli, lama sabachthani? that is to say, My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?297 | 34 And at the ninth hour Jesus cried with a loud voice, saying, Eloi, Eloi, lama sabachthani? which is, being interpreted, My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me? |
47 Some of them that stood there, when they heard that, said, This man calleth for Elias. | 35 And some of them that stood by, when they heard it, said, Behold, he calleth Elias. |
48 And straightway one of them ran, and took a spunge, and filled it with vinegar,298 and put it on a reed, and gave him to drink. | 36 And one ran and filled a spunge full of vinegar, and put it on a reed, and gave him to drink, saying, Let alone; let us see whether Elias will come to take him down. |
49 The rest said, Let be, let us see whether Elias299 will come to save him. | |
50 Jesus, when he had cried again with a loud voice, yielded up the ghost. | 37 And Jesus cried with a loud voice, and gave up the ghost. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXIII. 44-46. | CH. XIX. 28-30. |
44 And it was about the sixth hour, and there was a darkness over all the earth300 until the ninth hour. | |
45 And the sun was darkened, | |
28 After this, Jesus knowing that all things were now accomplished, that the scripture might be fulfilled, saith, I thirst.301 | |
29 Now there was set a vessel full of vinegar: and they filled a spunge with vinegar, and put it upon hyssop, and put it to his mouth. | |
46 And when Jesus had cried with a loud voice, he said, Father, into thy hands I commend my spirit: and having said thus, he gave up the ghost. | 30 When Jesus therefore had received the vinegar, he said, It is finished: and he bowed his head, and gave up the ghost. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVII. 51-56. | CH. XV. 38-41. |
51 And behold, the vail of the temple was rent in twain from the top to the bottom: and the earth did quake, and the rocks rent; | 38 And the vail of the temple was rent in twain, from the top to the bottom. |
52 And the graves were opened, and many bodies of the saints which slept, arose, | |
53 And came out of the graves after his resurrection, and went into the holy city, and appeared unto many. | |
54 Now, when the centurion, and they that were with him, watching Jesus, saw the earthquake, and those things that were done, they feared greatly, saying, Truly this was the Son of God. | 39 And when the centurion which stood over against him, saw that he so cried out, and gave up the ghost, he said, Truly this man was the Son of God. |
55 And many women were there (beholding afar off)302 which followed Jesus from Galilee, ministering unto him: | 40 There were also women looking on afar off, among whom was Mary Magdalene, and Mary the Mother of James the less, and of Joses, and Salome; |
56 Among which was Mary Magdalene, and Mary the mother of James and Joses, and the mother of Zebedee's children. | 41 Who also, when he was in Galilee, followed him, and ministered unto him; and many other women which came up with him unto Jerusalem. |
Luke. | |
CH. XXIII. 45, 47-49. | |
45 And the vail of the temple was rent in the midst. | |
47 Now, when the centurion saw what was done, he glorified God, saying, Certainly this was a righteous man. | |
48 And all the people that came together to that sight, beholding the things which were done, smote their breasts and returned. | |
49 And all his acquaintance, and the women that followed him from Galilee, stood afar off, beholding these things. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVII. 57-61. | CH. XV. 42-47. |
57 When the even was come, there came a rich man of Arimathea, named Joseph, who also himself was Jesus' disciple: | 42 And now, when the even was come, (because it was the preparation, that is, the day before the sabbath,) |
58 He went to Pilate, and begged the body303 of Jesus. Then Pilate commanded the body to be delivered. | 43 Joseph of Arimathea, an honourable counsellor, which also waited for the kingdom of God, came, and went in boldly unto Pilate, and craved the body of Jesus. |
44 And Pilate marvelled if he were already dead: and calling unto him the centurion, he asked him whether he had been any while dead. | |
45 And when he knew it of the centurion, he gave the body to Joseph. | |
59 And when Joseph had taken the body, he wrapped it in a clean linen cloth, | 46 And he bought fine linen, and took him down, and wrapped him in the linen, and laid him in a sepulchre which was hewn out of a rock, and rolled a stone unto the door of the sepulchre. |
60 And laid it in his own new tomb, which he had hewn out in the rock; and he rolled a great stone to the door of the sepulchre, and departed. | |
61 And there was Mary Magdalene, and the other Mary, sitting over against the sepulchre. | 47 And Mary Magdalene and Mary the mother of Joses beheld where he was laid. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXIII. 50-56. | CH. XIX. 31-42. |
31 The Jews therefore, because it was the preparation, that the bodies should not remain upon the cross on the sabbath-day, (for that sabbath-day was an high day) besought Pilate that their legs might be broken, and that they might be taken away. | |
32 Then came the soldiers, and brake the legs of the first, and of the other which was crucified with him. | |
33 But when they came to Jesus, and saw that he was dead already, they brake not his legs: | |
34 But one of the soldiers with a spear pierced his side, and forthwith came thereout blood and water. | |
35 And he that saw it, bare record, and his record is true: and he knoweth that he saith true, that ye might believe. | |
36 For these things were done, that the scripture should be fulfilled, A bone of him shall not be broken.304 | |
37 And again another scripture saith, They shall look on him whom they pierced.305 | |
50 And behold, there was a man named Joseph, a counsellor: and he was a good man, and a just: | 38 And after this Joseph of Arimathea (being a disciple of Jesus, but secretly for fear of the Jews) besought Pilate that he might take away the body of Jesus: and Pilate gave him leave. He came therefore and took the body of Jesus. |
51 (The same had not consented to the counsel and deed of them:) he was of Arimathea, a city of the Jews; who also himself waited for the kingdom of God. | |
52 This man went unto Pilate, and begged the body of Jesus. | 39 And there came also Nicodemus (which at the first came to Jesus by night) and brought a mixture of myrrh and aloes, about an hundred pounds weight. |
53 And he took it down, and wrapped it in linen, and laid it in a sepulchre that was hewn in stone, wherein never man before was laid. | 40 Then took they the body of Jesus, and wound it in linen clothes with the spices, as the manner of the Jews is to bury. |
41 Now in the place where he was crucified, there was a garden; and in the garden a new sepulchre, wherein was never man yet laid. | |
54 And that day was the preparation, and the sabbath drew on.306 | 42 There laid they Jesus therefore, because of the Jews' preparation-day; for the sepulchre was nigh at hand. |
55 And the women also, which came with him from Galilee, followed after, and beheld the sepulchre, and how his body was laid. | |
56 And they returned, and prepared spices and ointments; and rested the sabbath-day, according to the commandment. |
Matthew. | |
CH. XXVII. 62-66. | |
62 Now, the next day that followed the day of the preparation, the chief priests and Pharisees came together unto Pilate, | |
63 Saying, Sir, we remember that that deceiver said, while he was yet alive, After three days I will rise again. | |
64 Command therefore that the sepulchre be made sure until the third day, lest his disciples come by night, and steal him away, and say unto the people, He is risen from the dead: so the last error shall be worse than the first. | |
65 Pilate said unto them, Ye have a watch: go your way, make it as sure as ye can. | |
66 So they went and made the sepulchre sure, sealing the stone, and setting a watch.307 |
Time. Forty days.
[pg 478]Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVIII. 2-4. | CH. XVI. 1. |
And when the sabbath was past, Mary Magdalene, and Mary the mother of James, and Salome, had bought sweet spices, that they might come and anoint him. | |
2 And behold, there was a great earthquake; for the angel of the Lord descended from heaven, and came and rolled back the stone from the door, and sat upon it. | |
3 His countenance was like lightning, and his raiment white as snow. | |
4 And for fear of him the keepers did shake, and became as dead men. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVIII. 1. | CH. XVI. 2-4. |
In the end of the sabbath, as it began to dawn toward the first day of the week, came Mary Magdalene, and the other Mary to see the sepulchre. | 2 And very early in the morning, the first day of the week, they came unto the sepulchre at the rising of the sun: |
3 And they said among themselves, Who shall roll us away the stone from the door of the sepulchre? | |
4 (And when they looked, they saw that the stone was rolled away,) for it was very great. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXIV. 1-3. | CH. XX. 1-2. |
Now upon the first day of the week, very early in the morning, they came unto the sepulchre, bringing the spices which they had prepared, and certain others with them. | The first day of the week cometh Mary Magdalene early, when it was yet dark, unto the sepulchre, and seeth the stone taken away from the sepulchre. |
2 And they found the stone rolled away from the sepulchre. | |
3 And they entered in, and found not the body of the Lord Jesus. | 2 Then she runneth, and cometh to Simon Peter, and to the other disciple whom Jesus loved, and saith unto them, They have taken away the Lord out of the sepulchre, and we know not where they have laid him. |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVIII. 5-7. | CH. XVI. 5-7. |
5 And entering into the sepulchre, they saw a young man sitting on the right side, clothed in a long white garment; and they were affrighted. | |
5 And the angel answered and said unto the women, Fear not ye: for I know that ye seek Jesus, which was crucified. | 6 And he saith unto them, Be not affrighted: ye seek Jesus of Nazareth, which was crucified: he is risen; he is not here; behold the place where they laid him. |
6 He is not here: for he is risen, as he said. Come, see the place where the Lord lay. | |
7 And go quickly, and tell his disciples, that he is risen from the dead, and behold, he goeth before you into Galilee; there shall ye see him: lo, I have told you. | 7 But go your way, tell his disciples and Peter, that he goeth before you into Galilee: there shall ye see him, as he said unto you. |
Luke. | |
CH. XXIV. 4-8. | |
4 And it came to pass, as they were much perplexed thereabout, behold, two men stood by them in shining garments. | |
5 And as they were afraid, and bowed down their faces to the earth, they said unto them, Why seek ye the living among the dead? | |
6 He is not here, but is risen. Remember how he spake unto you when he was yet in Galilee, | |
7 Saying, The Son of man must be delivered into the hands of sinful men, and be crucified, and the third day rise again. | |
8 And they remembered his words, |
Matthew. | Mark. |
CH. XXVIII. 8-10. | CH. XVI. 8. |
8 And they departed quickly from the sepulchre, with fear and great joy; and did run to bring his disciples word. | 6 And they went out quickly and fled from the sepulchre; for they trembled, and were amazed: neither said they any thing to any man; for they were afraid. |
9 And as they went to tell his disciples, behold Jesus met them, saying, All hail. And they came, and held him by the feet, and worshipped him. | |
10 Then said Jesus unto them, Be not afraid: go tell my brethren, that they go into Galilee, and there shall they see me. |
Luke. | |
CH. XXIV. 9-11. | |
9 And returned from the sepulchre, and told all these things unto the eleven, and to all the rest. | |
10 It was Mary Magdalene, and Joanna, and Mary the mother of James, and other women that were with them, which told these things unto the apostles. | |
11 And their words seemed to them as idle tales, and they believed them not. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XXIV. 12. | CH. XX. 3-10. |
12 Then arose Peter, and ran unto the sepulchre, and stooping down, he beheld the linen clothes laid by themselves, and departed, wondering in himself at that which was come to pass. | 3 Peter therefore went forth, and that other disciple, and came to the sepulchre. |
4 So they ran both together: and the other disciple did outrun Peter, and came first to the sepulchre. | |
5 And he stooping down, and looking in, saw the linen clothes lying; yet went he not in. | |
6 Then cometh Simon Peter following him, and went into the sepulchre, and seeth the linen clothes lie; | |
7 And the napkin that was about his head, not lying with the linen clothes, but wrapped together in a place by itself. | |
8 Then went in also that other disciple which came first to the sepulchre, and he saw, and believed. | |
9 For as yet they knew not the scripture, that he must rise again from the dead. | |
10 Then the disciples went away again unto their own home. |
John. | Mark. |
CH. XX. 11-18. | CH. XVI. 9-11. |
11 But Mary stood without at the sepulchre weeping: and as she wept she stooped down and looked into the sepulchre, | 9 Now, when Jesus was risen early, the first day of the week, he appeared first to Mary Magdalene, out of whom he had cast seven devils. |
12 And seeth two angels in white, sitting, the one at the head, and the other at the feet, where the body of Jesus had lain. | |
13 And they say unto her, Woman, why weepest thou? She saith unto them, Because they have taken away my Lord, and I know not where they have laid him. | |
14 And when she had thus said, she turned herself back, and saw Jesus standing, and knew not that it was Jesus. | |
15 Jesus saith unto her, Woman, why weepest thou? whom seekest thou? She, supposing him to be the gardener, saith unto him, Sir, if thou have borne him hence, tell me where thou hast laid him, and I will take him away. | |
16 Jesus saith unto her, Mary. She turned herself, and saith unto him, Rabboni, which is to say, Master. | |
17 Jesus saith unto her, Touch me not: for I am not yet ascended to my Father: but go to my brethren, and say unto them, I ascend unto my Father and your Father, and to my God and your God. | 10 And she went and told them that had been with him, as they mourned and wept. |
18 Mary Magdalene came and told the disciples that she had seen the Lord, and that he had spoken these things unto her. | 11 And they, when they had heard that he was alive, and had been seen of her, believed not. |
Matthew. | |
CH. XXVIII. 11-15. | |
11 Now, when they were going, behold, some of the watch came into the city, and shewed unto the chief priests all the things that were done. | |
12 And when they were assembled with the elders, and had taken counsel, they gave large money unto the soldiers, | |
13 Saying, Say ye, His disciples came by night, and stole him away while we slept. | |
14 And if this come to the governor's ears, we will persuade him, and secure you. | |
15 So they took the money, and did as they were taught: and this saying is commonly reported among the Jews until this day. |
Mark. | Luke. |
CH. XVI. 12, 13. | CH. XXIV. 13-35. |
12 After that, he appeared in another form unto two of them, as they walked, and went into the country. | 13 And behold, two of them went that same day to a village called Emmaus, which was from Jerusalem about threescore furlongs. |
14 And they talked together of all these things which had happened. | |
15 And it came to pass, that, while they communed together, and reasoned, Jesus himself drew near, and went with them. | |
16 But their eyes were holden, that they should not know him. | |
17 And he said unto them, What manner of communications are these that ye have one to another, as ye walk, and are sad? | |
18 And the one of them, whose name was Cleopas, answering, said unto him, Art thou only a stranger in Jerusalem, and hast not known the things which are come to pass there in these days? | |
19 And he said unto them, What things? And they said unto him, Concerning Jesus of Nazareth, which was a prophet mighty in deed and word before God, and all the people: | |
20 And how the chief priests and our rulers delivered him to be condemned to death, and have crucified him. | |
21 But we trusted that it had been he which should have redeemed Israel: and besides all this, to-day is the third day since these things were done. | |
22 Yea, and certain women also of our company made us astonished, which were early at the sepulchre. | |
23 And when they found not his body, they came, saying, that they had also seen a vision of angels, which said that he was alive. | |
24 And certain of them which were with us, went to the sepulchre, and found it even so as the women had said: but him they saw not. | |
25 Then he said unto them, O fools, and slow of heart to believe all that the prophets have spoken! | |
26 Ought not Christ to have suffered these things, and to enter into his glory? | |
27 And beginning at Moses, and all the prophets, he expounded unto them in all the scriptures the things concerning himself. | |
28 And they drew nigh unto the village whither they went: and he made as though he would have gone further. | |
29 But they constrained him, saying, Abide with us: for it is toward evening, and the day is far spent. And he went in to tarry with them. | |
30 And it came to pass, as he sat at meat with them, he took bread, and blessed it, and brake, and gave to them. | |
31 And their eyes were opened, and they knew him: and he vanished out of their sight. | |
32 And they said one to another, Did not our heart burn within us while he talked with us by the way, and while he opened to us the scriptures? | |
13 And they went and told it unto the residue: neither believed they them. | 33 And they rose up the same hour, and returned to Jerusalem, and found the eleven gathered together, and them that were with them, |
34 Saying, The Lord is risen indeed, and hath appeared to Simon.308 | |
35 And they told what things were done in the way, and how he was known of them in breaking of bread. |
Mark. | |
CH. XVI. 14-18. | |
14 Afterward he appeared unto the eleven,309 as they sat at meat, and upbraided them with their unbelief, and hardness of heart, because they believed not them which had seen him after he was risen. | |
15 And he said unto them, Go ye into all the world, and preach the gospel to every creature. | |
16 He that believeth and is baptized, shall be saved; but he that believeth not, shall be damned. | |
17 And these signs shall follow them that believe: In my name shall they cast out devils; they shall speak with new tongues: | |
18 They shall take up serpents; and if they drink any deadly thing, it shall not hurt them; they shall lay hands on the sick, and they shall recover. |
Luke. | John. |
CH. XIV. 36-49. | CH. XX. 19-23. |
36 And as they thus spake, Jesus himself stood in the midst of them, and saith unto them, Peace be unto you. | 19 Then the same day at evening, being the first day of the week, when the doors were shut where the disciples were assembled for fear of the Jews, came Jesus and stood in the midst, and saith unto them, Peace be unto you. |
37 But they were terrified and affrighted, and supposed that they had seen a spirit. | |
38 And he said unto them, Why are ye troubled? and why do thoughts arise in your hearts? | |
39 Behold my hands and my feet, that it is I myself: handle me, and see; for a spirit hath not flesh and bones, as ye see me have. | 20 And when he had so said, he shewed unto them his hands and his side. Then were the disciples glad when they saw the Lord. |
40 And when he had thus spoken, he shewed them his hands and his feet. | |
41 And while they yet believed not for joy, and wondered, he said unto them, Have ye here any meat? | |
42 And they gave him a piece of a broiled fish, and of an honey-comb. | |
43 And he took it, and did eat before them. | |
44 And he said unto them, These are the words which I spake unto you, while I was yet with you, that all things must be fulfilled which were written in the law of Moses, and in the prophets, and in the psalms, concerning me. | 21 Then said Jesus to them again, Peace be unto you: as my Father hath sent me, even so send I you. |
45 Then opened he their understanding, that they might understand the scriptures, | 22 And when he had said this, he breathed on them, and saith unto them, Receive ye the Holy Ghost. |
46 And said unto them, Thus it is written, and thus it behoved Christ to suffer, and to rise from the dead the third day: | 23 Whose soever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto them; and whose soever sins ye retain, they are retained. |
47 And that repentance and remission of sins should be preached in his name among all nations, beginning at Jerusalem. | |
48 And ye are witnesses of these things. | |
49 And behold, I send the promise of my Father upon you: but tarry ye in the city of Jerusalem, until ye be endued with power from on high. |
John. | |
CH. XX. 24-29. | |
24 But Thomas, one of the twelve, called Didymus, was not with them when Jesus came. | |
25 The other disciples therefore said unto him, We have seen the Lord. But he said unto them, Except I shall see in his hands the print of the nails, and put my finger into the print of the nails, and thrust my hand into his side, I will not believe. | |
26 And after eight days again his disciples were within, and Thomas with them: then came Jesus, the doors being shut, and stood in the midst, and said, Peace be unto you. | |
27 Then saith he to Thomas, Reach hither thy finger, and behold my hands; and reach hither thy hand, and thrust it into my side; and be not faithless, but believing. | |
28 And Thomas answered and said unto him, My Lord and my God. | |
29 Jesus saith unto him, Thomas, because thou hast seen me, thou hast believed: blessed are they that have not seen and yet have believed. |
Matthew. | John. |
CH. XXVIII. 16. | CH. XXI. 1-24. |
16 Then the eleven disciples went away into Galilee, | After these things Jesus shewed himself again to the disciples at the sea of Tiberias; and on this wise shewed he himself. |
2 There were together Simon Peter, and Thomas called Didymus, and Nathanael of Cana in Galilee, and the sons of Zebedee, and two other of his disciples. | |
3 Simon Peter saith unto them, I go a fishing. They say unto him, We also go with thee. They went forth, and entered into a ship immediately; and that night they caught nothing. | |
4 But when the morning was now come, Jesus stood on the shore; but the disciples knew not that it was Jesus. | |
5 Then Jesus saith unto them, Children, have ye any meat? They answered him, No. | |
6 And he said unto them, Cast the net on the right side of the ship, and ye shall find. They cast therefore, and now they were not able to draw it for the multitude of fishes. | |
7 Therefore that disciple whom Jesus loved saith unto Peter, It is the Lord. Now when Simon Peter heard that it was the Lord, he girt his fisher's coat unto him, (for he was naked) and did cast himself into the sea. | |
8 And the other disciples came in a little ship (for they were not far from land, but as it were two hundred cubits) dragging the net with fishes. | |
9 As soon then as they were come to land, they saw a fire of coals there, and fish laid thereon, and bread. | |
10 Jesus saith unto them, bring of the fish which ye have now caught. | |
11 Simon Peter went up, and drew the net to land full of great fishes, an hundred and fifty and three: and for all there were so many, yet was not the net broken. | |
12 Jesus saith unto them, Come and dine. And none of the disciples durst ask him, Who art thou? knowing that it was the Lord. | |
13 Jesus then cometh, and taketh bread, and giveth them, and fish likewise. | |
14 This is now the third time that Jesus shewed himself to his disciples, after that he was risen from the dead. | |
15 So when they had dined, Jesus saith to Simon Peter, Simon, son of Jonas, lovest thou me more than these? He saith unto him, Yea, Lord: thou knowest that I love thee. He saith unto him, Feed my lambs. | |
16 He saith to him again the second time, Simon, son of Jonas, lovest thou me? He saith unto him, Yea, Lord: thou knowest that I love thee. He saith unto him, Feed my sheep. | |
17 He saith unto him the third time, Simon, son of Jonas, lovest thou me? Peter was grieved because he said unto him the third time, Lovest thou me? And he said unto him, Lord, thou knowest all things; thou knowest that I love thee. Jesus saith unto him, Feed my sheep. | |
18 Verily, verily, I say unto thee, When thou wast young, thou girdest thyself, and walkedst whither thou wouldest: but when thou shalt be old, thou shalt stretch forth thy hands, and another shall gird thee, and carry thee whither thou wouldest not. | |
19 This spake he, signifying by what death he should glorify God. And when he had spoken this, he saith unto him, Follow me. | |
20 Then Peter, turning about, seeth the disciple whom Jesus loved, following; (which also leaned on his breast at supper, and said, Lord, which is he that betrayeth thee?) | |
21 Peter seeing him, saith to Jesus, Lord, and what shall this man do? | |
22 Jesus saith unto him, if I will that he tarry till I come, what is that to thee? Follow thou me. | |
23 Then went this saying abroad among the brethren, that that disciple should not die: yet Jesus said not unto him, He shall not die; but, if I will that he tarry till I come, what is that to thee? | |
24 This is the disciple which testifieth of these things, and wrote these things: and we know that his testimony is true. |
Matthew. | |
CH. XXVIII. 16-20. | |
16 into a mountain where Jesus had appointed them. | |
17 And when they saw him,310 they worshipped him: but some doubted. | |
18 And Jesus came, and spake unto them, saying, All power is given unto me in heaven and in earth. | |
19 Go ye therefore and teach all nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost; | |
20 Teaching them to observe all things whatsoever I have commanded you: and lo, I am with you alway, even unto the end of the world. Amen. |
The title of this section in inserted, for the sake of preserving the series of Dr. Robinson, whose arrangement has been followed in this Harmony; but as the appearances of Jesus which are here referred to, are related only by Luke in Acts, i. 3-8, and by Paul in 1 Cor. xv. 7, the particular insertion of those passages is omitted, for the reasons already given. See § 137, note. The subject of this and the eleven preceding sections, respecting the resurrection of Jesus, is discussed in the Note on the Resurrection.
Mark. | Luke. |
CH. XVI. 19, 20. | CH. XXIV. 50-53. |
19 So then, after the Lord had spoken unto them, he was received up into heaven, and sat on the right hand of God. | 50 And he led them out as far as to Bethany:311 and he lifted up his hands, and blessed them. |
20 And they went forth, and preached every where, the Lord working with them, and confirming the word with signs following. Amen. | 51 And it came to pass, while he blessed them, he was parted from them, and carried up into heaven. |
52 And they worshipped him, and returned to Jerusalem with great joy: | |
53 And were continually in the temple, praising and blessing God. Amen. |
John. | |
CH. XX. 30, 31. | |
30 And many other signs truly did Jesus in the presence of his disciples, which are not written in this book. | |
31 But these are written that ye might believe that Jesus is the Christ, the Son of God; and that believing ye might have life through his name. | |
CH. XXI. 25. | |
25 And there are also many other things which Jesus did, the which, if they should be written every one, I suppose that even the world itself could not contain the books that should be written. Amen. |
The accounts of the Resurrection and of the subsequent appearances of our Lord, have been harmonised in various methods; of which the latest, and probably the best, is that of Professor Robinson, in an article published in the Bibliotheca Sacra for February 1845, vol. ii. pp. 162-189. As the best service the present writer could do to the English reader, he has therefore here abridged that article, by omitting the introduction, and such parts as relate to the Greek text, and a few other passages, which it seemed might be spared without injury to the narrative itself.
§ 1. The Time of the Resurrection.
Matt. 26: 1, 2. Mark 16: 1, 2, 9. Luke 24: 1. John 20: 1.
That the resurrection of our Lord took place before full daylight, on the first day of the week, follows from the unanimous testimony of the Evangelists respecting the visit of the women to the sepulchre. But the exact time at which he rose is nowhere specified. According to the Jewish mode of reckoning, the Sabbath ended and the next day began at sunset; so that had the resurrection occurred even before midnight, it would still have been upon the first day of the week, and the third day after our Lord's burial. The earthquake had taken place and the stone had been rolled away before the arrival of the women; and so far as the immediate narrative is concerned, there is nothing to show that all this might not have happened some hours earlier. Yet the words of Mark in another place render it certain, that there could have been no great interval between these events and the arrival of the women; since he affirms in v. 9, that Jesus “had risen early, the first day of the week;” while in v. 2, he states that the women went out “very early.” A like inference may be drawn from the fact, that the affrighted guards first went to inform the chief priests of these events, when the women returned to the city (Matt. 28: 11); for it is hardly to be supposed, that after having been thus terrified by the earthquake and the appearance of an angel, they would have waited any very long time before sending information to their employers.—The body of Jesus had therefore probably lain in the tomb not less than about thirty-six hours.
§ 2. The Visit of the Women to the Sepulchre.
Matt. 28: 1-8. Mark 16: 1-8. Luke 24: 1-11. John 20: 1, 2.
The first notices we have of our Lord's resurrection, are connected with the visit of the women to the sepulchre, on the morning of the first day of the week. According to Luke, the women who had stood by the cross, went home and rested during the sabbath (23:56); and Mark adds that after the sabbath was ended, that is, after sunset, and during the evening, they prepared spices in order to go and embalm our Lord's body. They were either not aware of the previous embalming by Joseph and Nicodemus; or else they also wished to testify their respect and affection to their Lord, by completing, more perfectly, what before had been done in haste; John 19: 40-42.
It is in just this portion of the history, which relates to the visit of the women to the tomb and the appearance of Jesus to them, that most of the alleged difficulties and discrepancies in this part of the Gospel narratives are found. We will therefore take up the chief of them in their order.
I. The Time. All the Evangelists agree in saying that the women went out very early [pg 499] to the sepulchre. Matthew's expression is, as the day was dawning. Mark's words are, very early: which indeed are less definite, but are appropriate to denote the same point of time. Luke has the more poetic term: deep morning, i. e. early dawn. John's language is likewise definite: early, while it was yet dark. All these expressions go to fix the time at what we call early dawn, or early twilight; after the break of day, but while the light is yet struggling with darkness.
Thus far there is no difficulty; and none would ever arise, had not Mark added the phrase, the sun being risen; or, as the English version has it, at the rising of the sun. These words seem, at first, to be at direct variance both with the very early of Mark himself, and with the language of the other Evangelists. To harmonise this apparent discrepancy, we may premise, that since Mark himself first specifies the point of time by a phrase sufficiently definite in itself, and supported by all the other Evangelists, we must conclude that when he adds, at the rising of the sun, he did not mean to contradict himself, but used this latter phrase in a broader and less definite sense. As the sun is the source of light and of the day, and as his earliest rays produce the contrast between darkness and light, between night and dawn, so the term sunrising might easily come in popular language, by a metonymy of cause for effect, to be put for all that earlier interval, when his rays, still struggling with darkness, do nevertheless usher in the day.
Accordingly, we find such a popular usage prevailing among the Hebrews; and several instances of it occur in the Old Testament. Thus in Judg. 9: 33, the message of Zebul to Abimelech, after directing him to lie in wait with his people in the field during the night, goes on as follows: “and it shall be, in the morning, as soon as the sun is up thou shalt rise early and set upon the city;” yet we cannot for a moment suppose that Abimelech with his ambuscade was to wait until the sun actually appeared above the horizon, before he made his onset. So the Psalmist (104: 22), speaking of the young lions that by night roar after their prey, goes on to say: “The sun ariseth, they gather themselves together, and lay them down in their dens.” But wild animals do not wait for the actual appearance of the sun ere they shrink away to their lairs; the break of day, the dawning light, is the signal for their retreat. See also Sept. 2 K. 3:22. 2 Sam. 23:4. In all these passages the language is entirely parallel to that of Mark; and they serve fully to illustrate the principle, that the rising of the sun is here used in a popular sense as equivalent to the rising of the day or early dawn.
II. The Number of the Women. Matthew mentions Mary Magdalene and the other Mary; v. 1. Mark enumerates Mary Magdalene, Mary the mother of James, and Salome; v. 1. Luke has Mary Magdalene, Joanna, Mary the mother of James, and others with them; v. 10. John speaks of Mary Magdalene alone, and says nothing of any other. The first three Evangelists accord then in respect to the two Marys, but no further; while John differs from them all. Is there here a real discrepancy?
We may at once answer, No; because, according to the sound canon of Le Clerc:312 “Qui plura narrat, pauciora complectitur; qui pauciora memorat, plura non negat.” Because John, in narrating circumstances with which he was personally connected, sees fit to mention only Mary Magdalene, it does not at all follow that others were not present. Because Matthew, perhaps for like reasons, speaks only of the two Marys, he by no means excludes the presence of others. Indeed, the very words which John puts into the mouth of Mary Magdalene, (v. 2), presupposes the fact, that others had gone with her to the sepulchre. That there was something in respect to Mary Magdalene, which gave her a peculiar prominence in these transactions, may be inferred from the fact, that not only John mentions her alone, but likewise all the other Evangelists name her first, as if holding the most conspicuous place.
The instance here under consideration is parallel to that of the demoniacs of Gadara, and the blind men at Jericho; where, in both cases, Matthew speaks of two persons, while Mark and Luke mention only one.313 Something peculiar in the station or character of one of the persons, rendered him in each case more prominent, and led the two latter Evangelists to speak of him particularly. But there, as here, their language is not exclusive; nor is there in it anything that contradicts the statements of Matthew.
III. The Arrival at the Sepulchre. According to Mark, Luke, and John, the women on reaching the sepulchre found the great stone, with which it had been closed, already [pg 500] rolled away. Matthew, on the other hand, after narrating that the women went out to see the sepulchre, proceeds to mention the earthquake, the descent of the angel, his rolling away the stone and sitting upon it, and the terror of the watch, as if all these things took place in the presence of the women. The angel too (in v. 5) addresses the women, as if still sitting upon the stone he had rolled away.
The apparent discrepancy, if any, here arises simply from Matthew's brevity in omitting to state in full what his own narrative presupposes. According to v. 6, Christ was already risen; and therefore the earthquake and its accompaniments must have taken place at an earlier point of time, to which the sacred writer returns back in his narration. And although Matthew does not represent the women as entering the sepulchre, yet in v. 8, he speaks of them as going out of it; so that of course their interview with the angel took place, not outside of the sepulchre, but in it, as narrated by the other Evangelists. When therefore the angel says to them in v. 6, “Come, see the place where the Lord lay,” this is not said without the tomb to induce them to enter, as Strauss avers; but within the sepulchre, just as in Mark v. 6.
IV. The Vision of Angels in the Sepulchre. Of this John says nothing. Matthew and Mark speak of one angel; Luke of two. Mark says he was sitting; Luke speaks of them as standing. This difference in respect to numbers is parallel to the case of the women, which we have just considered; and requires therefore no further illustration.
There is likewise some diversity in the language addressed to the women by the angels. In Matthew and Mark, the prominent object is the charge to the disciples to depart into Galilee. In Luke this is not referred to; but the women are reminded of our Lord's own previous declaration, that he would rise again on the third day. Neither of the Evangelists here professes to report all that was said by the angels; and of course there is no room for contradiction.
§ 3. The return of the Women to the city, and the first appearance of our Lord.
Matt. 28: 7-10. Mark 16: 8. Luke 24: 9-11. John 20: 1, 2.
John, speaking of Mary Magdalene alone, says that having seen that the stone was taken away from the sepulchre, she went in haste (ran) to tell Peter and John. He says nothing of her having seen the angels, nor of her having entered the sepulchre at all. The other Evangelists, speaking of the women generally, relate that they entered the tomb, saw the angels and then returned into the city. On their way Jesus meets them. They recognize him; fall at and embrace his feet; and receive his charge to the disciples.—Was Mary Magdalene now with the other women? Or did she enter the city by another way? Or had she left the sepulchre before the rest?
It is evident that Mary Magdalene was not with the other women when Jesus thus met them. Her language to Peter and John forbids the supposition, that she had already seen the Lord: “They have taken away the Lord out of the sepulchre, and we know not where they have laid him.” She therefore must have entered the city by another path and gate; or else have left the sepulchre before the rest; or possibly both these positions may be true. She bore her tidings expressly to Peter and John, who would seem to have lodged by themselves in a different quarter of the city; while the other women went apparently to the rest of the disciples. But this supposition of a different route is essential, only in connection with the view, that she left the tomb with the other women. That, however, she actually departed from the sepulchre before her companions, would seem most probable; inasmuch as she speaks to Peter and John only of the absence of the Lord's body; says nothing in this connection of a vision of angels; and when, after returning again to the tomb, she sees the angels, it is evidently for the first time; and she repeats to them as the cause of her grief her complaint as to the disappearance of the body; John 20: 12, 13. She may have turned back from the tomb without entering it at all, so soon as she saw that it was open; inferring from the removal of the stone, that the sepulchre had been rifled. Or, she may first have entered with the rest, when, according to Luke, “they found not the body of the Lord Jesus,” and “were much perplexed thereabout,” before the angels became visible to them. The latter supposition seems best to meet the exigencies of the case.
“As the other women went to tell his disciples, behold, Jesus met them, saying, All hail. And they came, and held him by the feet, and worshipped him. Then Jesus said unto them, Be not afraid; go, tell my brethren, that they go into Galilee, and there shall they see me.” The women had left the sepulchre “with fear and great joy” after the [pg 501] declaration of the angels that Christ was risen; or, as Mark has it, “they trembled and were amazed.” Jesus meets them with words of gentleness to quiet their terrors; “Be not afraid.” He permits them to approach, and embrace his feet, and testify their joy and homage. He reiterates to them the message of the angels to his “brethren,” the eleven disciples; see v. 16.
This appearance and interview is narrated only by Matthew; none of the other Evangelists give any hint of it. Matthew here stops short. Mark simply relates that the women fled from the tomb; “neither said they anything to any one, for they were afraid.” This of course can only mean, that they spoke of what they had thus seen to no one while on their way to the city; for the very charge of the angels, which they went to fulfil, was, that they should “go their way and tell his disciples;” v. 7. Luke narrates more fully, that “they returned from the sepulchre, and told all these things unto the eleven, and to all the rest.—And their words seemed to them as idle tales, and they believed them not.” We may perhaps see in this language one reason why the other Evangelists have omitted to mention this appearance of our Lord. The disciples disbelieved the report of the women, that they had seen Jesus. In like manner they afterwards disbelieved the report of Mary Magdalene to the same effect; Mark 16: 11. They were ready, it would seem, to admit the testimony of the women to the absence of the body, and to the vision of angels; but not to the resurrection of Jesus and his appearance to them; Luke 24: 21-24. And afterwards, when the eleven had become convinced by the testimony of their own senses, those first two appearances to the women became of less importance and were less regarded. Hence the silence of three Evangelists as to the one; of two as to the other; and of Paul as to both; 1 Cor. 15: 5, 6.
§ 4. Peter and John visit the Sepulchre. Jesus appears to Mary Magdalene.
John 20: 3-18. Luke 24: 12. Mark 16: 9-11.
The full account of these two events is given solely by John. Matthew has not a word of either; Luke merely mentions, in general, that Peter, on the report of the women, went to the sepulchre; while Mark speaks only of our Lord's appearance to Mary Magdalene, which he seems to represent as his first appearance.
According to John's account, Peter and the beloved disciple, excited by the tidings of Mary Magdalene that the Lord's body had been taken away, hasten to the sepulchre. They run; John outruns Peter, comes first to the tomb, and stooping down, sees the grave-clothes lying, but he does not enter. The other women are no longer at the tomb; nor have the disciples met them on the way. Peter now comes up; he enters the the tomb, and sees the grave-clothes lying, and the napkin that was about his head not lying with the rest, but wrapped together in a place by itself. John too now enters the sepulchre; “and he saw and believed.”
What was it that John thus believed? The mere report of Mary Magdalene, that the body had been removed? So much he must have believed when he stooped down and looked into the sepulchre. For this, there was no need that he should enter the tomb. His belief must have been of something more and greater. The grave-clothes lying orderly in their place, and the napkin folded together by itself, made it evident that the sepulchre had not been rifled nor the body stolen by violent hands; for these garments and spices would have been of more value to thieves, than merely a naked corpse; at least, they would not have taken the trouble thus to fold them together. The same circumstances showed also that the body had not been removed by friends; for they would not thus have left the grave-clothes behind. All these considerations produce in the mind of John the germ of a belief that Jesus was risen from the dead. He believed because he saw; “for as yet they knew not the Scripture;” (v. 9). He now began more fully to recall and understand our Lord's repeated declaration, that he was to rise again on the third day;314 a declaration on which the Jews had already acted in setting a watch.315 In this way, the difficulty which is sometimes urged of an apparent want of connection between verses 8 and 9, disappears.
The two disciples went their way, “wondering in themselves at what was come to pass.” Mary Magdalene who had followed them back to the sepulchre, remained before it weeping. While she thus wept, she too, like John, stooped down and looked in, “and seeth two [pg 502] angels, in white, sitting, the one at the head and the other at the feet, where the body of Jesus had lain.” To their inquiry why she wept, her reply was the same report which she had before borne to the two disciples: “Because they have taken away my Lord, and I know not where they have laid him,” v. 13. Of the angels we learn nothing further. The whole character of this representation seems to show clearly, that Mary had not before seen the angels; and also that she had not before been told, that Jesus was risen. We must otherwise regard her as having been in a most unaccountably obtuse and unbelieving frame of mind; the very contrary of which seems to have been the fact. If also she had before informed the two disciples of a vision of angels and of Christ's resurrection, it is difficult to see, why John should omit to mention this circumstance, so important and so personal to himself.
After replying to the angels, Mary turns herself about, and sees a person standing near, whom, from his being present there, she takes to be the keeper of the garden. He too inquires, why she weeps. Her reply is the same as before; except that she, not unnaturally, supposes him to have been engaged in removing the body, which she desires to recover. He simply utters in reply, in well-known tones, the name Mary! and the whole truth flashes upon her soul; doubt is dispelled, and faith triumphs. She exclaims: “Rabboni!” as much as to say, “My dearest Master!” and apparently, like the other women,316 falls at his feet in order to embrace and worship him. This Jesus forbids her to do, in these remarkable words: “Touch me not: for I am not yet ascended to my Father. But go to my brethren, and say unto them, I ascend unto my Father and your Father, and to my God and your God;” v. 17.
There remains to be considered the circumstance, that Mark, in v. 9, seems to represent this appearance of Jesus at the sepulchre to Mary Magdalene, as his first appearance: “Now, being risen early the first of the week, he appeared first to Mary Magdalene.” In attempting to harmonize this with Matthew's account of our Lord's appearance to the other women on their return from the sepulchre, several methods have been adopted; but the most to the purpose is the view which regards the word first, in Mark v. 9, as put not absolutely, but relatively. That is to say, Mark narrates three, and only three, appearances of our Lord; of these three, that to Mary Magdalene takes place first, and that to the assembled disciples the same evening occurs last, v. 14. A similar example occurs in 1 Cor. 15: 5-8, where Paul enumerates those to whom the Lord showed himself after his resurrection, viz. to Peter, to the twelve, to five hundred brethren, to James, to all the apostles, and last of all to Paul also. Now had Paul written here, as with strict propriety he might have done, “he was seen first of Cephas,” assuredly no one would ever have understood him as intending to assert that the appearance to Peter was the first absolutely; that is, as implying that Jesus was seen of Peter before he appeared to Mary Magdalene and the other women. In like manner when John declares (21: 14) that Jesus showed himself to his disciples by the lake of Galilee for the third time after he was risen from the dead; this is said relatively to the two previous appearances to the assembled apostles; and does by no means exclude the four still earlier appearances, viz. to Peter, to the two at Emmaus, to Mary Magdalene, and to the other women,—one of which John himself relates in full.
In this way the old difficulty in the case before us disappears; and the complex and cumbrous machinery of earlier commentators becomes superfluous.
After her interview with Jesus, Mary Magdalene returns to the city, and tells the disciples that she had seen the Lord and that he had spoken these things unto her. According to Mark (vs. 10, 11), the disciples were “mourning and weeping;” and when the heard that Jesus was alive and had been seen of her, they believed not.
§ 5. Jesus appears to two disciples on the way to Emmaus. Also to Peter.
Luke 24: 13-35. Mark 16: 12, 13. 1 Cor. 15: 5.
This appearance on the way to Emmaus is related in full only by Luke. Mark merely notes the fact; while the other two Evangelists and Paul (1 Cor. 15: 5) make no mention of it.
On the afternoon of the same day on which our Lord arose, two of his disciples, one of them named Cleopas, were on their way on foot to a village called Emmaus, sixty stadia or seven and a half Roman miles distant from Jerusalem,—a walk of some two or two [pg 503] and a half hours. They had heard and credited the tidings brought by the women, and also by Peter and John, that the sepulchre was open and empty; and that the women had also seen a vision of angels, who said that Jesus was alive. They had most probably likewise heard the reports of Mary Magdalene and the other women, that Jesus himself had appeared to them; but these they did not regard, and do not mention them (v. 24); because they, like the other disciples, had looked upon them “as idle tales, and they believed them not;” v. 11. As they went, they were sad, and talked together of all these things which had happened. After some time Jesus himself drew near and went with them. But they knew him not. Mark says he was in another form; Luke affirms that “their eyes were holden, that they should not know him;” v. 16. Was there in this anything miraculous? The “another form” of Mark, Doddridge explains by “a different habit from what he ordinarily wore.” His garments, of course, were not his former ones; and this was probably one reason why Mary Magdalene had before taken him for the keeper of the garden.317 It may be, too, that these two disciples had not been intimately acquainted with the Lord. He had arrived at Jerusalem only six days before his crucifixion; and these might possibly have been recent converts, who had not before seen him. To such, the change of garments, and the unexpectedness of the meeting, would render a recognition more difficult; nor could it be regarded as surprising, that under such circumstances they should not know him. Still, all this is hypothesis; and the averment of Luke, that “their eyes were holden,” and the manner of our Lord's parting from them afterwards, seem more naturally to imply that the idea of a supernatural agency, affecting not Jesus himself, but the eyes or minds of the two disciples, was in the mind of the sacred writer.
Jesus inquires the cause of their sadness; chides them for their slowness of heart to believe what the prophets had spoken; and then proceeds to expound unto them “in all the Scriptures the things concerning himself.” They feel the power of his words; and their hearts burn within them. By this time they drew nigh to the village whither they went; it was toward evening, and the day was far spent. Their journey was ended; and Jesus was about to depart from them. In accordance with oriental hospitality they constrained him to remain with them. He consents; and as he sat at meat with them, he took bread, and blessed and brake, and gave unto them. At this time, and in connection with this act, their eyes were opened; they knew him; and he vanished away from them. Here too the question is raised, whether the language necessarily implies anything miraculous? Our English translators have rendered this passage in the margin, “he ceased to be seen of them;” and have referred to Luke 4: 30, and John 8: 59, as illustrating this idea. They might also have referred to Acts 8: 39. Still, the language is doubtless such as the sacred writers would most naturally have employed in order directly to express the idea of supernatural agency.
Full of wonder and joy, the two disciples set off the same hour and return to Jerusalem. They find the eleven and other disciples assembled; and as they enter, they are met with the joyful exclamation: “The Lord is risen indeed, and hath appeared unto Simon;” v. 34. They then rehearse what had happened to themselves; but, according to Mark, the rest believed them not. As in the case of the women, so here, there would seem to have been something in the position or character of these two disciples, which led the others to give less credit to their testimony, than to that of Peter, one of the leading apostles.
This appearance to Peter is mentioned by no other Evangelist; and we know nothing of the particular time, nor of the attending circumstances. It would seem to have taken place either not long before, or else shortly after, that to the two disciples. It had not happened when they left Jerusalem for Emmaus; or, at least, they had not heard of it. It had occurred when they returned; and that long enough before to have been fully reported to all the disciples and believed by them. It may perhaps have happened about the time when the two disciples set off, or shortly afterwards.
Paul, in enumerating those by whom the Lord was seen after his resurrection (1 Cor. 15: 5), mentions Peter first; passing over the appearances to the women, and also that to the two disciples; probably because they did not belong among the apostles.
[pg 504]§ 6. Jesus appears to the Apostles in the absence of Thomas; and afterwards when Thomas is present.
Mark 16: 14-18. Luke 24: 36-48. John 20: 19-29. 1 Cor. 15: 5.
The narrative of our Lord's first appearance to the apostles is most fully given by Luke: John adds a few circumstances; and Mark, as well as Luke, has preserved the first charge thus privately given to the apostles, to preach the Gospel in all the world,—a charge afterwards repeated in a more public and solemn manner on the mountain in Galilee. When Paul says the Lord appeared to the twelve, he obviously employs this number as being the usual designation of the apostles; and very probably includes both the occasion narrated in this section. Mark and Luke speak in like manner of the eleven; and yet we know from John, that Thomas was not at first among them; so that of course only ten were actually present.
According to Mark, the disciples were at their evening meal; which implies a not very late hour. John says the doors were shut, for fear of the Jews. While the two who had returned from Emmaus were still recounting what had happened unto them, Jesus himself “came and stood in the midst of them, and saith unto them, Peace be unto you!” The question here again is raised, whether this entrance of our Lord was miraculous? That it might have been so, there is no reason to doubt. He who in the days of his flesh walked upon the waters, and before whose angel the iron gate of the prison opened of its own accord so that Peter might pass out; he who was himself just risen from the dead; might well in same miraculous way present himself to his followers in spite of bolts and bars. But does the language here necessarily imply a miracle? The doors indeed were shut; but the word used does not of itself signify that they were bolted or fastened. The object no doubt was, to prevent access to spies from the Jews; or also to guard themselves from the danger of being arrested; and both these objects might perhaps have been as effectually accomplished by a watch at or before the door. Nor do the words used of our Lord strictly indicate anything miraculous. We do not find here a form of the word commonly employed to express the sudden appearance of angels; but, “he came and stood in the midst of them;” implying per se nothing more than the ordinary mode of approach. There is, in fact, nothing in the whole account to suggest a miracle, except the remark of John respecting the doors; and as this circumstance is not mentioned either by Mark or Luke, it may be doubtful whether we are necessarily compelled by the language to regard the mode of our Lord's entrance as miraculous.
At this interview Thomas was not present. On his return the other disciples relate to him the circumstances. But Thomas now disbelieved the others; as they before had disbelieved the women. His reply was, “except I shall see in his hands the print of the nails, and put my finger into the print of the nails, and thrust my hand into his side, I will not believe.” Our Lord had compassion upon his perverseness. Eight days afterwards, when the disciples were again assembled and Thomas with them, our Lord came as before, and stood in the midst, and said, Peace be unto you! He permits to Thomas the test he had demanded; and charges him to be not faithless, but believing. Thomas, convinced and abashed, exclaims in the fulness of faith and joy, My Lord and my God! recognising and acknowledging thereby the divine nature thus manifested in the flesh. The reply of our Lord to Thomas is strikingly impressive and condemnatory of his want of faith: “Thomas, because thou hast seen me, thou hast believed; blessed are they that have not seen, and yet have believed!” He and the other disciples, who were to be the heralds of the Lord's resurrection to the world as the foundation of the hope of the Gospel, refused to believe except upon the evidence of their own senses; while all who after them have borne the Christian Name, have believed this great fact of the Gospel solely upon their testimony. God has overruled their unbelief for good, in making it a powerful argument for the truth of their testimony in behalf of this great fact, which they themselves were so slow to believe. Blessed, indeed, are they who have received their testimony.
§ 7. Our Lord's Appearance in Galilee.
John 21: 1-24. Matt. 28: 16-20. 1 Cor. 15: 6.
It appears from the narrative of Matthew, that while the disciples were yet in Jerusalem, our Lord had appointed a time, when he would meet them in Galilee, upon a certain [pg 505] mountain.318 They therefore left Jerusalem after the passover, probably soon after the interview at which Thomas was present, and returned to Galilee, their home. While waiting for the appointed time, they engaged in their usual occupation of fishermen. On a certain day, as John relates, towards evening, seven of them being together, including Peter, Thomas, and the sons of Zebedee, they put out upon the lake with their nets in a fishing boat; but during the whole night they caught nothing. At early dawn Jesus stood upon the shore, from which they were not far off, and directed them to cast the net upon the right side of the boat. “They cast therefore, and now they were not able to draw it for the multitude of the fishes.” Recognising in this miracle their risen Lord, they pressed around him. Peter, with his characteristic ardour, threw himself into the water in order to reach him the sooner. At their Lord's command they prepared a meal from the fish they had thus taken. “Jesus then cometh and taketh bread, and giveth them, and fish likewise.” This was his third appearance to the eleven; or rather to a large number of them together. It was on this occasion, and after their meal, that our Lord put to Peter the touching and thrice repeated question, “Lovest thou me?”
At length the set time arrived; and the eleven disciples went away into the mountain “where Jesus had appointed them.” It would seem most probable, that this time and place had been appointed of our Lord for a solemn and more public interview, not only with the eleven, whom he had already met, but with all his disciples in Galilee; and that therefore it was on this same occasion, when, according to Paul, “he was seen of above five hundred brethren at once.”319 That the interview was not confined to the eleven alone, would seem evident from the fact that “some doubted;” for this could hardly be supposed true of any of the eleven, after what had already happened to them in Jerusalem and Galilee, and after having been appointed to meet their risen Lord at this very time and place. The appearance of the five hundred must at any rate be referred to Galilee; for even after our Lord's ascension, the number of the names in Jerusalem were together only about an hundred and twenty.320 I do not hesitate, therefore, to hold with Flatt, Olshausen, Hengstenberg, and others, that the appearances thus described by Matthew and Paul, were identical. It was a great and solemn occasion. Our Lord had directed that the eleven and all his disciples in Galilee should thus be convened upon the mountain. It was the closing scene of his ministry in Galilee. Here his life had been spent. Here most of his mighty works had been done and his discourses held. Here his followers were as yet most numerous. He therefore here takes leave on earth of those among whom he had lived and laboured longest; and repeats to all his disciples in public the solemn charge, which he had already given in private to the apostles: “Go ye therefore and teach all nations:—and lo, I am with you alway, even unto the end of the world.” It was doubtless his last interview with his disciples in that region,—his last great act in Galilee.
§ 8. Our Lord's further Appearances at Jerusalem, and his Ascension.
1 Cor. 15: 7. Acts 1: 3-12. Luke 24: 49-53. Mark 16: 19, 20.
Luke relates, in Acts 1: 3, that Jesus showed himself alive to his apostles, “after his passion, by many infallible proofs, being seen of them forty days, and speaking of the things pertaining to the kingdom of God.” This would seem to imply interviews and communications, as to which we have little more than this very general notice. One of these may have been the appearance to James, mentioned by Paul alone (1 Cor. 15: 7), as subsequent to that to the five hundred brethren. It may be referred with most probability to Jerusalem, after the return of the Apostles from Galilee. That this return took place by the Lord's direction, there can be no doubt; although none of the Evangelists have given us the slightest hint as to any such direction. Indeed, it is this very brevity,—this omission to place on record the minor details which might serve to connect the great facts and events of our Lord's last forty days on earth, that has occasioned all the doubt and difficulty with which this portion of the written history of these events has been encompassed.—The James here intended was probably our Lord's brother; who was of high consideration in the church, and is often, in the latter books, simply so named without any special designation.321 At the time when Paul wrote, the other James, “the brother of John,” as he is called, was already dead.322
[pg 506]After thus appearing to James, our Lord, according to Paul, was seen “of all the apostles.” This, too, was apparently an appointed meeting; and was doubtless the same of which Luke speaks, as occurring in Jerusalem immediately preceding the ascension. It was, of course, the Lord's last interview with his apostles. He repeats to them the promise of the baptism with the Holy Spirit as soon to take place; and charges them not to depart from Jerusalem until this should be accomplished.323 Strange as it may appear, the twelve, in this last solemn moment, put to him the question, “Lord, wilt thou at this time restore the kingdom to Israel?” How, indeed, were they to believe! Their gross and darkened minds, not yet enlightened by the baptism of the Spirit, clung still to the idea of a temporal Prince and Saviour, who should deliver his people, not from their sins, but from the galling yoke of Roman dominion. Our Lord deals gently with their ignorance and want of faith: “It is not for you to know the times and seasons;—but ye shall receive the power of the Holy Ghost coming upon you; and ye shall be witnesses unto me—unto the uttermost part of the earth.”
During this discourse, or in immediate connection with it, our Lord leads them out as far as to Bethany, and lifting up his hands he blessed them; Luke 24: 50. This act of blessing must be understood, by all the laws of language, as having taken place at or near Bethany. “And it came to pass, while he blessed them, he was parted from them, and carried up into heaven.” Our Lord's ascension, then, took place at or near Bethany. Indeed, the sacred writer could hardly have found words to express this fact more definitely and fully; and a doubt on this point could never have suggested itself to the mind of any reader, but for the language of the same writer, in Acts 1: 12, where he relates that after the ascension the disciples “returned unto Jerusalem by the mount called Olivet.” Luke obviously did not mean to contradict himself; and the most that his expression can be made to imply, is, that from Bethany, where their Lord had ascended, which lies on the eastern slope of the Mount of Olives, a mile or more below the summit of the ridge, the disciples returned to Jerusalem by a path across the mount.
As these disciples stood gazing and wondering, while a cloud received their Lord out of their sight, two angels stood by them in white apparel, announcing unto them, that this same Jesus, who was thus taken up from them into heaven, shall again so come, in like manner as they had seen him go into heaven. With this annunciation closes the written history of our Lord's resurrection and ascension.
The death of Jesus is universally regarded among Christians as a cruel murder, perpetrated under the pretence of a legal sentence, after a trial, in which the forms of law were essentially and grossly violated. The Jews to this day maintain, that, whatever were the merits of the case, the trial was at least regular, and the sentence legally just; that he was accused of blasphemy, and convicted of that offence by legal evidence. The question between them involves two distinct points of inquiry, namely, first, whether he was guilty of blasphemy; and, secondly, whether the arraignment and trial were conducted in the ordinary forms of law. But there will still remain a third question, namely, whether, admitting that, as a mere man, he had violated the law against blasphemy, he could legally be put to death for that cause; and if not, then whether he was justly condemned upon the new and supplemental accusation of treason or of sedition, which was vehemently urged against him. The first and last of these inquiries it is proposed briefly to pursue; but it will be necessary previously to understand the light in which he was regarded by the Jewish rulers and people, the state of their criminal jurisprudence and course of proceeding, and especially the nature and extent of the law concerning blasphemy, upon which he was indicted.
In the early period of the ministry of Jesus, he does not appear to have excited among the Pharisees any emotion but wonder and astonishment, and an intense interest respecting the nature of his mission. But the people heard him with increasing avidity, and followed him in countless throngs. He taught a purer religion than the Scribes and Pharisees, whose pride and corruption he boldly denounced. He preached charity [pg 508] and humility, and perfect holiness of heart and life, as essential to the favour of God, whose laws he expounded in all the depth of their spirituality, in opposition to the traditions of the elders, and the false glosses of the Scribes and Pharisees. These sects he boldly charged with making void and rejecting the law of God, and enslaving men by their traditions; he accused them of hypocrisy, covetousness, oppression, and lust of power and popularity; and denounced them as hinderers of the salvation of others, as a generation of serpents and vipers, doomed to final perdition. It was natural that these terrific denunciations, from such a personage, supported by his growing power and the increasing acclamations of the people, should alarm the partisans of the ancient theocracy, and lead them to desire his destruction. This alarm evidently increased with the progress of his ministry; and was greatly heightened by the raising of Lazarus from the dead, on which occasion the death of Jesus was definitively resolved on;324 but no active measures against him seem to have been attempted, until the time when, under the parable of the wicked husbandmen who cast the heir out of the vineyard and slew him, he declared that the kingdom of God should be taken from them, and given to others more worthy. Perceiving that he spake this parable against them, from that hour they sought to lay hands on him, and were restrained only by fear of the popular indignation.325
Having thus determined to destroy Jesus at all events, as a person whose very existence was fatal to their own power, and perhaps, in their view, to the safety of their nation, the first step was to render him odious to the people; without which the design would undoubtedly recoil on the heads of its contrivers, his popularity being unbounded. Countless numbers had received the benefit of his miraculous gifts; and it was therefore deemed a vain attempt to found an accusation, at that time, on any past transaction of his life. A new occasion was accordingly sought, by endeavouring to “entangle him in his talk;” a measure, planned and conducted with consummate cunning and skill. The Jews were divided into two political parties. [pg 509] One of these consisted of the Pharisees, who held it unlawful to acknowledge or pay tribute to the Roman emperor, because they were forbidden, by the law of Moses,326 to set a king over them who was a stranger, and not one of their own countrymen. The other party was composed of the partisans of Herod, who understood this law to forbid only the voluntary election of a stranger, and therefore esteemed it not unlawful to submit and pay tribute to a conqueror. These two parties, though bitterly opposed to each other, united in the attempt to entrap Jesus, by the question,—“Is it lawful to give tribute to Cæsar, or not?”327 If he answered in the negative, the Herodians were to accuse him to Pilate, for treason; if in the affirmative, the Pharisees would denounce him to the people, as an enemy to their liberties.328 This insidious design was signally frustrated by the wisdom of his reply, when, referring to Cæsar's image and legend, on the coins which they all received as legally current, he showed the inconsistency of withholding the honour due to one thus implicitly acknowledged by both parties to be their lawful sovereign.
Defeated in this attempt to commit him politically, their next endeavour was to render him obnoxious to one or the other of the two great religious sects, which were divided upon the doctrine of the resurrection, the Pharisees affirming, and the Sadducees denying, that the dead would rise again. The latter he easily silenced, by a striking exposition of their own law. They asked him which, of several husbands, would be entitled in the next world to the wife whom they successively had married in this; and in reply, he showed them that in heaven the relation of husband and wife was unknown.329
Their last trial was made by a lawyer, who sought to entrap him into an assertion that one commandment in the law was greater than another; a design rendered abortive by his reply that they were all of equal obligation.330
It being apparent, from these successive defeats, that any [pg 510] farther attempt to find new matter of accusation would result only in disgrace to themselves, the enemies of Jesus seem to have come to the determination to secure his person secretly, and afterwards to put him to death, in any manner that would not render them odious to the people. In execution of this design, they first bribed Judas to betray him by night into their hands. This object being attained, the next step was to destroy his reputation, and if possible to render him so vile in the public estimation, as that his destruction would be regarded with complacency. Now no charge could so surely produce this effect, and none could so plausibly be preferred against him, as that of blasphemy; a crime which the Jews regarded with peculiar horror. Even their veneration of Jesus, and the awe which his presence inspired, had not been sufficient to restrain their rising indignation on several occasions, when they regarded his language as the blasphemous arrogation of a divine character and power to himself; and could they now be brought to believe him a blasphemer, and see him legally convicted of this atrocious crime, his destruction might easily be brought about, without any very scrupulous regard to the form, and even with honour to those by whom it might be accomplished.
It will now be necessary to consider more particularly the nature of the crime of blasphemy, in its larger signification, as it may be deduced from the law of God. That the spirit of this law requires from all men, everywhere, and at all times, the profoundest veneration of the Supreme Being, and the most submissive acknowledgment of Him as their rightful Sovereign, is too plain to require argument. If proof were wanted, it is abundantly furnished in the Decalogue,331 which is admitted [pg 511] among Christians to be of universal obligation. At the time when the Jewish Theocracy was established, idolatry had become generally prevalent, and men had nearly lost all just notions of the nature and attributes of their Creator. It is therefore supposed that the design of Jehovah, in forming the Jewish constitution and code of laws, was to preserve the knowledge of himself as the true God, and to retain that people in the strictest possible allegiance to him alone; totally excluding every acknowledgment of any other being, either as an object of worship or a source of power. Hence the severity with which he required that sorceries, divinations, witchcrafts and false prophecies, as well as open idolatries, should be punished, they being alike acts of treason, or, as we might say, of præmunire, amounting to the open acknowledgment of a power independent of Jehovah. Hence, too, the great veneration in which he commanded that his name and attributes should be held, even in ordinary conversation. It is the breach of this last law, to which the term blasphemy, in its more restricted sense, has usually been applied;332 but originally the command evidently extended to every word or act, directly in derogation of the sovereignty of Jehovah, such as speaking in the name of another god,333 or omitting, on any occasion that required it, to give to [pg 512] Jehovah the honour due to his own name.334 Thus, when Moses and Aaron, at the command of God, smote the rock in Kadesh, that from it waters might flow to refresh the famishing multitude, but neglected to honour him as the source of the miraculous energy, and arrogated it to themselves, saying, “Hear now, ye rebels, must we bring you water out of this rock?”335 this omission drew on them his severe displeasure. “And the Lord spake unto Moses and Aaron, Because ye believed me not, to sanctify me in the eyes of the children of Israel, therefore ye shall not bring this congregation into the land which I have given them.” Accordingly, both Moses and Aaron died before the Israelites entered into the promised land.336 No other deity was permitted to be invoked; no miracle must be wrought, but in the name of God alone. “I am Jehovah; that is my name; and my glory will I not give to another, neither my praise to graven images.”337 This was ever a cardinal principle of his law, neither newly announced by Isaiah, nor by Moses. Its promulgation on Mount Sinai was merely declaratory of what had been well understood at the beginning, namely, that God alone was the Lord of all power and might, and would be expressly acknowledged as such, in every exertion of superhuman energy or wisdom. Thus Joseph, when required to interpret the dream of Pharaoh, replied, “It is not in me: God shall give Pharaoh an answer of peace.”338 And Moses, in all the miracles previously [pg 513] wrought by him in Egypt, expressly denounced them as the judgments of God, by whose hand alone they were inflicted.339 After the solemn re-enactment of this law on Mount Sinai, its signal violation by Moses and Aaron deserved to be made as signal an example of warning; and this judgment of Jehovah may be said to constitute the leading case under this article of the law; forming a rule of action and of judgment for all cases of miracles which might be wrought in all coming time. The same principle was afterwards expressly extended to prophesying. “The prophet—that shall speak in the name of other gods, even that prophet shall die.”340 His character of prophet, and even his inspiration, shall not authorize him to prophesy but in the name of the Lord. He shall not exercise his office in his own name, nor in any name but that of Jehovah, from whom his power was derived.
That such was understood to be the true meaning of this law of God, is further evident from the practice of the prophets, in later times, to whom was given the power of working miracles. These they always wrought in his name, expressly acknowledged at the time. Thus, the miracle of thunder and rain in the season of the wheat-harvest, called for by Samuel, he expressly attributed to the Lord.341 So did Elijah, when he called fire from heaven to consume his sacrifice, in refutation of the claims of Baal.342 So did Elisha, when he divided the waters of Jordan, by smiting them with the mantle of Elijah;343 and again, when he miraculously multiplied the loaves of bread, for the people that were with him;344 and again, when he caused the young man's eyes to be opened, that he might behold the hosts of the Lord around him, and smote his enemies with blindness.345 [pg 514] And even the angel Gabriel, when sent to interpret to Daniel the things which should befall his people in the latter days, explicitly announced himself as speaking in Jehovah's name.346
The same view of the sinfulness of exercising superhuman power without an express acknowledgment of God as its author, and of any usurpation of his authority, continued to prevail, down to the time of our Saviour. Thus, when he said to the sick of the palsy, “Son, be of good cheer, thy sins be forgiven thee,” certain of the Scribes said within themselves, “This man blasphemeth. Who can forgive sins, but God alone?”347 And again, when the Jews, on another occasion, took up stones to stone him, and Jesus, appealing to his good works done among them, asked for which of them he was to be stoned; they replied, “For a good work we stone thee not, but for blasphemy, and because that thou, being a man, makest thyself God.”348 Yet Jesus had on no occasion mentioned the name of Jehovah, but with profound reverence.
Thus it appears that the law of blasphemy, as it was understood among the Jews, extended not only to the offence of impiously using the name of the Supreme Being, but to every usurpation of his authority, or arrogation, by a created being, of the honour and power belonging to him alone.349 Like the crime of treason among men, its essence consisted in acknowledging or setting up the authority of another sovereign than [pg 515] one's own, or invading the powers pertaining exclusively to him; an offence, of which the case of Moses, before cited, is a prominent instance, both in its circumstances and in its punishment. Whether a false god was acknowledged or the true one denied, and whether the denial was in express terms, or by implication, in assuming to do, by underived power, and in one's own name, that which God only could perform, the offence was essentially the same. And in such horror was it held by the Israelites, that in token of it every one was obliged, by an early and universal custom, to rend his garments, whenever it was committed or related in his presence.350 This sentiment was deeply felt by the whole people, as a part of their religion.
Such being the general scope and spirit of the law, it would seem to have been easy to prove that Jesus had repeatedly incurred its penalties. He had performed many miracles, but never in any other name than his own. In his own name, and without the recognition of any higher power, he had miraculously healed the sick, restored sight to the blind and strength to the lame, cast out devils, rebuked the winds, calmed the sea, and raised the dead. In his own name, also, and with no allusion to the Omniscient, no “Thus saith the Lord,” he had prophesied of things to come. He had by his own authority forgiven sins, and promised, by his own power, not only to raise the dead, but to resume his own life, after he should, as he predicted, be put to death. Finally, he had expressly claimed for himself a divine origin and character, and the power to judge [pg 516] both the quick and the dead351. Considered as a man, he had usurped the attributes of God. That he was not arrested at an earlier period, is to be attributed to his great popularity, and the astounding effect of his miracles. His whole career had been resplendent with beneficence to the thousands who surrounded him. His eloquence surpassed all that had been uttered by man. The people were amazed, bewildered, and fascinated, by the resistless power of his life. It was not until his last triumphal visit to Jerusalem, after he had openly raised Lazarus from the dead, when the chief priests and elders perceived that “the world was gone after him,” that they were stricken with dismay and apprehension for their safety, and under this panic resolved upon the perilous measure of his destruction.
The only safe method in which this could be accomplished, was under the sanction of a legal trial and sentence. Jesus, therefore, upon his apprehension, was first brought before the great tribunal of the Sanhedrim, and charged with the crime of blasphemy. What were the specifications under this general charge, or whether any were necessary, we are not informed. But that this was the offence charged, is manifest both from the evidence adduced and from the judgment of conviction.352 Such was the estimation in which he was held, that it was with great difficulty that witnesses could be found to testify against him; and the two who at last were procured, testified falsely, in applying his words to the temple of Solomon, which he spake of the temple of his body. When, upon the occasion of his [pg 517] scourging the money-changers out of the temple, the Jews demanded by what authority he did this, Jesus replied, alluding to his own person, “Destroy this temple, and in three days I will raise it up.”353 But though the witnesses swore falsely in testifying that he spake of the Jewish temple, yet his words, in either sense, amounted to a claim of the power of working miracles, and so brought him within the law. The high priest, however, still desirous of new evidence, which might justify his condemnation in the eyes of the people, proceeded to interrogate Jesus concerning his character and mission. “I adjure thee, by the living God, that thou tell us whether thou be the Christ, the Son of God. Jesus saith unto him, Thou hast said: nevertheless, I say unto you, hereafter ye shall see the Son of Man sitting on the right hand of power, and coming in the clouds of heaven. Then the high priest rent his clothes, saying He hath spoken blasphemy; what further need have we of witnesses? Behold, now ye have heard his blasphemy. What think ye? They answered and said, He is guilty of death.”354 We may suppose the multitude standing without the hall of judgment, able, through its avenues and windows, to see, but not to hear, all that was transacting within. It became important, therefore, to obtain some reason upon which the high priest might rend his clothes in their sight, thus giving to the people, by this expressive and awful sign, the highest evidence of blasphemy, uttered by Jesus in the presence of that august assembly. This act turned the tide of popular indignation against him, whose name, but a short time before, had been the theme of their loudest hosannas. There was now no need to go into the past transactions of his ministry, for matter of accusation. His friends might claim for him on that score all that the warmest gratitude and love could inspire; and all this could be safely conceded. But here, his accusers might say, was a new and shocking crime, just perpetrated in the presence of the most sacred tribunal; a crime so shocking, and so boldly committed, that the high priest rent his clothes with horror, in the very judgment seat, in the presence of all the members [pg 518] of the Sanhedrim, who, with one accord, upon that evidence alone, immediately convicted the offender and sentenced him to death.
If we regard Jesus simply as a Jewish citizen, and with no higher character, this conviction seems substantially right in point of law, though the trial were not legal in all its forms. For, whether the accusation were founded on the first or second commands in the decalogue, or on the law, laid down in the thirteenth chapter of Deuteronomy, or on that in the eighteenth chapter and twentieth verse, he had violated them all, by assuming to himself powers belonging alone to Jehovah. And even if he were recognized as a prophet of the Lord, he was still obnoxious to punishment, under the decision in the case of Moses and Aaron, before cited. It is not easy to perceive on what ground his conduct could have been defended before any tribunal, unless upon that of his superhuman character. No lawyer, it is conceived, would think of placing his defence upon any other basis.
The great object of exciting the people against Jesus being thus successfully accomplished, the next step was to obtain legal authority to put him to death. For though the Sanhedrim had condemned him, they had not the power to pass a capital sentence; this being a right which had passed from the Jews by the conquest of their country, and now belonged to the Romans alone. They were merely citizens of a Roman province; they were left in the enjoyment of their civil laws, the public exercise of their religion, and many other things relating to their police and municipal regulations; but they had not the power of life and death. This was a principal attribute of sovereignty, which the Romans always took care to reserve to themselves in order to be able to reach those individuals who might become impatient of the yoke, whatever else might be neglected. Apud quos (Romanos), vis imperii valet; inania transmittuntur.355 The jurisdiction of capital cases belonged [pg 519] ordinarily to the governor general or Præses of a province, the Procurator having for his principal duty only the charge of the revenue and the cognizance of revenue causes. But the right of taking cognizance of capital crimes was, in some cases, given to certain Procurators, who were sent into small provinces, to fill the places of governors, (Vice Præsides,) as clearly appears from the Roman laws. The government of all Syria was at this time under a governor general, or Præses; of which Judea was one of the lesser dependencies, under the charge of Pilate as Vice Præses, with capital jurisdiction.356
It could not be expected that Pilate would trouble himself [pg 520] with the cognizance of any matter, not pertaining to the Roman law; much less with an alleged offence against the God of the Jews, who was neither acknowledged nor even respected by their conquerors. Of this the chief priests and elders were fully aware; and therefore they prepared a second accusation against Jesus, founded on the Roman law; as likely to succeed with Pilate, as the former had done with the people. They charged him with attempting to restore the kingdom of Israel, under his own dominion as king of the Jews. “We found this fellow, said they, perverting the nation, and forbidding to give tribute to Cæsar, saying, That he himself is Christ, a king.”357
It was a charge of high treason against the Roman state and emperor; a charge which was clearly within Pilate's cognizance, and which, as they well knew, no officer of Tiberius would venture lightly to regard. Pilate accordingly forthwith arraigned Jesus, and called upon him to answer this accusation. It is worthy of note, that from the moment when he was accused of treason before Pilate, no further allusion was made to the previous charge of blasphemy; the Roman governor being engaged solely with the charge newly preferred before himself. The answer of Jesus to this charge satisfied Pilate that it was groundless, the kingdom which he set up appearing plainly to be not a kingdom of this world, but his spiritual reign in righteousness and holiness and peace, in the hearts of men. Pilate therefore acquitted him of the offence. “He went out again unto the Jews, and saith unto them, I find in him no fault at all.”358 Here was a sentence of acquittal, judicially pronounced, and irreversible, except by a higher power, upon appeal; and it was the duty of Pilate thereupon to have discharged him. But the multitude, headed now by the priests and elders, grew clamorous for his execution; adding, “He stirreth up the people, teaching throughout all Jewry, beginning from Galilee to this place.”359 Hearing this reference to Galilee, Pilate seized the opportunity, thus offered, of escaping from the responsibility of a judgment, either of acquittal or of [pg 521] condemnation, by treating the case as out of his jurisdiction, and within that of Herod, tetrarch of Galilee, who was then in Jerusalem on a visit. He therefore sent Jesus and his accusers to Herod; before whom the charge was vehemently renewed and urged. But Herod, too, perceived that it was utterly groundless, and accordingly treated it with derision, arraying Jesus in mock habiliments of royalty, and remanding him to Pilate.360 The cause was then solemnly re-examined by the Roman governor, and a second judgment of acquittal pronounced. For “Pilate, when he had called together the chief priests and the rulers, and the people, said unto them, Ye have brought this man unto me, as one that perverteth the people; and behold, I having examined him before you, have found no fault in this man, touching those things whereof ye accuse him: No, nor yet Herod: for I sent you to him; and lo, nothing worthy of death is done unto him. I will therefore chastise him and release him.”361
It may seem strange to us that after a judgment of acquittal thus solemnly pronounced, any judge, in a civilized country, should venture to reverse it, upon the same evidence, and without the pretence of mistake or error in the proceedings. Probably, in the settled jurisprudence of the city of Rome, it could not have been done. But this was in a remote province of the empire, under the administration not of a jurist, but a soldier; and he, too, irresolute and vacillating; fearful for his office, and even for his life, for he served the “dark and unrelenting Tiberius.” As soon as he proposed to release Jesus, “the Jews cried out, saying, If thou let this man go, thou art not Cæsar's friend. Whosoever maketh himself a king, speaketh against Cæsar.”362 Whereupon “Pilate gave sentence that it should be as they required.”363 That Jesus was executed under the pretence of treason, and that alone, is manifest from [pg 522] the tenor of the writing placed over his head, stating that he was king of the Jews; such being the invariable custom among the Romans, in order that the public might know for what crime the party had been condemned.364 The remaining act in this tragedy is sufficiently known.
In the preceding remarks, the case has been considered only upon its general merits, and with no reference to the manner in which the proceedings were conducted. But M. Dupin, in his tract on the Trial of Jesus before the Sanhedrim, in reply to Mr. Salvador's account of it, has satisfactorily shown that throughout the whole course of that trial the rules of the Jewish law of procedure were grossly violated, and that the accused was deprived of rights, belonging even to the meanest citizen. He was arrested in the night, bound as a malefactor, beaten before his arraignment, and struck in open court during the trial; he was tried on a feast day, and before sunrise; he was compelled to criminate himself, and this, under an oath or solemn judicial adjuration; and he was sentenced on the same day of the conviction. In all these particulars the law was wholly disregarded.365
Mr. Joseph Salvador, a physician and a learned Jew, a few years ago published at Paris, a work, entitled, “Histoire des Institutions de Moïse et du Peuple Hébreu,” in which, among other things, he gives an account of their course of criminal procedure, in a chapter on “The Administration of Justice;” which he illustrates, in a succeeding chapter, by an account of the trial of Jesus. As this is the recent work of a man of learning, himself a Jew, it may be regarded as an authentic statement of what is understood and held by the most intelligent and best informed Jews, respecting the claims of our Lord, the tenor of his doctrines, the nature of the charge laid against him before the Sanhedrim, and the grounds on which they condemned him. The following translation of the last-mentioned chapter will therefore not be unacceptable to the reader. It will be found in Book IV. chapter iii., entitled, “The Trial and Condemnation of Jesus.” The reader will bear in his mind, that it is the language of an enemy of our Saviour, and in justification of his murderers.
“According to this exposition of judicial proceedings,” says the Jew, “I shall follow out the application of them in the most memorable tried in history, that of Jesus Christ. I have already explained the motives which have directed me, and the point of view in which I have considered the subject; I have already shown, that among the Jews no title was a shelter against a prosecution and sentence. Whether the law or its forms were good or bad, is not the object of my present investigation; neither is it to ascertain whether we ought to pity the blindness of the Hebrews in not discovering a Deity in Jesus, or to be astonished that a God personified could not make himself comprehended when he desired it. But since they regarded him [pg 524] only as a citizen, did they not try him according to their law and its existing forms? This is my question, which can admit of no equivocation. I shall draw all my facts from the Evangelists themselves, without inquiring whether all this history was developed after the event, to serve as a form to a new doctrine, or to an old one which had received a fresh impulse.
Jesus was born of a family of small fortune; Joseph, his supposed father, perceived that his wife was big before they had come together. If he had brought her to trial, in the ordinary course of things, Mary, according to the 23rd verse of the 22nd chapter of Deuteronomy, would have been condemned, and Jesus, having been declared illegitimate, could never, according to the 2nd verse of the 23rd chapter, have been admitted to a seat in the Sanhedrim.366 But Joseph, who, to save his wife from disgrace, had taken the resolution of sending her away privately, soon had a dream which consoled him.367
After having been circumcised, Jesus grew like other men, attended the solemn feasts, and early displayed surprising wisdom and sagacity. In the assembly on the Sabbath, the Jews, eager for the disputes to which the interpretation of the law gave rise, loved to hear him. But he soon devoted himself to more important labours; he pronounced censures against whole towns, Capernaum, Chorazin and Bethsaida.368 Recalling the times of Isaiah and Jeremiah, he thundered against the chiefs of the people with a vehemence which would in our day be terrific.369 The people then regarded him as a prophet;370 they heard him preach in towns and country without opposition; they saw him surrounded with disciples according to the custom of the learned men of the age; whatever may have been the resentment of the chief men, they were silent as long as he confined himself to the law.
But Jesus, in presenting new theories, and in giving new forms to those already promulgated, speaks of himself as God; his disciples repeat it; and the subsequent events prove in the [pg 525] most satisfactory manner, that they thus understood him.371 This was shocking blasphemy in the eyes of the citizens: the law commands them to follow Jehovah alone, the only true God; not to believe in gods of flesh and bone, resembling men or women; neither to spare nor listen to a prophet who, even doing miracles, should proclaim a new god, a god whom neither they nor their fathers had known.372
Jesus having said to them one day: “I have come down from heaven to do these things,” the Jews, who till then had listened to him, murmured and cried: “Is not this Jesus, the son of Joseph and of Mary? we know his father, his mother, and his brethren; why then does he say that he has come down from heaven?”373 On another day, the Jews, irritated from the same cause, took stones and threatened him. Jesus said unto them, “I have done good works in your eyes by the power of my Father, for which of these works would you stone me? It is for no good work,” replied the Jews, who stated the whole process in few words, “but because of thy blasphemy; for being a man,374 thou makest thyself God.”375
His language was not always clear. Often his disciples themselves did not comprehend him. Among his maxims, some of which showed the greatest mildness, there were some which the Hebrews, who were touched only through their natural sense, thought criminal. “Think not that I am come to send peace on earth; I came not to send peace, but a sword. For I am come to set a man at variance against his father, and the [pg 526] daughter against her mother, and the daughter-in-law against her mother-in-law. And a man's foes shall be they of his own household. He that loveth father or mother more than me, is not worthy of me.”376 Finally, if he wrought miracles before certain of the people, his replies to the questions of the doctors were generally evasive.377
In regard to political relations, he caused dissensions.378 A great number of disorderly persons whom he had the design of reclaiming, but who inspired dread in the national council, attached themselves to him;379 his discourse flattered them inasmuch as he pronounced anathemas against riches. “Know,” said he, “that it is easier for a camel to go through the eye of a needle, than for a rich man to enter the kingdom of heaven.”380 In this state of affairs, the council deliberates; some are of opinion that he should be regarded as a madman,381 others say that he seeks to seduce the people.382 Caiaphas, the high priest, whose dignity compels him to defend the letter of the law, observes that these dissensions would furnish an excuse to the Romans for overwhelming Judea, and that the interests of the whole nation must outweigh those of a single individual; he constitutes himself the accuser of Jesus.383
The order is given to seize him. But let us pause here upon a fact of the highest importance. The senate did not begin by actually seizing Jesus, as is now the practice; they begin by giving, after some debate, an order that he should be seized.384 This decree is made public; it is known to all, especially to Jesus. No opposition is offered to his passing the frontier: his liberty depends entirely upon himself. This is not all; the order for his arrest was preceded by a decree of admonition. One day, Jesus having entered the temple, took upon himself authority contrary to the common law; then he preached to the people, and said: “That those who should believe in him should be able to do all things, so that if they should say to a [pg 527] mountain, remove thyself and cast thyself into the sea, it would obey.” Then the chief priest and senators went to find him and said to him, “By what authority doest thou these things? who gave thee this power?”385
Meanwhile a traitor discloses the place whither the accused had retired; the guards, authorized by the high priest and by the elders,386 hasten to seize him. One of his disciples, breaking into open rebellion, with a stroke of his sword cuts off the ear of one of them, and brings upon himself the reproof of his master.387 As soon as Jesus is arrested, the zeal of the apostles is extinguished; all forsake him.388 He is brought before the grand council, where the priests sustain the accusation. The witnesses testify, and they are numerous; for the deeds of which he is accused were done in the presence of all the people. The two witnesses whom St. Matthew and St. Mark accuse of perjury, relate a discourse which St. John declares to be true, with regard to the power which Jesus arrogates to himself.389 Finally, the high priest addresses the accused, and says: “Is it true that thou art Christ, that thou art the Son of God?” “I am he,” replies Jesus; “you shall see me hereafter at the right hand of the majesty of God, who shall come upon the clouds of heaven.” At these words, Caiaphas rent his garments in token of horror.390 “You have heard him.” They deliberate.
[pg 528]The question already raised among the people was this: Has Jesus become God? But the senate having adjudged that Jesus, son of Joseph, born at Bethlehem, had profaned the name of God by usurping it to himself, a mere citizen, applied to him the law of blasphemy, and the law in the 13th chapter of Deuteronomy, and the 20th verse in chapter 18, according to which every prophet, even he who works miracles, must be punished, when he speaks of a god unknown to the Jews and their fathers:391 the capital sentence was pronounced. As to the ill-treatment which followed the sentence, it was contrary to the spirit of the Jewish law; and it is not in the course of nature, that a senate composed of the most respectable men of a nation, who, however they might have been deceived, yet intended to act legally, should have permitted such outrages against him whose life was at their disposal. The writers who have transmitted to us these details, not having been present at the trial, have been disposed to exaggerate the picture, either on account of their prejudices, or to throw greater obloquy on the judges.
One thing is certain, that the council met again on the morning of the next day or the day following that,392 as the law requires, to confirm or to annul the sentence: it was confirmed. Jesus was brought before Pilate, the procurator that the Romans had placed over the Jews. They had retained the power of trying according to their own laws, but the executive power was in the hands of the procurator alone: no criminal could be executed without his consent: this was in order that the Senate should not have the means of reaching men who were sold to foreigners.393 Pilate, the Roman, signed the decree. [pg 529] His soldiers, an impure mixture of diverse nations, were charged with the punishment. These are they who brought Jesus to the judgment hall, who stripped him before the whole cohort, who placed upon his head a crown of thorns, and a reed in his hand, who showed all the barbarity to which the populace in all ages is disposed; who finally caused him to undergo a punishment common at Rome, and which was not in use among the Jews.394 But before the execution, the governor had granted to the condemned an appeal to the people, who, respecting the judgment of their own council, would not permit this favour, couching their refusal in these terms: “We have a law; and by our law he ought to die, because he made himself the Son of God.”395 Then Pilate left them the choice of saving Jesus, or a man accused of murder in a sedition; the people declared for the latter; saying that the other would scatter the seeds of discord in the bosom of the nation, at a time when union was most necessary.396
“Jesus was put to death. The priests and elders went to the place of punishment; and as the sentence was founded upon this fact, that he had unlawfully arrogated to himself the title of Son of God, God himself, they appealed to him thus: ‘Thou wouldst save others; thyself thou canst not save. If thou art indeed the king of Israel, come down into the midst of us, and we will believe in thee, since thou hast said, I am the Son of God, let that God who loves thee come now to thine aid.’397 [pg 530] According to the Evangelist, these words were a mockery; but the character of the persons who pronounced them, their dignity, their age, the order which they had observed in the trial, prove their good faith. Would not a miracle at this time have been decisive?”
A few years ago, Mr. Joseph Salvador, a physician—and a descendant of one of those Jewish families, whom the intolerance of Ferdinand the Catholic expelled, in a body, from Spain, about the year 1492—published at Paris a learned work, entitled “Histoire des Institutions de Moïse et du Peuple Hébreu,” or History of the Institutions of Moses and the Hebrew People; and in one chapter of his work he gives an account of the Administration of Justice among the Hebrews. To that chapter he has subjoined an account of the “Trial and Condemnation of Jesus;” in the course of which he expresses his opinion, that the trial, considered merely as a legal proceeding, was conformable to the Jewish laws.
The author of the following little work, M. Dupin, who is one of the most eminent lawyers of the French Bar, immediately called in question the correctness of Mr. Salvador's opinion, and entered upon an analysis of this portion of his work, with a view to examine its soundness, and the present volume contains the result of that examination, conducted with great legal skill and extensive learning.
It appears, that he had, many years before, in a little work, entitled “The Free Defence of Accused Persons,” published in 1815, taken the same views of this great trial; which, as he observes, has been justly called “the Passion or Suffering of our Saviour; for he did in truth suffer, and had not a trial.”
The author's attention, however, had been withdrawn from this subject for several years, when it was again brought under his notice by the work of Mr. Salvador, a copy of which was sent to him by that writer, with a request that M. Dupin would give some account of it. Accordingly, says the latter, “it is in compliance with his request, and not from a spirit of hostility, that I have made this examination of his work;” and he gives ample proof of his good feeling towards Mr. Salvador, with whom, he says, he is personally acquainted and for whose talents he has a great respect.
With this friendly spirit he enters upon his examination; which is conducted with an ability, learning, animation, and interest, that leave nothing to be desired. As an argument, his work is unanswerable,—he has demolished that of his adversary; and, for intense interest, we do not know any publication of the present day to be compared with it.
[pg 534]The introductory Analysis of Mr. Salvador's chapter on the Administration of Justice according to the Jewish Law will be highly instructive and interesting; and those persons, who have not been accustomed to read the Bible with particular reference to the Law, will find many new and striking views of that portion of the Scriptures. They cannot fail to be particularly struck with the extraordinary care taken to secure by law the personal liberty and rights of the citizen.
According to Mr. Salvador's view, “the fundamental division into castes is the principal basis of the oriental theocracies.” Moses, on the contrary, took for his basis the unity of the people. In his system of legislation the people are every thing; and the author shows us, that every thing, eventually, is done for them, by them, and with them. The tribe of Levi was established, only to supply a secondary want; and that tribe was very far from obtaining all the powers which we are apt to attribute to it; it did not make, nor develope the laws; it did not judge or govern; all its members, even the high priest himself, were subject to the control of the Elders of the nation, or of a Senate legally assembled.
Intimately connected with these rights of the people was the liberty of speech; and Mr. Salvador, in his chapter on the Public Orators and Prophets, maintains, and in the opinion of M. Dupin, proves clearly, that in no nation was the liberty of speech ever so unlimited, as among the Hebrews. Accordingly he observes—“What an additional difference was this between the Israelites and the Egyptians! Among the latter, the mass of the people did not dare, without incurring the hazard of the most terrible punishment, to utter a word on affairs of state; it was Harpocrates, the god of silence with his finger on his closed lips, who was their God; in Israel, it was the right of speech.”
But we forbear any further reflections, and submit this remarkable performance to our readers. Those, who are familiar with the animated tone of French writers, will perhaps discover in this translation some loss of the fire and intensity of the original; but the translator's purpose will be effected, if his version shall be found to be a faithful one.
September 3, 1839.
Mr. Salvador has discussed with particular care whatever relates to the administration of justice among the Jewish people. We shall dwell upon this chapter, which undoubtedly will most interest our readers.
Judicare and judicari, to judge and to be judged, express the rights of every Hebrew citizen; that is, no one could be condemned without a judgment, and every one might, in his turn, be called upon to sit in judgment upon others. Some exceptions to this principle are explained; but they do not affect the rule. In matters of mere interest each party chose a judge, and these two chose a third person. If a discussion arose as to the interpretation of a law, they carried it to the lower council of Elders, and from thence to the Great council at Jerusalem. Each town of more than one hundred and twenty families was to have its lower council, consisting of twenty-three members; and these had jurisdiction in criminal cases.
The expressions, he shall die, he shall be cut off from the people, which are so often used in the Mosaic law, embrace three very different significations, which we are accustomed to confound. They indicate the suffering of death as a punishment, civil death, and that premature death, with which an individual is naturally threatened, who departs from those rules which are useful to the nation and to the individual himself. Civil death is the last degree of separation, or excommunication; it is pronounced, as a judicial punishment, by the assembly of the judges.
[pg 536]There were three kinds of separation; which Mr. Salvador compares to the three degrees of civil excommunication provided for in the French Penal Code, and which condemn the criminal to hard labour either for life or for a term of years, or to certain correctional punishments. But the Hebrew excommunication had this advantage, that the party never lost all hope of regaining his original standing.
The Hebrew lawyers, in relation to the punishment of death, maintained opinions, which deserve to be quoted:—
“A tribunal, which condemns to death once in seven years, may be called sanguinary.”—“It deserves this appellation, says doctor Eliezer, when it pronounces a like sentence once in seventy years.”—“If we had been members of the high court, say the doctors Tyrphon and Akiba, we should never have condemned a man to death.” Simeon, the son of Gamaliel, replied—“Would not that be an abuse? Would you not have been afraid of multiplying crimes in Israel?” Mr. Salvador answers—“No, certainly; far from lessening their number, the severity of the punishment increases it, by giving a more resolute character to the men who are able to brave it; and, at the present day, how many intelligent minds range themselves on the side of Akiba and Tyrphon! How many consciences refuse to participate, in any manner, in the death of a man! The flowing of blood, the multitude excited by an unbecoming curiosity, the victim dragged in triumph to the horrible altar, the impossibility of repairing a mistake, (from which human wisdom is never exempt), the dread of one day seeing a departed shade rising up and saying, ‘I was innocent,’ the facility which modern nations have of expelling from among them the man whose presence pollutes them—the influence of general depravity on the production of crimes—and finally the absurd contrast of the whole of society, while in possession of strength, intelligence, and arms, opposing itself to an individual wretch (who has been drawn on by want, by passion, or by ignorance) and yet finding no other means of redress than by exceeding him in cruelty—all these things, and many others, have so deeply penetrated the minds of all ranks of people, that there will one day proceed from them the most striking proof of the power of morals over [pg 537] the laws; for the law will be changed by the simple fact, that we shall not find any person who will consent to apply it.”
I feel honoured in having maintained the same opinion in my Observations on Criminal Legislation; but I solicit those, who wish to see this question discussed in its whole extent, to read the profound reflections which the Duke de Broglie has just published on the subject, in the last number of the Revue Française (for October, 1828.)
The whole criminal procedure in the Pentateuch rests upon three principles, which may be thus expressed; publicity of the trial, entire liberty of defence allowed to the accused; and a guaranty against the dangers of testimony. According to the Hebrew text one witness is no witness; there must be at least two or three who know the fact. The witness, who testifies against a man, must swear that he speaks the truth; the judges then proceed to take exact information of the matter; and, if it is found that the witness has sworn falsely, they compel him to undergo the punishment to which he would have exposed his neighbour. The discussion between the accuser and the accused is conducted before the whole assembly of the people. When a man is condemned to death, those witnesses whose evidence decided the sentence inflict the first blows, in order to add the last degree of certainty to their evidence. Hence the expression—Let him among you, who is without sin, cast the first stone.
If we pursue their application of these fundamental rules in practice, we shall find that a trial proceeded in the following manner.
On the day of the trial, the executive officers of justice caused the accused person to make his appearance. At the feet of the Elders were placed men who, under the name of auditors, or candidates, followed regularly the sittings of the Council. The papers in the case were read; and the witnesses were called in succession. The president addressed this exhortation to each of them: “It is not conjectures, or whatever public rumour has brought to thee, that we ask of thee; consider that a great responsibility rests upon thee: that we are not occupied by an affair, like a case of pecuniary interest, in which the injury may be repaired. If thou causest the condemnation of a person unjustly [pg 538] accused, his blood, and the blood of all the posterity of him, of whom thou wilt have deprived the earth, will fall upon thee; God will demand of thee an account, as he demanded of Cain an account of the blood of Abel. Speak.”
A woman could not be a witness, because she would not have the courage to give the first blow to the condemned person; nor could a child, that is irresponsible, nor a slave, nor a man of bad character, nor one whose infirmities prevent the full enjoyment of his physical and moral faculties. The simple confession of an individual against himself, or the declaration of a prophet, however renowned, would not decide a condemnation. The Doctors say—“We hold it as fundamental, that no one shall prejudice himself. If a man accuses himself before a tribunal, we must not believe him, unless the fact is attested by two other witnesses; and it is proper to remark, that the punishment of death inflicted upon Achan, in the time of Joshua399 was an exception, occasioned by the nature of the circumstances; for our law does not condemn upon the simple confession of the accused, nor upon the declaration of one prophet alone.”
The witnesses were to attest to the identity of the party, and to depose to the month, day, hour, and circumstances of the crime. After an examination of the proofs, those judges who believed the party innocent stated their reasons; those who believed him guilty spoke afterwards, and with the greatest moderation. If one of the auditors, or candidates, was entrusted by the accused with his defence, or if he wished in his own name to present any elucidations in favour of innocence, he was admitted to the seat, from which he addressed the judges and the people. But this liberty was not granted to him, if his opinion was in favour of condemning. Lastly; when the accused person himself wished to speak, they gave the most profound attention. When the discussion was finished, one of the judges recapitulated the case; they removed all the spectators; two scribes took down the votes of the judges; one of them noted those which were in favour of the accused, and the other, those which condemned him. Eleven votes, out of twenty-three, were sufficient to acquit; but it required thirteen to convict. If any [pg 539] of the judges stated that they were not sufficiently informed, there were added two more Elders, and then two others in succession, till they formed a council of sixty-two, which was the number of the Grand Council. If a majority of votes acquitted, the accused was discharged instantly; if he was to be punished, the judges postponed pronouncing sentence till the third day; during the intermediate day they could not be occupied with anything but the cause, and they abstained from eating freely, and from wine, liquors, and everything which might render their minds less capable of reflection.
On the morning of the third day they returned to the judgment seat. Each judge, who had not changed his opinion, said, I continue of the same opinion and condemn; any one, who at first condemned, might at this sitting acquit; but he who had once acquitted was not allowed to condemn. If a majority condemned, two magistrates immediately accompanied the condemned person to the place of punishment. The Elders did not descend from their seats; they placed at the entrance of the judgment hall an officer of justice with a small flag in his hand; a second officer, on horseback, followed the prisoner, and constantly kept looking back to the place of departure. During this interval, if any person came to announce to the Elders any new evidence favourable to the prisoner, the first officer waved his flag, and the second one, as soon as he perceived it, brought back the prisoner. If the prisoner declared to the magistrates, that he recollected some reasons which had escaped him, they brought him before the judges no less than five times. If no incident occurred, the procession advanced slowly, preceded by a herald who, in a loud voice, addressed the people thus: “This man (stating his name and surname) is led to punishment for such a crime; the witnesses who have sworn against him are such and such persons; if any one has evidence to give in his favour, let him come forth quickly.”
It was in consequence of this rule that the youthful Daniel caused the procession to go back, which was leading Susanna to punishment, and he himself ascended the seat of justice to put some new questions to the witnesses.
At some distance from the place of punishment, they urged [pg 540] the prisoner to confess his crime, and they made him drink a stupefying beverage, in order to render the approach of death less terrible.400
By this mere analysis of a part of Mr. Salvador's work we may judge of the extreme interest of the whole. His principal object has been, to make apparent the mutual aids which history, philosophy, and legislation afford in explaining the institutions of the Jewish people. His book is a scientific work, and at the same time a work of taste. His notes indicate vast reading; and in the choice of his citations he gives proofs of his critical skill and discrimination. Mr. Salvador belongs, by his age, to that new generation, which is distinguished as much by its application to solid studies, as by elevation and generosity of sentiment.
“The chapter, in which Mr. Salvador treats of the Administration of Justice among the Hebrews, is altogether theoretical. He makes an exposition of the law—that things, in order to be conformable to rule, must be transacted in a certain mode. In all this I have not contradicted him, but have let him speak for himself.
In the subsequent chapter the author announces: “That according to this exposition of judicial proceedings he is going to follow out the application of them to the most memorable trial in all history, that of Jesus Christ.” Accordingly the chapter is entitled: The Trial and Condemnation of Jesus.
The author first takes care to inform us under what point of view he intends to give an account of that accusation: “That we ought to lament the blindness of the Hebrews for not having recognised a God in Jesus, is a point which I do not examine.” (There is another thing also, which he says he shall not examine.) “But, when they discovered in him only a citizen, did they try him according to existing laws and formalities?”
The question being thus stated, Mr. Salvador goes over all the various aspects of the accusation; and his conclusion is, that the procedure was perfectly regular, and the condemnation perfectly appropriate to the act committed. “Now,” says he, (p. 87,) “the Senate, having adjudged that Jesus, the son of Joseph, born in Bethlehem, had profaned the name of God by usurping it himself, though a simple citizen, applied to him [pg 542] the law against blasphemy, the law in the 13th chapter of Deuteronomy, and verse 20, chapter 18th, conformably to which every prophet, even one that performs miracles, is to be punished when he speaks of a God unknown to the Hebrews or their fathers.”
This conclusion is formed to please the followers of the Jewish law; it is wholly for their benefit, and the evident object is, to justify them from the reproach of deïcide.
We will, however, avoid treating this grave subject in a theological point of view. As to myself, Jesus Christ is the Man-God; but it is not with arguments drawn from my religion and my creed, that I intend to combat the statement and the conclusion of Mr. Salvador. The present age would charge me with being intolerant; and this is a reproach which I will never incur. Besides, I do not wish to give to the enemies of Christianity the advantage of making the outcry, that we are afraid to enter into a discussion with them, and that we wish to crush rather than to convince them. Having thus contented myself with declaring my own faith, as Mr. Salvador has let us clearly understand his, I shall also examine the question under a merely human point of view, and proceed to inquire, with him, “Whether Jesus Christ, considered as a simple citizen, was tried according to the existing laws and formalities.”
The catholic religion itself warrants me in this; it is not a mere fiction; for God willed, that Jesus should be clothed in the forms of humanity (et homo factus est), and that he should undergo the lot and sufferings of humanity. The son of God, as to his moral state and his holy spirit, he was also, in reality, the Son of Man, for the purpose of accomplishing the mission which he came upon earth to fulfil.
This being the state of the question, then, I enter upon my subject; and I do not hesitate to affirm, because I will prove it, that, upon examining all the circumstances of this great trial, we shall be very far from discovering in it the application of those legal maxims, which are the safeguard of the rights of accused persons, and of which Mr. Salvador, in his chapter On the Administration of Justice, has made a seductive exposition.
The accusation of Jesus, instigated by the hatred of the [pg 543] priests and the Pharisees, and presented at first as a charge of sacrilege, but afterwards converted into a political crime and an offence against the state, was marked, in all its aspects, with the foulest acts of violence and perfidy. It was not so much a trial environed with legal forms, as a real passion, or prolonged suffering, in which the imperturbable gentleness of the victim displays more strongly the unrelenting ferocity of his persecutors.
When Jesus appeared among the Jews, that people was but the shadow of itself. Broken down by more than one subjugation, divided by factions and irreconcilable sects, they had in the last resort been obliged to succumb to the Roman power and surrender their own sovereignty. Jerusalem, having become a mere appendage to the province of Syria, saw within its walls an imperial garrison; Pilate commanded there, in the name of Cæsar; and the late people of God were groaning under the double tyranny of a conqueror, whose power they abhorred and whose idolatry they detested, and of a priesthood that exerted itself to keep them under the rigorous bonds of a religious fanaticism.
Jesus Christ deplored the misfortunes of his country. How often did he weep for Jerusalem! Read in Bossuet's Politics drawn from the Holy Scriptures, the admirable chapter entitled, Jesus Christ the good citizen. He recommended to his countrymen union, which constitutes the strength of states. “O Jerusalem, Jerusalem, (said he,) thou that killest the prophets and stonest them which are sent unto thee, how often would I have gathered thy children together, even as a hen gathereth her chickens under her wings, and ye would not!”
He was supposed to be not favorable to the Romans; but he only loved his own countrymen more. Witness the address of the Jews, who, in order to induce him to restore to the centurion a sick servant that was dear to him, used as the most powerful argument these words—that he was worthy for whom he should do this, for he loveth our nation. And Jesus went with them. Luke vii. 4, 5.
Touched with the distresses of the nation, Jesus comforted them by holding up to them the hope of another life; he alarmed the great, the rich, and the haughty, by the prospect of [pg 544] a final judgment, at which every man would be judged not according to his rank, but his works. He was desirous of again bringing back man to his original dignity; he spoke to him of his duties, but at the same time of his rights. The people heard him with avidity, and followed him with eagerness; his words affected them; his hand healed their diseases, and his moral teaching instructed them; he preached, and practised one virtue till then unknown, and which belongs to him alone—charity. This celebrity, however, and these wonders excited envy. The partisans of the ancient theocracy were alarmed at the new doctrine; the chief priests felt that their power was threatened; the pride of the Pharisees was humbled; the scribes came in as their auxiliaries, and the destruction of Jesus was resolved upon.
Now, if his conduct was reprehensible, if it afforded grounds for a legal accusation, why was not that course taken openly? Why not try him for the acts committed by him, and for his public discourses? Why employ against him subterfuges, artifice, perfidy, and violence? for such was the mode of proceeding against Jesus.
Let us now take up the subject, and look at the narratives which have come down to us. Let us, with Mr. Salvador, open the books of the Gospels; for he does not object to that testimony; nay, he relies upon it: “It is by the Gospels themselves,” says he, “that I shall establish all the facts.”
In truth, how can we (except by contrary evidence, of which there is none) refuse to place confidence in an historian, who tells us, as Saint John does, with affecting simplicity: “He that saw it bare record, and his record is true, and he knoweth that he saith true, that ye might believe.” John xix. 35.
Section I.—Spies, or Informers.
Who will not be surprised to find in this case the odious practice of employing hired informers? Branded with infamy, as they are in modern times, they will be still more so when we carry back their origin to the trial of Christ. It will be seen presently, whether I have not properly characterized by the [pg 545] name of hired informers those emissaries, whom the chief priests sent out to be about Jesus.
We read in the evangelist Luke, chap. xx. 20: Et observantes miserunt insidiatores, qui se justos simularent, ut caperent eum in sermone, et traderent illum principatui et potestati præsidis. I will not translate this text myself, but will take the language of a translator whose accuracy is well known, Mr. De Sacy: “As they only sought occasions for his destruction, they sent to him apostate persons who feigned themselves just men, in order to take hold of his words, that they might deliver him unto magistrate and into the power of the governor.” And Mr. De Sacy adds—“if there should escape from him the least word against the public authorities.”
This first artifice has escaped the sagacity of Mr. Salvador.
Section II.—The Corruption and Treachery of Judas.
According to Mr. Salvador, the senate, as he calls it, did not commence their proceedings by arresting Jesus, as would be done at the present day; but they began by passing a preliminary decree, that he should be arrested; and he cites, in proof of his assertion, St. John xi. 53, 54, and St. Matthew xxvi. 4, 5.
But St. John says nothing of this pretended decree. He speaks, too, not of a public sitting, but of a consultation held by the chief priests and the Pharisees, who did not, to my knowledge, constitute a judicial tribunal among the Jews. “Then gathered the chief priests and the Pharisees a council, and said, What do we? for this man doeth many miracles.” John xi. 47. They add: “If we let him thus alone, all men will believe on him,”—which imported also, in their minds, and they will no longer believe in us. Now, in this, I can readily perceive the fear of seeing the morals and doctrines of Jesus prevail; but where is the preliminary judgment, or decree? I cannot discover it.
“And one of them, named Caiaphas, being the high priest that same year, said unto them, Ye know nothing at all, nor [pg 546] consider, that it is expedient for us, that one man should die for the people ... and he prophesied, that Jesus should die for the nation of the Jews.” But to prophesy is not to pass judgment; and the individual opinion of Caiaphas, who was only one among them, was not the opinion of all, nor a judgment of the senate. We, therefore, still find a judgment wanting; and we only observe, that the priests and Pharisees are stimulated by a violent hatred of Jesus, and that “from that day forth they took counsel together for to put him to death; ut interficerent eum.” John xi. 53.
The authority of St. John, then, is directly in contradiction of the assertion, that there was an order of arrest previously passed by a regular tribunal.
St. Matthew, in relating the same facts, says, that the chief priests assembled at the palace of the high priest, who was called Caiaphas, and there held counsel together. But what counsel? and what was the result of it? Was it to issue an order of arrest against Jesus, that they might hear him and then pass sentence? Not at all; but they held counsel together, “that they might take Jesus by subtilty, or fraud, and kill him”; concilium fecerunt, ut Jesum DOLO tenerent et OCCIDERENT. Matt. xxvi. 5. Now in the Latin language, a language perfectly well constituted in everything relating to terms of the law, the words occidere and interficere were never employed to express the act of passing sentence, or judgment of death, but simply to signify murder or assassination.401
This fraud, by the aid of which they were to get Jesus into their power, was nothing but the bargain made between the chief priests and Judas.
Judas, one of the twelve, goes to find the chief priests, and says to them, What will ye give me, and I will deliver him unto you? Matt. xxvi. 14, 15. And they covenanted with him for thirty pieces of silver! Jesus, who foresaw his treachery, warned [pg 547] him of it mildly, in the midst of the Last Supper, where the voice of his master, in the presence of his brethren, should have touched him and awakened his reflections! But not so; wholly absorbed in his reward, Judas placed himself at the head of a gang of servants, to whom he was to point out Jesus; and, then, by a kiss consummated his treachery!402
Is it thus that a judicial decree was to be executed, if there had really been one made for the arrest of Jesus?
Section III.—Personal Liberty.—Resistance to an Armed Force.
The act was done in the night time. After having celebrated the Supper, Jesus had conducted his disciples to the Mount of Olives. He prayed fervently; but they fell asleep.
Jesus awakes them, with a gentle reproof for their weakness, and warns them that the moment is approaching. “Rise, let us be going; behold he is at hand that doth betray me.” Matt. xxvi. 46.
Judas was not alone; in his suite there was a kind of ruffian band, almost entirely composed of servants of the high priest, but whom Mr. Salvador honours with the title of the legal soldiery. If in the crowd there were any Roman soldiers, they were there as spectators, and without having been legally called on duty; for the Roman commanding officer, Pilate, had not yet heard the affair spoken of.
This personal seizure of Jesus had so much the appearance of a forcible arrest, an illegal act of violence, that his disciples made preparation to repel force by force.
Malchus, the insolent servant of the high priest, having [pg 548] shown himself the most eager to rush upon Jesus, Peter, not less zealous for his own master, cut off the servant's right ear.
This resistance might have been continued with success, if Jesus had not immediately interfered. But what proves that Peter, even while causing bloodshed, was not resisting a legal order, a legal judgment or decree, (which would have made his resistance an act of rebellion by an armed force against a judicial order,) is this—that he was not arrested, either at the moment or afterwards, at the house of the high priest, to which he followed Jesus, and where he was most distinctly recognised by the maid servant of the high priest, and even by a relative of Malchus.
Jesus alone was arrested; and although he had not individually offered any active resistance, and had even restrained that of his disciples, they bound him as a malefactor; which was a criminal degree of rigour, since for the purpose of securing a single man by a numerous band of persons armed with swords and staves it was not necessary. “Be ye come out as against a thief with swords and staves?” Luke xxii. 52.
Section IV.—Other Irregularities in the Arrest.—Seizure of the Person.
They dragged Jesus along with them; and, instead of taking him directly to the proper magistrate, they carried him before Annas, who had no other character than that of being father-in-law to the high priest. John xviii. 13. Now, if this was only for the purpose of letting him be seen by him, such a curiosity was not to be gratified; it was a vexatious proceeding, an irregularity.
From the house of Annas they led him to that of the high priest; all this time being bound. John xviii. 24. They placed him in the court yard; it was cold, and they made a fire; it was in the night time, but by the light of the fire Peter was recognised by the people of the palace.
Now the Jewish law prohibited all proceedings by night; here, therefore, there was another infraction of the law.
[pg 549]Under this state of things, his person being forcibly seized and detained in a private house, and delivered into the hands of servants, in the midst of a court, how was Jesus treated? St. Luke says, the men that held Jesus mocked him and smote him; and when they had blindfolded him, they struck him on the face, and asked him, saying, Prophesy, who is it that smote thee? And many other things blasphemously spake they against him. Luke xxii. 63, 64, 65.
Will it be said, as Mr. Salvador does, that all this took place out of the presence of the senate? Let us wait, in this instance, till the senate shall be called up, and we shall see how far they protected the accused person.
Section V.—Captious Interrogatories.—Acts of Violence towards Jesus.
Already had the cock crowed! But it was not yet day. The elders of the people and the chief priests and the scribes came together, and, having caused Jesus to appear before their council, they proceeded to interrogate him. Luke xxii. 66.
Now, in the outset, it should be observed, that if they had been less carried away by their hatred, they should, as it was the night time, not only have postponed, but put a stop to the proceedings, because it was the feast of the Passover, the most solemn of all festivals; and according to their law no judicial procedure could take place on a feast-day, under the penalty of being null.403 Nevertheless, let us see who proceeded to interrogate Jesus. This was that same Caiaphas, who, if he had intended to remain a judge, was evidently liable to objection; for in the preceding assemblage he had made himself the accuser of Jesus.404 Even before he had seen or heard him, he declared him to be deserving of death. He said to his colleagues, that “it was expedient that one man should die for all.” John xviii. 14. [pg 550] Such being the opinion of Caiaphas, we shall not be surprised, if he shows partiality.
Instead of interrogating Jesus respecting positive acts done, with their circumstances, and respecting facts personal to himself, Caiaphas interrogates him respecting general facts, respecting his disciples (whom it would have been much more simple to have called as witnesses), and respecting his doctrine, which was a mere abstraction so long as no external acts were the consequence of it. “The high priest then asked Jesus of his disciples and of his doctrine.” John xviii. 19.
Jesus answered with dignity: “I spake openly to the world; I ever taught in the synagogue and in the temple, whither the Jews always resort; and in secret have I said nothing.” Ib. 20.
“Why askest thou me? Ask them which heard me, what I have said unto them; behold, they know what I said.” Ib. 21.
“And when he had thus spoken, one of the officers which stood by struck Jesus with the palm of his hand, saying, Answerest thou the high priest so?” Ib. 22.
Will it here be still said, that this violence was the individual act of the person who thus struck the accused? I answer, that on this occasion the fact took place in the presence and under the eyes of the whole council; and, as the high priest who presided did not restrain the author of it, I come to the conclusion, that he became an accomplice, especially when this violence was committed under the pretence of avenging the alleged affront to his dignity.
But in what respect could the answer of Jesus appear offensive? “If I have spoken evil,” said Jesus, “bear witness of the evil; but if well, why smitest thou me?”405 John xviii. 23.
There remained no mode of escaping from this dilemma. They accused Jesus; it was for those, who accused, to prove their accusation. An accused person is not obliged to criminate himself. He should have been convicted by proofs; he himself called for them. Let us see what witnesses were produced against him.
[pg 551]Section VI.—Witnesses.—New Interrogatories.—The Judge in a Passion.
“And the chief priests and all the council sought for witness against Jesus to put him to death; and found none.” Mark xiv. 55.
“For many bare false witness against him, but their witness agreed not together.” Ib. 56.
“And there arose certain, and bare false witness against him, saying, We heard him say, I will destroy this temple that is made with hands, and within three days I will build another made without hands.” Ib. 57, 58.
“But (to the same point still) neither so did their witness agree together.” Ib. 59.
Mr. Salvador, on this subject, says, p. 87: “The two witnesses, whom St. Matthew and St. Mark charge with falsehood, narrate a discourse which St. John declares to be true, so far as respects the power which Jesus Christ attributed to himself.”
This alleged contradiction among the Evangelists does not exist. In the first place, St. Matthew does not say that the discourse was had by Jesus. In chapter xxvi. 61, he states the depositions of the witnesses, but saying at the same time that they were false witnesses; and in chapter xxvii. 40, he puts the same declaration into the mouth of those who insulted Jesus at the foot of the cross; but he does not put it into the mouth of Christ. He is in accordance with St. Mark.
St. John, chapter ii. 19, makes Jesus speak in these words: “Jesus answered and said unto them, Destroy this temple, and in three days I will raise it up.” And St. John adds: “He spake of the temple of his body.”
Thus Jesus did not say in an affirmative and somewhat menacing manner, I will destroy this temple, as the witnesses falsely assumed; he only said, hypothetically, Destroy this temple, that is to say, suppose this temple should be destroyed, I will raise it up in three days. Besides, they could not dissemble, that he referred to a temple altogether different [pg 552] from theirs, because he said, I will raise up another in three days, which will not be made by the hands of man.
It hence results, at least, that the Jews did not understand him, for they cried out, “Forty and six years was this temple in building, and wilt thou rear it up in three days?”
Thus, then, the witnesses did not agree together, and their declarations had nothing conclusive. Mark xiv. 59. We must, therefore, look for other proofs.
“Then the high priest, (we must not forget, that he is still the accuser,) the high priest stood up in the midst, and asked Jesus, saying, Answerest thou nothing? what is it, which these witness against thee? But he held his peace, and answered nothing.” Mark xiv. 60. In truth, since the question was not concerning the temple of the Jews, but an ideal temple, not made by the hand of man, and which was alone in the thoughts of Jesus, the explanation was to be found in the very evidence itself.
The high priest continued: “I adjure thee, by the living God, that thou tell us, whether thou be the Christ, the Son of God.” Matt. xxvi. 63. I adjure thee, I call upon thee on oath! a gross infraction of that rule of morals and jurisprudence, which forbids our placing an accused person between the danger of perjury and the fear of inculpating himself, and thus making his situation more hazardous. The high priest, however, persists, and says to him: Art thou the Christ, the Son of God?406 Jesus answered, Thou hast said. Matthew xxvi. 64; I am. Mark xiv. 62.
“Then the high priest rent his clothes, saying, He hath spoken blasphemy; what further need have we of witnesses? behold, now ye have heard his blasphemy. What think ye? They answered and said, He is guilty of death.” Matt. xxvi. 66.
Let us now compare this scene of violence with the mild deduction of principles, which we find in the chapter of Mr. Salvador On the Administration of Justice; and let us ask ourselves, [pg 553] if, as he alleges, we find a just application of them in the proceedings against Christ?
Do we discover here that respect of the Hebrew judge towards the party accused, when we see that Caiaphas permitted him to be struck, in his presence, with impunity?
What was this Caiaphas, at once an accuser and judge?407 A passionate man, and too much resembling the odious portrait which the historian Josephus has given us of him!408 A judge, who was irritated to such a degree, that he rent his clothes; who imposed upon the accused a most solemn oath, and who gave to his answers the criminal character, that he had spoken blasphemy! And, from that moment, he wanted no more witnesses, notwithstanding the law required them. He would not have an inquiry, which he perceived would be insufficient; he attempts to supply it by captious questions. He is desirous of having him condemned upon his own declaration alone, (interpreted, too, as he chooses to understand it,) though that was forbidden by the laws of the Hebrews! And, in the midst of a most violent transport of passion, this accuser himself, a high priest, who means to speak in the name of the living God, is the first to pass sentence of death, and carries with him the opinions of the rest!
In this hideous picture I cannot recognise that justice of the Hebrews, of which Mr. Salvador has given so fine a view in his theory!
Section VII.—Subsequent Acts of Violence.
Immediately after this kind of sacerdotal verdict rendered against Jesus, the acts of violence and insults recommenced with increased strength; the fury of the judge must have communicated itself to the bystanders. St. Matthew says: “Then did they spit in his face, and buffeted him; and others smote him with the palms of their hands, saying, Prophesy unto us, thou Christ; who is he that smote thee?” Matt. xxvi. 67, 68.
[pg 554]Mr. Salvador does not contest the truth of this ill treatment. In page 88 he says, “It was contrary to the spirit of the Hebrew law, and that it was not according to the order of nature, that a senate composed of the most respectable men of a nation,—that a senate, which might perhaps be mistaken, but which thought it was acting mildly, should have permitted such outrages against him whose life it held in its own hands. The writers who have transmitted these details to us, not having been present themselves at the trial, were disposed to overcharge the picture, either on account of their own feelings, or to throw upon their judges a greater odium.”
I repeat; this ill treatment was entirely contrary to the spirit of the law. And what do I want more, since my object is to make prominent all the violations of law.
“It is not in nature to see a body, which respects itself, authorize such attempts.” But of what consequence is that, when the fact is established? “The historians, it is said, were not present at the trial.” But was Mr. Salvador there present himself, so that he could give a flat denial of their statements? And when even an able writer, who was not an eye-witness, relates the same events after the lapse of more than eighteen centuries, he ought at least to bring opposing evidence, if he would impeach that of contemporaries; who, if they were not in the very hall of the council, were certainly on the spot, in the vicinity, perhaps in the court yard, inquiring anxiously of every thing that was happening to the man whose disciples they were.409 Besides, the learned author whom I am combating says, in the outset (p. 81), “it is from the Gospels themselves that he will take all his facts.” He must then take the whole together, as well those which go to condemn, as those which are in palliation or excuse.
Those gross insults, those inhuman acts of violence, even if they are to be cast upon the servants of the high priest and the persons in his train, do not excuse those individuals, who, when they took upon themselves the authority of judges, were bound [pg 555] at the same time to throw around him all the protection of the law. Caiaphas, too, was culpable as the master of the house (for every thing took place in his house), even if he should not be responsible as high priest and president of the council for having permitted excesses, which, indeed were but too much in accordance with the rage he had himself displayed upon the bench.
These outrages, which would be inexcusable even towards a man irrevocably condemned to punishment, were the more criminal towards Jesus, because, legally and judicially speaking, there had not yet been any sentence properly passed against him according to the public law of the country; as we shall see in the following section, which will deserve the undivided attention of the reader.
Section VIII.—The Position of the Jews in respect to the Romans.
We must not forget, that Judea was a conquered country. After the death of Herod—most inappropriately surnamed the Great—Augustus had confirmed his last will, by which that king of the Jews had arranged the division of his dominions between his two sons: but Augustus did not continue their title of king, which their father had borne.
Archeläus, on whom Judea devolved, having been recalled on account of his cruelties, the territory, which was at first intrusted to his command, was united to the province of Syria. (Josephus, Antiq. Jud. lib. 17, cap. 15.)
Augustus then appointed particular officers for Judea. Tiberius did the same; and at the time of which we are speaking, Pilate was one of those officers. (Josephus, lib. 18, cap. 3 & 8.)
Some have considered Pilate as governor, by title, and have given him the Latin appellation, Præses, president or governor. But they have mistaken the force of the word. Pilate was one of those public officers, who were called by the Romans, procuratores Cæsaris, Imperial procurators. [pg 556] With this title of procurator, he was placed under the superior authority of the governor of Syria, the true præses, or governor of that province, of which Judea was then only one of the dependencies.
To the governor (præses) peculiarly belonged the right of taking cognizance of capital cases.410 The procurator, on the contrary, had, for his principal duty, nothing but the collection of the revenue, and the trial of revenue causes. But the right of taking cognizance of capital cases did, in some instances, belong to certain procurators, who were sent into small provinces to fill the places of governors (vice præsides), as appears clearly from the Roman laws.411 Such was Pilate at Jerusalem.412
The Jews, placed in this political position—notwithstanding they were left in the enjoyment of their civil laws, the public exercise of their religion, and many things merely relating to their police and municipal regulations—the Jews, I say, had not the power of life and death; this was a principal attribute of sovereignty, which the Romans always took great care to reserve to themselves, even if they neglected other things. Apud Romanos, jus valet gladii; cætera transmittuntur. Tacit.
What then was the right of the Jewish authorities in regard to Jesus? Without doubt the scribes, and their friends the Pharisees, might well have been alarmed, as a body and individually, at the preaching and success of Jesus; they might be concerned for their worship; and they might have interrogated the man respecting his creed and his doctrines,—they might have made a kind of preparatory proceeding,—they might have declared, in point of fact, that those doctrines, which threatened their own, were contrary to their law, as understood by themselves.
[pg 557]But that law, although it had not undergone any alteration as to the affairs of religion, had no longer any coercive power as to the external or civil regulations of society. In vain would they have undertaken to pronounce sentence of death under the circumstances of the case of Jesus; the council of the Jews had not the power to pass a sentence of death; it only would have had power to make an accusation against him before the governor, or his deputy, and then deliver him over to be tried by him.
Let us distinctly establish this point; for here I entirely differ in opinion from Mr. Salvador. According to him, (p. 88), “the Jews had reserved the power of trying, according to their law; but it was in the hands of the procurator alone, that the executive power was vested; every culprit must be put to death by his consent, in order that the senate should not have the means of reaching persons that were sold to foreigners.”
No; the Jews had not reserved the right of passing sentence of death. This right had been transferred to the Romans by the very act of conquest; and this was not merely that the senate should not have the means of reaching persons who were sold to foreign countries; but it was done, in order that the conqueror might be able to reach those individuals who should become impatient of the yoke; it was, in short, for the equal protection of all, as all had become Roman subjects; and to Rome alone belonged the highest judicial power, which is the principal attribute of sovereignty. Pilate, as the representative of Cæsar in Judea, was not merely an agent of the executive authority, which would have left the judiciary and legislative power in the hands of the conquered people—he was not simply an officer appointed to give an exequatur or mere approval (visa) to sentences passed by another authority, the authority of the Jews. When the matter in question was a capital case, the Roman authorities not only ordered the execution of a sentence, but also took cognizance (cognitio) of the crime; it had the right of jurisdiction à priori, and that of passing judgment in the last resort. If Pilate himself had not had this power by special delegation, vice præsidis, it was vested in the governor, within whose territorial jurisdiction the case occurred; [pg 558] but in any event we hold it to be clear, that the Jews had lost the right of condemning to death any person whatever, not only so far as respects the execution but the passing of the sentence. This is one of the best settled points in the provincial law of the Romans.
The Jews were not ignorant of this; for when they went before Pilate, to ask of him the condemnation of Jesus, they themselves declared, that it was not permitted to them to put any person to death: “It is not lawful for us to put any man to death.” John xviii. 31.
Here I am happy to be able to support myself by the opinion of a very respectable authority, the celebrated Loiseau, in his treatise on Seigneuries, in the chapter on the administration of justice belonging to cities. “In truth,” says he, “there is some evidence, that the police, in which the people had the sole interest, was administered by officers of the people; but I know not upon what were founded the concessions of power to some cities of France to exercise criminal jurisdiction; nor why the Ordinance of Moulins left that to them rather than civil cases; for the criminal jurisdiction is the right of the sword, the merum imperium, or absolute sovereignty. Accordingly, by the Roman law, the administration of justice was so far prohibited to the officers of cities, that they could not punish even by a simple fine. Thus it is doubtless that we must understand that passage of the Gospel, where the Jews say to Pilate, It is not lawful for us to put any man to death; for, after they were subjected to the Romans, they had not jurisdiction of crimes.”
Let us now follow Jesus to the presence of Pilate.
Section IX.—The Accusation made before Pilate.
At this point I must entreat the particular attention of the reader. The irregularities and acts of violence, which I have hitherto remarked upon, are nothing in comparison with the unbridled fury, which is about to display itself before the Roman Judge, in order to extort from him, against his own conviction, a sentence of death.
[pg 559]“And straightway in the morning the chief priests held a consultation with the elders, and scribes, and the whole council, and bound Jesus, and carried him away, and delivered him to Pilate.” Mark xv. 1.
As soon as the morning was come; for, as I have observed already, every thing which had been done thus far against Jesus was done during the night.
They then led Jesus from Caiaphas unto the Hall of Judgment of Pilate.413 It was early; and they themselves went not into the judgment hall, lest they should be defiled; but that they might eat the passover. John xviii. 28.
Singular scrupulousness! and truly worthy of the Pharisees! They were afraid of defiling themselves on the day of the passover by entering the house of a heathen! And yet, the same day, only some hours before presenting themselves to Pilate, they had, in contempt of their own law, committed the outrage of holding a council and deliberating upon an accusation of a capital crime.
As they would not enter, “Pilate went out to them.” John xviii. 29. Now observe his language. He did not say to them, Where is the sentence you have passed; as he must have done, if he was only to give them his simple exequatur, or permission to execute the sentence; but he takes up the matter from the beginning, as would be done by one who had plenary jurisdiction; and he says to them: What accusation bring ye against this man?
They answered, with their accustomed haughtiness: If he were not a malefactor we would not have delivered him up to thee. John xviii. 30. They wished to have it understood, that, being a question of blasphemy, it was the cause of their religion, which they could appreciate better than any others could. Pilate, then, would have been under the necessity of believing them on their word. But this Roman, indignant at their proposed course of proceeding, which would have restricted his jurisdiction by making him the passive instrument of the wishes of the Jews, answered them in an ironical manner: [pg 560] Well, since you say he has sinned against your law, take him yourselves and judge him according to your law. John xviii. 31. This was an absolute mystification to them, for they knew their own want of power to condemn him to death. But they were obliged to yield the point, and to submit to Pilate himself their articles of accusation.
Now what were the grounds of this accusation? Were they the same which had hitherto been alleged against Jesus—the charge of blasphemy—which was the only one brought forward by Caiaphas before the council of the Jews? Not at all; despairing of obtaining from the Roman judge a sentence of death for a religious quarrel, which was of no interest to the Romans,414 they suddenly changed their plan; they abandoned their first accusation, the charge of blasphemy, and substituted for it a political accusation, an offence against the state.
Here we have the very crisis, or essential incident, of the passion; and that which makes the heaviest accusation of guilt on the part of the informers against Jesus. For, being fully bent on destroying him in any manner whatever, they no longer exhibited themselves as the avengers of their religion, which was alleged to have been outraged, or of their worship, which it was pretended was threatened; but, ceasing to appear as Jews, in order to affect sentiments belonging to a foreign nation, those hypocrites held out the appearance of being concerned for the interests of Rome; they accused their own countryman of an intention to restore the kingdom of Jerusalem, to make himself king of the Jews, and to make an insurrection of the people against their conquerors. Let us hear them speak for themselves:
“And they began to accuse him, saying, We found this fellow perverting the nation, and forbidding to give tribute to Cæsar, saying, that he himself is Christ a king.” Luke xxiii. 2.
What a calumny! Jesus forbidding to give tribute to Cæsar! when he had answered the Pharisees themselves, in presence of the whole people, by showing them the image of Cæsar upon a [pg 561] Roman piece of money, and saying, Give unto Cæsar the things which are Cæsar's. But this accusation was one mode of interesting Pilate in respect to his jurisdiction; for, as an imperial procurator, he was specially to superintend the collection of the revenue. The second branch of the accusation still more directly affected the sovereignty of the Romans: “He holds himself up for a king.”
The accusation having thus assumed a character purely political, Pilate thought he must pay attention to it. “Then Pilate entered into the judgment hall,” (the place where justice was administered,) and having summoned Jesus to appear before him, he proceeds to his Examination, and says to him: “Art thou the king of the Jews?” John xviii. 33.
This question, so different from those which had been addressed to him at the house of the high priest, appears to have excited the astonishment of Jesus; and, in his turn, he asked Pilate: “Sayest thou this thing of thyself, or did others tell it thee of me?” Ib. 24. In reality, Jesus was desirous of knowing, first of all, the authors of this new accusation—Is this an accusation brought against me by the Romans or by the Jews?
Pilate replied to him—“Am I a Jew? Thine own nation and the chief priests have delivered thee unto me; what hast thou done?” Ib. 35.
All the particulars of this procedure are important; I cannot too often repeat the remark, that in no part of the transactions before Pilate is there any question at all respecting a previous sentence, a judgment already passed—a judgment, the execution of which was the only subject of consideration; it was a case of a capital accusation; but an accusation which was then just beginning; they were about the preliminary interrogatories put to the accused, and Pilate says to him, “What hast thou done?”
Jesus, seeing by the explanation what was the source of the prejudging of his case, and knowing the secret thoughts which predominated in making the accusation, and that his enemies wanted to arrive at the same end by an artifice, answered Pilate—“My kingdom is not of this world; if my kingdom were of this world, then would my servants fight, that I should not be delivered to the Jews;” (we see, in fact, that Jesus had forbidden [pg 562] his people to resist) but, he added, “now is my kingdom not from hence.” John xviii. 36.
This answer of Jesus is very remarkable; it became the foundation of his religion, and the pledge of its universality, because it detached it from the interests of all governments. It rests not merely in assertion, in doctrine; it was given in justification, in defence against the accusation of intending to make himself King of the Jews. Indeed, if Jesus had affected a temporal royal authority, if there had been the least attempt, on his part, to usurp the power of Cæsar, he would have been guilty of treason in the eyes of the magistrate. But, by answering twice, my kingdom is not of this world, my kingdom is not from hence, his justification was complete.
Pilate, however, persisted and said to him: “Art thou a king then?” Jesus replied, Thou sayest that I am a king. To this end was I born, and for this cause came I into the world, that I should bear witness unto the truth. Every one that is of the truth heareth my voice. John xviii. 37.
Pilate then said to him: What is the truth?
This question proves, that Pilate had not a very clear idea of what Jesus called the truth. He perceived nothing in it but ideology; and, satisfied with having said (less in the manner of a question than of an exclamation) “What is the truth,” he went on to the Jews (who remained outside) and said to them, “I find in him no fault at all.” John xviii. 38.
Here, then, we see Jesus absolved from the accusation by the declaration of the Roman judge himself.
But the accusers, persisting still farther, added—“He stirreth up the people, teaching throughout all Jewry, beginning from Galilee to this place.” Luke xxiii. 5.
“He stirreth up the people!” This is a charge of sedition; and for Pilate. But observe, it was by the doctrine which he teaches; these words comprehend the real complaint of the Jews. To them it was equivalent to saying—He teaches the people, he instructs them, he enlightens them; he preaches new doctrines which are not ours. “He stirs up the people!” This, in their months signified—the people hear him willingly; the people follow and become attached to him; for he preaches a doctrine [pg 563] that is friendly and consolatory to the people; he unmasks our pride, our avarice, our insatiable spirit of domination!
Pilate, however, does not appear to have attached much importance to this new turn given to the accusation; but he here betrays a weakness. He heard the word Galilee; and he makes that the occasion of shifting off the responsibility upon another public officer, and seizes the occasion with avidity. He says to Jesus—you are a Galilean then? and, upon the answer being in the affirmative, considering Jesus as belonging to the jurisdiction of Herod-Antipas, who, by the good pleasure of Cæsar, was then tetrarch of Galilee, he sent him to Herod. Luke xxiii. 6, 7.
But Herod, who, as St. Luke says, had been long desirous of seeing Jesus and had hoped to see some miracle done by him, after satisfying an idle curiosity and putting several questions to him, which Jesus did not deign to answer,—Herod, notwithstanding the presence of the priests, (who had not yet gone off, but stood there with their scribes,) and notwithstanding the pertinacity with which they continued to accuse Jesus, perceiving nothing but what was merely chimerical in the accusation of being a king, made a mockery of the affair, and sent Jesus back to Pilate, after having arrayed him in a gorgeous robe, in order to show that he thought this pretended royalty was a subject of ridicule rather than of apprehensions. Luke xxiii. 8, &c., and De Sacy. Ib.
Section X.—The Last Efforts before Pilate.
No person, then, was willing to condemn Jesus; neither Herod, who only made the case a subject of mockery, nor Pilate, who had openly declared that he found nothing criminal in him.
But the hatred of the priests was not disarmed—so far from it, that the chief priests, with a numerous train of their partisans, returned to Pilate with a determination to force him to a decision.
The unfortunate Pilate, reviewing his proceedings in their presence, said to them again: “Ye have brought this man unto me as one that perverteth the people—and, behold, I, having [pg 564] examined him before you, have found no fault in this man touching those things whereof ye accuse him: No, nor yet Herod; for I sent you to him, and lo, nothing worthy of death is done unto him. I will therefore chastise him and release him.” Luke xxiii. 14, 15.
After “chastising” him! And was not this a piece of cruelty, when he considered him to be innocent?415 But this was an act of condescension by which Pilate hoped to quiet the rage with which he saw they were agitated.
“Then Pilate therefore took Jesus and scourged him.” John xix. 1. And, supposing that he had done enough to disarm their fury, he exhibited him to them in that pitiable condition; saying to them at the same time, Behold the man! Ecce homo. John xix. 5.
Now, in my turn, I say, here is indeed a decree of Pilate, and an unjust decree; but it is not the pretended decree alleged to have been made by the Jews. It is a decision wholly different; an unjust decision, it is true; but sufficient to avail as a legal bar to any new proceedings against Jesus for the same act. Non bis in idem, no man shall be put twice in jeopardy, &c. is a maxim, which has come down to us from the Romans.
Accordingly, “from thenceforth Pilate sought to release Jesus.” John xix. 12.
Here, now, observe the deep perfidy of his accusers. “If thou let this man go, thou art not Cæsar's friend; whosoever maketh himself a king speaketh against Cæsar.” Ib.
It does not appear that Pilate was malignant; we see all the efforts he had made at different times to save Jesus. But he was a public officer, and was attached to his office; he was intimidated by the outcry which called in question his fidelity to the emperor; he was afraid of a dismissal: and he yielded. He immediately reascended the judgment-seat; (Matt. xxvii. 19), and, as new light had thus come upon him, he proceeded to make a second decree!
[pg 565]But being for a moment stopped by the voice of his own conscience, and by the advice which his terrified wife sent to him—“Have thou nothing to do with that just man”—(Matt. xxvii. 19)—he made his last effort, by attempting to influence the populace to accept of Barabbas instead of Jesus. “But the chief priests moved the people, that he should rather release Barabbas unto them.” Mark xv. 11. Barabbas! a murderer! an assassin!
Pilate spoke to them again: What will ye then, that I should do with Jesus? And they cried out, Away with him, crucify him. Pilate still persisted: Shall I crucify your king? thus using terms of raillery, in order to disarm them. But here showing themselves to be more truly Roman than Pilate himself, the chief priests hypocritically answered: We have no king but Cæsar. John xix. 15.
The outcry was renewed—Crucify him, crucify him! And the clamour became more and more threatening; “and the voices of them and of the chief priests prevailed.” Luke xxiii. 23.
At length Pilate, being desirous of pleasing the multitude, proceeds to speak. But can we call it a legal adjudication, a judgment, that he is about to pronounce? Is he, at the moment, in that free state of mind which is necessary for a judge, who is about to pass a sentence of death? What new witnesses, what proofs have been brought forward to change his conviction and opinion, which had been so energetically declared, of the innocence of Jesus?
“When Pilate saw that he could prevail nothing, but that rather a tumult was made, he took water and washed his hands before the multitude, saying, I am innocent of the blood of this just person; see ye to it. Matt. xxvii. 24. And Pilate gave sentence, that it should be as they required. Luke xxiii. 24. And he delivered him to them to be crucified.” Matt. xxvii. 26.
Well mayest thou wash thy hands, Pilate, stained as they are with innocent blood! Thou hast authorised the act in thy weakness; thou art not less culpable, than if thou hadst sacrificed him through wickedness! All generations, down to our [pg 566] own time, have repeated that the Just One suffered under Pontius Pilate. Thy name has remained in history, to serve for the instruction of all public men, all pusillanimous judges, in order to hold up to them the shame of yielding contrary to one's own convictions. The populace, in its fury, made an outcry at the foot of thy judgment-seat, where, perhaps, thou thyself didst not sit securely! But of what importance was that? Thy duty spoke out; and in such a case, better would it be to suffer death, than to inflict it on another.416
We will now come to a conclusion.
The proof that Jesus was not, as Mr. Salvador maintains, put to death for the crime of blasphemy or sacrilege, and for having preached a new religious worship in contravention of the Mosaic law, results from the very sentence pronounced by Pilate; a sentence, in pursuance of which he was led to execution by Roman soldiers.
There was among the Romans a custom, which we borrowed from their jurisprudence, and which is still followed, of placing over the head of a condemned criminal a writing containing an extract from his sentence, in order that the public might know for what crime he was condemned. This was the reason why Pilate put on the cross a label, on which he had written these words: Jesus Nazarenus Rex Judæorum, (Jesus of Nazareth, King of the Jews), which has since been denoted by the initials J. N. R. J. This was the alleged cause of his condemnation. St. Mark says—“And the superscription of his accusation was written over—The King of the Jews.” Mark xv. 26.
This inscription was first in Latin, which was the legal language of the Roman judge; and it was repeated in Hebrew and [pg 567] Greek, in order to be understood by the people of the nation and by foreigners.
The chief priests, whose indefatigable hatred did not overlook the most minute details, being apprehensive that people would take it to be literally a fact affirmed, that Jesus was the King of the Jews, said to Pilate: “Write not King of the Jews, but that he said I am king of the Jews.” But Pilate answered: “What I have written I have written.” John xix. 21, 22.
This is a conclusive answer to one of the last assertions of Mr. Salvador, (p. 88,) that “the Roman Pilate signed the sentence;” by which he always means that Pilate did nothing but sign a sentence, which he supposes to have been passed by the Sanhedrim; but in this he is mistaken. Pilate did not merely sign the sentence, or decree, but drew it up; and, when his draft was objected to by the priests, he still adhered to it, saying, what I have written shall remain as written.
Here then we see the true cause of the condemnation of Jesus! Here we have the “judicial and legal proof.” Jesus was the victim of a political accusation! He was put to death for the imaginary crime of having aimed at the power of Cæsar, by calling himself King of the Jews! Absurd accusation; which Pilate never believed, and which the chief priests and the Pharisees themselves did not believe. For they were not authorized to arrest Jesus on that account; it was a new, and totally different, accusation from that which they first planned—a sudden accusation of the moment, when they saw that Pilate was but little affected by their religious zeal, and they found it necessary to arouse his zeal for Cæsar.
“If thou let this man go, thou art not Cæsar's friend!” This alarming language has too often, since that time, reverberated in the ears of timid judges, who, like Pilate, have rendered themselves criminal by delivering up victims through want of firmness, whom they would never have condemned, if they had listened to the voice of their own consciences.
Let us now recapitulate the case, as I have considered it from the beginning.
Is it not evident, contrary to the conclusion of Mr. Salvador, that Jesus, considered merely as a simple citizen, was not tried and [pg 568] sentenced either according to law, or agreeably to the forms of legal proceedings then existing?
God, according to his eternal design, might permit the just to suffer by the malice of men; but he also intended, that this should at least happen by a disregard of all laws, and by a violation of all established rules, in order that the entire contempt of forms should stand as the first warning of the violation of law.
Let us not be surprised then, that in another part of his work, Mr. Salvador (who, it is gratifying to observe, discusses his subject dispassionately) expresses some regret in speaking of the “unfortunate sentence against Jesus.” Vol. i. p. 59. He has wished to excuse the Hebrews; but, one of that nation, in giving utterance to the feelings of his heart, still says—in language which I took from his own mouth, “We should be very cautious of condemning him at this day.”
I pass over the excesses which followed the order of Pilate; as, the violence shown to Simon, the Cyrenian, who was made in some degree a sharer in the punishment, by being compelled to carry the cross; the injurious treatment which attended the victim to the place of the sacrifice, and even to the cross, where Jesus still prayed for his brethren and his executioners!
To the heathen themselves I would say—You, who have gloried in the death of Socrates, how much must you be struck with wonder at that of Jesus! Ye, censors of the Areopagus, how could you undertake to excuse the Synagogue, and justify the sentence of the Hall of Judgment? Philosophy herself has not hesitated to proclaim, and we may repeat with her—“Yes, if the life and death of Socrates were those of a sage, the life and death of Jesus were those of a divinity.”
Mr. Hume's argument is thus refuted by Lord Brougham. “Here are two answers, to which the doctrine proposed by Mr. Hume is exposed, and either appears sufficient to shake it.
“First—Our belief in the uniformity of the laws of nature rests not altogether upon our own experience. We believe no man ever was raised from the dead,—not merely because we ourselves never saw it, for indeed that would be a very limited ground of deduction; and our belief was fixed on the subject long before we had any considerable experience,—fixed chiefly by authority,—that is, by deference to other men's experience. We found our confident belief in this negative position partly, perhaps chiefly, upon the testimony of others; and at all events, our belief that in times before our own the same position held good, must of necessity be drawn from our trusting relations of other men—that is, it depends upon the evidence of testimony. If, then, the existence of the law of nature is proved, in great part at least, by such evidence, can we wholly reject the like evidence when it comes to prove an exception to the rule—a deviation from the law? The more numerous are the cases of the law being kept—the more rare those of its being broken—the more scrupulous certainly ought we to be in admitting the proofs of the breach. But that testimony is capable of making good the proof there seems no doubt. In truth, the degree of excellence and of strength to which testimony may arise seems almost indefinite. There is hardly any cogency which it is not capable by possible supposition of attaining. The endless multiplication of witnesses,—the unbounded variety of their habits of thinking, their prejudices, their interests,—afford the means of conceiving the force of their testimony, augmented ad infinitum, because these circumstances afford the means of diminishing indefinitely the chances of their being mistaken, all misled, or all combining to deceive us. Let any man try to calculate the chances of a thousand persons who come from different quarters, and never saw each other before, and who all vary in their habits, stations, opinions, interests,—being mistaken or combining to deceive us, when they give the same account of an event as having happened before their eyes,—these chances are many hundreds of thousands to one. And yet we can conceive them multiplied indefinitely; for one hundred thousand such witnesses may in all like manner bear the same testimony; and they may all tell us their story within twenty-four hours after the transaction, and in the next parish. And yet, according to Mr. Hume's argument, we are bound to disbelieve them all, because they speak to a thing contrary to our own experience, and to the accounts which other witnesses had formerly given us of the law of nature, and which our forefathers had handed down to us as derived from witnesses who lived in the old time before them. It is unnecessary to add that no testimony of the witnesses, whom we are supposing to concur in their relation, contradicts any testimony of our own senses. If it did, the argument would resemble Archbishop Tillotson's upon the Real Presence, and our disbelief would be at once warranted.
“Secondly—This leads us to the next objection to which Mr. Hume's argument is liable, and which we have in part anticipated while illustrating the first. He requires us to withhold our belief in circumstances which would force every man of common understanding to lend his assent, and to act upon the supposition of the story told being true. For, suppose either such numbers of various witnesses as we have spoken of; or, what is perhaps stronger, suppose a miracle reported to us, first by a number of relators, and then by three or four of the very soundest judges and most incorruptibly honest men we know,—men noted for their difficult belief of wonders, and, above all, steady unbelievers in miracles, without any bias in favour of religion, but rather accustomed to doubt, if not disbelieve,—most people would lend an easy belief to any miracles thus vouched. But let us add this circumstance, that a friend on his death-bed had been attended by us, and that we had told him a fact known only to ourselves,—something that we had secretly done the very moment before we told it to the dying man, and which to no other being we had ever revealed,—and that the credible witnesses we are supposing, informed us that the deceased appeared to them, conversed with them, remained with them a day or two, accompanying them, and to avouch the fact of his reappearance on this earth, communicated to them the secret of which we had made him the sole depository the moment before his death;—according to Mr. Hume, we are bound rather to believe, not only that those credible witnesses deceive us, or that those sound and unprejudiced men were themselves deceived, and fancied things without real existence, but further, that they all hit by chance upon the discovery of a real secret, known only to ourselves and the dead man. Mr. Hume's argument requires us to believe this as the lesser improbability of the two—as less unlikely than the rising of one from the dead; and yet every one must feel convinced, that were he placed in the situation we have been figuring, he would not only lend his belief to the relation, but if the relators accompanied it with a special warning from the deceased person to avoid a certain contemplated act, he would, acting upon the belief of their story, take the warning, and avoid doing the forbidden deed. Mr. Hume's argument makes no exception. This is its scope; and whether he chooses to push it thus far or no, all miracles are of necessity denied by it, without the least regard to the kind or the quantity of the proof on which they are rested; and the testimony which we have supposed, accompanied by the test or check we have supposed, would fall within the grasp of the argument just as much and as clearly as any other miracle avouched by more ordinary combinations of evidence.
“The use of Mr. Hume's argument is this, and it is an important and a valuable one. It teaches us to sift closely and rigorously the evidence for miraculous events. It bids us remember that the probabilities are always, and must always be incomparably greater against, than for, the truth of these relations, because it is always far more likely that the testimony should be mistaken or false, than that the general laws of nature should be suspended. Further than this the doctrine cannot in soundness of reason be carried. It does not go the length of proving that those general laws cannot, by the force of human testimony, be shown to have been, in a particular instance, and with a particular purpose, suspended.” See his Discourse of Natural Theology, Note 5, p. 210-214. (Ed. 1835.)
Laplace, in his Essai sur les Probabilités, maintains that, the more extraordinary the fact attested, the greater the probability of error or falsehood in the attestor. Simple good sense, he says, suggests this; and the calculation of probabilities confirms its suggestion. There are some things, he adds, so extraordinary, that nothing can balance their improbability. The position here laid down is, that the probability of error, or of the falsehood of testimony, becomes in proportion greater, as the fact which is attested is more extraordinary. And hence a fact extraordinary in the highest possible degree, becomes in the highest possible degree improbable; or so much so, that nothing can counterbalance its improbability.
This argument has been made much use of, to discredit the evidence of miracles, and the truth of that divine religion which is attested by them. But however sound it may be, in one sense, this application of it is fallacious. The fallacy lies in the meaning affixed to the term “extraordinary.” If Laplace means a fact extraordinary under its existing circumstances and relations, that is, a fact remaining extraordinary, notwithstanding all its circumstances, the position need not here to be controverted. But if the term means extraordinary in the abstract, it is far from being universally true, or affording a correct test of truth, or rule of evidence. Thus, it is extraordinary that a man should leap fifteen feet at a bound; but not extraordinary that a strong and active man should do it, under a sudden impulse to save his life. The former is improbable in the abstract; the latter is rendered probable by the circumstances. So, things extraordinary, and therefore improbable under one hypothesis, become the reverse under another. Thus, the occurrence of a violent storm at sea, and the utterance by Jesus of the the words, “Peace, be still,” succeeded instantly by a perfect calm, are facts which, taken separately from each other, are not in themselves extraordinary. The connexion between the command of Jesus and the ensuing calm, as cause and effect, would be extraordinary and improbable if he were a mere man; but it becomes perfectly natural and probable, when his divine power is considered. Each of those facts is in its nature so simple and obvious, that the most ignorant person is capable of observing it. There is nothing extraordinary in the facts themselves; and the extraordinary coincidence, in which the miracle consists, becomes both intelligible and probable upon the hypothesis of the Christian. (See the Christian Observer for Oct. 1838, p. 617.) The theory of Laplace may, with the same propriety, be applied to the creation of the world. That matter was created out of nothing is extremely improbable, in the abstract, that is, if there is no God; and therefore it is not to be believed. But if the existence of a Supreme Being is conceded, the fact is perfectly credible.
Laplace was so fascinated with his theory, that he thought the calculus of probabilities might be usefully employed in discovering the value of the different methods resorted to, in those sciences which are in a great measure conjectural, as medicine, agriculture, and political economy. And he proposed that there should be kept, in every branch of the administration, an exact register of the trials made of different measures, and of the results, whether good or bad, to which they have led. (See the Edinburgh Review, vol. xxiii. pp 335, 336.) Napoleon, who appointed him Minister of the Interior, has thus described him: “A geometrician of the first class, he did not reach mediocrity as a statesman. He never viewed any subject in its true light; he was always occupied with subtleties; his notions were all problematic; and he carried into the administration the spirit of the infinitely small.” See the Encyclopedia Britannica, art. Laplace, vol. xiii. p. 101. Memoires Ecrits à Ste. Helena, i. 3. The injurious effect of deductive reasoning, upon the minds of those who addict themselves to this method alone, to the exclusion of all other modes of arriving at the knowledge of truth in fact, is shown with great clearness and success, by Mr. Whewel in the ninth of the Bridgewater Treatises, book 3, ch. 6. The calculus of probabilities has been applied by some writers, to judicial evidence; but its very slight value as a test, is clearly shown in an able article on Presumptive Evidence, in the Law Magazine, vol. i. pp. 28-32 (New Series.)
The arguments on this subject are stated in a condensed form, by Mr. Horne, in his Introduction to the Study of the Holy Scriptures, vol. i. ch. 4, sec. 2; in which he refers, among others, to Doctor Gregory's Letters on the Evidences of the Christian Revelation; Dr. Campbell's Dissertation on Miracles; Vince's Sermons on the Credibility of Miracles; Bishop Marsh's Lectures, part 6, lect. 30; Dr. Adam's Treatise in reply to Mr. Hume; Bishop Gleig's Dissertation on Miracles, (in the third volume of his edition of Stackhouse's History of the Bible, p. 240, &c.); Dr. Key's Norissian Lectures, vol. i. See also Dr. Hopkins's Lowell Lectures, lect. I. and II. delivered in Boston in 1844, where this topic is treated with great perspicuity and cogency.
Among the more popular treatises on miracles, are Bogue's Essay on the Divine Authority of the New Testament, ch. 5; Bishop Wilson's Evidences of Christianity, vol. i. lect. 7; Bishop Sumner's Evidences, ch. 10; Gambier's Guide to the Study of Moral Evidence, ch. v.; Mr. Norton's Discourse on the latest form of Infidelity, and Dr. Dewey's Dudleian Lecture, delivered before Harvard University, in May, 1836.
Matt. i. 19.
husband. There was commonly an interval of ten or twelve months, between the making of the contract of marriage and the time of its celebration. Gen. xxiv. 55; Judg. xiv. 8. During this period, though there was no intercourse between the bride and bridegroom, not even so much as an interchange of conversation, yet they were considered and spoken of as husband and wife. If, at the end of this probationary period, the bridegroom was unwilling to solemnize his engagements by the marriage of the bride, he was bound to give her a bill of divorce, as if she had been his wife. And if she, during the same period, had illicit intercourse with another man, she was liable to punishment, as an adulteress. Jahn's Archæol. § 154.
The Genealogy of Jesus, as given by Luke, is here inverted for the sake of more convenient comparison with that given by Matthew.
The apparent discrepancies in these accounts are reconciled by Dr. Robinson, in the following manner:
“I. In the genealogy given by Matthew, considered by itself, some difficulties present themselves.
“1. There is some diversity among commentators in making out the three divisions, each of fourteen generations, v. 17. It is, however, obvious, that the first division begins with Abraham and ends with David. But does the second begin with David, or with Solomon? Assuredly with the former; because, just as the first begins apo Abraham, so the second also is said to begin apo David. The first extends heos David, and includes him; the second extends to an epoch and not to a person; and therefore the persons who are mentioned as coeval with this epoch are not reckoned before it. After the epoch the enumeration begins again with Jechoniah, and ends with Jesus. In this way the three divisions are made out thus:—
1. Abraham.
2. Isaac.
3. Jacob.
4. Judah.
5. Phares.
6. Esrom.
7. Aram.
8. Aminadab.
9. Naasson.
10. Salmon.
11. Boaz.
12. Obed.
13. Jesse.
14. David.
1. David.
2. Solomon.
3. Roboam.
4. Abiah.
5. Asa.
6. Josaphat.
7. Joram.
8. Uzziah (Ozias).
9. Jotham.
10. Ahaz.
11. Hezekiah.
12. Manasseh.
13. Amon.
14. Josiah.
1. Jechoniah.
2. Salathiel.
3. Zorobabel.
4. Abiud.
5. Eliakim.
6. Azor.
7. Sadoc.
8. Achim.
9. Eliud.
10. Eleazar.
11. Matthan.
12. Jacob.
13. Joseph.
14. Jesus.
“2. Another difficulty arises from the fact, that between Joram and Ozias, in v. 8, three names of Jewish kings are omitted, viz. Ahaziah, Joash, and Amaziah; see 2 K. 8, 25 and Chr. 22, 1. 2 K. 11, 2. 21 and 2 Chr. 22, 11. 2 K. 12, 21. 14, 1 and 2 Chr. 24, 27. Further, between Josiah and Jechoniah in v. 11, the name of Jehoiakim is also omitted; 2 K. 23, 34. 2 Chr. 36, 4. comp. 1 Chr. 3, 15, 16. If these four names are to be reckoned, then the second division, instead of fourteen generations, will contain eighteen, in contradiction to v. 17. To avoid this difficulty, Newcome and some others have regarded v. 17 as a mere gloss, ‘a marginal note taken into the text.’ This indeed is in itself possible; yet all the external testimony of manuscripts and versions is in favour of the genuineness of that verse. It is better therefore to regard these names as having been customarily omitted in the current genealogical tables, from which Matthew copied. Such omissions of particular generations did sometimes actually occur, ‘propteres quod malæ essent et impiæ,’ according to R. Sal. Jarchi; Lightfoot, Hor. Heb. in Matth. 1, 8. A striking example of an omission of this kind, apparently without any such reason, is found in Ezra 7, 1-5, compared with 1 Chr. 6, 3-15. This latter passage contains the lineal descent of the high-priests from Aaron to the captivity; while Ezra, in the place cited, in tracing back his own genealogy through the very same line of descent, omits at least six generations. A similar omission is necessarily implied in the genealogy of David, as given Ruth 4, 20-22. 1 Chr. 2, 10-12. Matth. 1, 5, 6. Salmon was contemporary with the capture of Jericho by Joshua, and married Rahab. But from that time until David, an interval of at least four hundred and fifty years (Acts 13, 20,) there intervened, according to the list, only four generations, averaging of course more than one hundred years to each. But the highest average in point of fact is three generations to a century; and if reckoned by the eldest sons they are usually shorter, or three generations for every seventy-five or eighty years. See Sir I. Newton's Chronol. p. 53. Lond. 1728.
“We may therefore rest in the necessary conclusion, that as our Lord's regular descent from David was always asserted, and was never denied even by the Jews; so Matthew, in tracing this admitted descent, appealed to genealogical tables, which were public and acknowledged in the family and tribe from which Christ sprang. He could not indeed do otherwise. How much stress was laid by the Jews upon lineage in general, and how much care and attention were bestowed upon such tables, is well known. See Lightfoot, Hor. Heb. in Matth. 1, 1. Comp. Phil. 3, 4, 5.
“II. Other questions of some difficulty present themselves, when we compare together the two genealogies.
“1. Both tables at first view purport to give the lineage of our Lord through Joseph. But Joseph cannot have been the son by natural descent of both Joseph and Heli (Eli), Matth. 1, 16. Luke 3, 23. Only one of the tables therefore can give his true lineage by generation. This is done apparently in that of Matthew; because, beginning at Abraham, it proceeds by natural descent, as we know from history, until after the exile; and then continues on in the same mode of expression until Joseph. Here the phrase is changed; and it is no longer Joseph who 'begat' Jesus, but Joseph ‘the husband of Mary, of whom was born Jesus who is called the Christ.’ See Augustine, de Consensu Evangel. II. 5.
“2. To whom then does the genealogy in Luke chiefly relate? If in any way to Joseph, as the language purports, then it must be because he in some way bore the legal relation of son to Heli, either by adoption or by marriage. If the former simply, it is difficult to comprehend why, along with his true personal lineage as traced by Matthew up through the royal line of Jewish kings to David, there should be given also another subordinate genealogy, not personally his own, and running back through a different and inferior line to the same great ancestor. If, on the other hand, as is most probable, this relation to Heli came by marriage with his daughter, so that Joseph was truly his son-in-law (comp. Ruth 1, 8. 11. 12); then it follows, that the genealogy in Luke is in fact that of Mary the mother of Jesus. This being so, we can perceive a sufficient reason why this genealogy should be thus given, viz. in order to show definitely, that Jesus was in the most full and perfect sense a descendant of David: not only by law in the royal line of kings, through his reputed father, but also in fact by direct personal descent through his mother.
“That Mary, like Joseph, was a descendant of David, is not indeed elsewhere expressly said in the New Testament. Yet a very strong presumption to that effect is to be drawn from the address of the angel in Luke 1, 32; as also from the language of Luke 2, 5, where Joseph, as one of the posterity of David, is said to have gone up to Bethlehem, to enroll himself with Mary his espoused wife. The ground and circumstances of Mary's enrolment must obviously have been the same as in the case of Joseph himself. Whether all this arose from her having been an only child and heiress, as some suppose, so that she was espoused to Joseph in accordance with Num. 36, 8, 9, it is not necessary here to inquire. See Michaelis ‘Commentaries on the Laws of Moses,’ Part II. § 78.
“It is indeed objected, that it was not customary among the Jews to trace back descent through the female line, that is, on the mother's side. There are, however, examples to show that this was sometimes done; and in the case of Jesus, as we have seen, there was a sufficient reason for it. Thus in 1 Chr. 2, 22, Jair is enumerated among the posterity of Judah by regular descent. But the grandfather of Jair had married the daughter of Machir, one of the heads of Manasseh, 1 Chr. 2, 21. 7, 14; and therefore in Num. 32, 40. 41, Jair is called the son (descendant) of Manasseh. In like manner, in Ezra, 2, 61, and Neh. 7, 63, a certain family is spoken of as ‘the children of Barzillai;’ because their ancestor ‘took a wife of the daughters of Barzillai the Gileadite, and was called after their name.’
“3. A question is raised as to the identity, in the two genealogies, of the Salathiel and Zorobabel named as father and son, Matth. 1, 12. Luke 3, 27. The Zorobabel of Matthew is no doubt the chief, who led back the first band of captives from Babylon, and rebuilt the temple, Ezra c. 2-6. He is also called the son of Salathiel in Ezra 3, 2. Neb. 12, 1. Hagg. 1, 1. 2, 2. 23. Were then the Salathiel and Zorobabel of Luke the same persons? Those who assume this, must rest solely on the identity of the names; for there is no other possible evidence to prove, either that they were contemporary, or that they were not different persons. On the other hand, there are one or two considerations, of some force, which go to show that they were probably not the same persons.
“First, if Salathiel and Zorobabel are indeed the same in both genealogies, then Salathiel who, according to Matthew, was the son of Jechoniah by natural descent, must have been called the son of Neri in Luke either from adoption or marriage. In that case, his connection with David through Nathan, as given by Luke, was not his own personal genealogy. It is difficult, therefore, to see Luke, after tracing back the descent of Jesus to Salathiel, should abandon the true personal lineage in the royal line of kings, and turn aside again to a merely collateral and humbler line. If the mother of Jesus was in fact descended from the Zorobabel and Salathiel of Matthew, she, like them, was descended also from David through the royal line. Why rob her of this dignity, and ascribe to her only a descent through an inferior lineage? See Spanheim Dubia Evangel. I. p. 108, sq.
“Again, the mere identity of names under these circumstances, affords no proof; for nothing is more common even among contemporaries. Thus we have two Ezras; one in Neh. 12, 1. 13, 33; from whom Ezra the scribe is expressly distinguished in v. 36. We have likewise two Nehemiahs; one who went up with Zorobabel, Ezra 2, 2; and the other the governor who went later to Jerusalem, Neh. 2, 9, sq. So too, as contemporaries, Joram son of Ahab, king of Israel, and Joram (Jehoram,) son of Jehoshaphat, king of Judah; 2 K. 8, 16, coll. v. 23, 24. Also Joash king of Judah, and Joash king of Israel; 2 K. 13, 9, 10. Further, we find in succession among the descendants of Cain the following names: Enoch, Irad, Mehujael, Methusael, Lamech, Gen. 4, 17, 18; and later among the descendants of Seth these similar ones: Enoch, Methusalah, Lamech, Gen. 5, 21-25.” See Dr. Robinson's Greek Harmony of the Gospels, pp. 183-187.
Matthew says that the disciples were called by Christ while walking by the sea, because that calling followed the walk by the sea. “We say that a thing was done by one walking in this or that place, because he took such a walk, whether he who did the act was then walking, or sitting or standing.” Spanb. dub. lxxii. v. 2. This remark reconciles “walking,” Matth. iv. 18 with “stood,” Luke v. 1. A like remark may be made with respect to the passages placed parallel to Luke v. 6. Jesus is concisely represented as if he had at first seen Peter and Andrew casting a net into the sea, because they were employed thus in consequence of the interview.
Luke does not deny that more than Simon were seen, nor does he affirm that Simon was seen. Indeed our Lord is said to have seen two ships by the lake. The calling of others beside Simon not only is not denied by Luke, but is sufficiently indicated in v. 11. The words of Matthew (v. 21) “going on from thence,” are not to be understood as implying a great distance, but as relating to the neighbouring shore. Matthew relates the principal fact, the calling and the following; Luke has the accompanying circumstances. And there is a remarkable harmony between them. Matthew records the repairing of their nets by the fishermen; Luke shows how they became broken,—by the great draught they had taken. What is related by Luke, is not denied by Matthew, but omitted only. Nothing, indeed, is more common than to find the omission of some supplied by the other Evangelists. newcome.
Thaddeus, Theudas and Judas (or Jude) are probably names of the same signification, the Greek termination being added to different forms of a Hebrew verb. “The Canaanite,” Matth. x. 4, is the same with “Zelotes” in Luke. “Cognomen erat Chald. quod Lucas reddidit Zelotem.” Wetstein. Thus, Thomas is rendered Didymus, or, the twin; Cephas, Peter; and Silas, Tertius. Some suppose that this name had been given to Simon on account of his religious zeal; or, because he had been of a Jewish sect called Zealots, who were addicted to the Pharisees, and justified themselves by the example of Phinehas, for punishing offenders without waiting for the sentence of the magistrate. Newcome.
“Between Matthew (x. 2,) and Mark (iii. 16,) we observe a strict correspondence, but the catalogue in St. Luke (vi. 14,) differs from both the first-mentioned writers, in two particulars. 1, ‘Simon the Canaanite,’ of Matthew and Mark is introduced as ‘Simon called Zelotes.’ Now if any difference was admitted in this place, we might expect it to extend no farther than to the order of the names, or the addition of a surname; as, for instance, Matthew calls the ‘Thaddeus’ of Mark also ‘Lebbeus;’ but here we have one surname changed for another. It is indeed easy to conceive, that Simon might have been commonly distinguished by either appellative, but this we can only conjecture; neither Evangelist adds a word to explain the point. 2, The other discrepancy, however, appears more serious. The Lebbeus or Thaddeus of St. Matthew and Mark, is entirely omitted in the list of St. Luke, who substitutes ‘Judas the brother of James.’ Here is certainly a marked difference, for it would not seem very probable, that the Apostle in question passed by three distinct names. Nor could this be a mere oversight in St. Luke, for, in Acts i. 13, where a catalogue of the eleven is inserted, he mentioned this individual in exactly the same manner. Are we to suppose then that the Evangelist commits a deliberate error in this particular? We have distinct and satisfactory witnesses to prove that there really was an Apostle, besides Iscariot, who bore the name of Judas. Both Matthew (xiii. 55,) and Mark (vi. 3,) concur in speaking of James and Jude as the near relations of Christ, and part of this statement is incidentally confirmed by St. Paul, who calls James ‘the Lord's brother.’ (Gal. i. 19.) But farther, St. John (xiv. 22,) presents us with a remark made by ‘Judas not Iscariot;’ evidently one of the Apostles; and St. Jude himself, in the first verse of his Epistle, styles himself ‘the brother of James.’ There is thus amply sufficient evidence, that all the Gospel writers acknowledge an Apostle of this name, though St. Matthew, with his usual simplicity, familiarly mentions him by two of his appellations, omitting that of Judas, and St. Mark sees no occasion to depart from his language, in a matter of such general notoriety. Luke, on the other hand, usually studious of accuracy, distinguishes this Apostle by the name generally current in the Church, when his Gospel was written. This variation then may, upon the whole, convince us how undesignedly the writers of Scripture confirm each other's statements; yet can this only be the result of a minute examination upon our part, and upon the probability of this, a cautious writer would hardly stake his reputation for truth or exactness.” See Roberts's “Light shining out of Darkness,” pp. 91-93.
It may be objected that Matthew, in saying that this discourse was delivered sitting on a mountain, is contradicted by Luke, who says, that Jesus was standing on a plain. Luke vi. 17. But Dr. Clarke, on this latter place, has suggested that Jesus “being pressed with great multitudes of people, might retire from them again to the top of the hill.” And Dr. Priestley observes that “Matthew's saying that Jesus was sat down after he had gone up the mountain, and Luke's saying that he stood on the plain, when he healed the sick before the discourse, are no inconsistencies.” Harm. p. 83.
The whole picture is striking. Jesus ascends a mountain, employs the night in prayer, and having thus solemnly invoked the divine blessing, authoritatively separates the twelve apostles from the mass of his disciples. He descends, and heals, in the plain, all among a great multitude, collected from various parts by the fame of his miraculous power. Having thus created attention, he satisfies the desire of the people to hear his doctrine; and retiring first to the mountain whence he came, that his attentive hearers might follow him, and might better arrange themselves before him. Sacro digna silentio Mirantur omnes dicere. Hor. Newcome.
The different accounts of the Sermon on the Mount may be reconciled, by considering that Mathew wrote chiefly for the Hebrew Christians; and it was therefore important for him to bring out, in full, the manner in which our Lord enforced the spiritual nature of his dispensation and doctrine, in opposition to the mere letter of the Jewish law, and the teaching and practice of Scribes and Pharisees; which he does particularly and with many examples; while Luke, on the contrary, wrote chiefly for Gentile Christians, to whom the contrast with the Jewish law was of less interest; and therefore he omits those parts of the discourse, and dwells only upon those which were of practical importance to all. Robinson. Newcome.
Calvin says that Matthew, being more brief, introduces the centurion himself as speaking; and that Luke expresses more at large his sending by his friends; but that the sense of both is the same. Harm. p. 124.
(Toinard quotes Exod. xviii. 6, where the words related as spoken by Jethro, were evidently a message sent by him to Moses. Harm. 147.) Considering then the sameness of the scene, of the person, of the words, and of the transaction, I cannot but conclude with Grotius, that the miracle is one and the same, related in general by Matthew, and with greater accuracy by Luke. newcome.
This is made consistent with the other Evangelists, by reading “Gadarenes.” If Gergasa was subordinate to Gadara, the metropolis of Perea, as Cellarius and Reland judge, and St. Mark did not write in Judea, what wonder that he chose the more general name, which was best known in the world? But Cellarius from Eusebius takes notice that some esteemed Gergasi, so Eusebius writes it, and Gadara two names of the same city; and this he thinks was the sentiment of the Syriac translator. To this Sir Richard Ellis most inclines, in his “Fortuita Sacra.” Townson, p. 72.
In Matthew mention is made of two demoniacs; in Mark and Luke of one only. Here Le Clerc's maxim is undoubtedly true: Qui plura narrat, pauciora complectitur: qui pauciora memorat, plura non negat. Harm. p. 524.
We may collect a reason from the Gospels themselves, why Mark and Luke mention only one demoniac; because, one only being grateful for the miracle, his cure only was recorded by the two Evangelists, who mention this gratitude, and who are more intent on inculcating the moral, than on magnifying our Lord's power. Newcome.
The traditions of the elders were unwritten ordinances of indefinite antiquity, the principal of which, as the Pharisees alleged, were delivered to Moses in the mount, and all of which were transmitted through the High Priests and Prophets, down to the members of the great Sanhedrim in their own times; and from these, as the Jews say, they were handed down to Gamaliel, and ultimately to Rabbi Jehudah, by whom they were digested and committed to writing, toward the close of the second century. This collection is termed the Mishna; and in many cases it is esteemed among the Jews as of higher authority than the law itself. In like manner, there are said to be many Christians, at the present day, who receive ancient traditionary usages and opinions as authoritative exponents of Christian doctrine. They say that the preached gospel was before the written gospel; and that the testimony of those who heard it is entitled to equal credit with the written evidence of the Evangelists; especially as the latter is but a brief record, while the oral preaching was a more full and copious announcement of the glad tidings.
These traditions, both of the Jewish and the Christian Church, seem to stand in pari ratione, the arguments in favour of the admissibility and effect of the one, applying with the same force, in favour of the other. All these arguments may be resolved into two grounds, namely, contemporaneous practice subsequently and uniformly continued; and contemporaneous declarations, as part of the res gestæ, faithfully transmitted to succeeding times. It is alleged that those to whom the law of God was first announced, best knew its precise import and meaning, and that therefore their interpretation and practice, coming down concurrently with the law itself, is equally obligatory.
But this argument assumes what cannot be admitted; for it still remains to be shown that those who first heard the law, when orally announced, had any better means of understanding it than those to whom the same words were afterwards read. The Ten Commandments were spoken in the hearing of Aaron and all the congregation of Israel; immediately after which they made and worshipped a golden calf. Surely this will not be adduced as a valid contemporaneous exposition of the second commandment. The error of the argument lies in the nature of the subject. The human doctrine of contemporaneous exposition is applicable only to human laws and the transactions of men, as equals, and not to the laws of God. Among men, when their own language is doubtful and ambiguous, their own practice is admissible, to expound it; because both the language and the practice are but the outward and visible signs of the meaning and intention of one and the same mind and will, which inward meaning and intention is the thing sought after. It is on the same ground, that, where a statute, capable of divers interpretations, has uniformly been acted upon in a certain way, this is held a sufficient exposition of its true intent. In both cases it is the conduct of the parties themselves which is admitted to interpret their own language; expressed, in cases of contract, by themselves in person, and in statutes, through the medium of the legislators, who were their agents and representatives; and in both cases, it is merely the interpretation of what a man says, by what he does. But this rule has never been applied, in the law, to the language of any other person than the party himself; never, to the command or direction of his superior or employer. And even the language of the parties, when it is contained in a sealed instrument, is at this day held incapable of being expounded by their actions, on account of the greater solemnity of the instrument. See Baynham v. Guy's Hospital, 3 Vesey's Rep. 295. Eaton v. Lyon, Ibid. 690, 694. The practice of men, therefore, can be no just exponent of the law of God. If they have mistaken the meaning of his command from the beginning, the act of contravention remains a sin in the last transgressor, as well as the first; for the word of God cannot be changed or affected by the gloss of human interpretation.
The other ground, namely, that the testimony of those who heard Jesus and his apostles preach, is of equal authority with the Scriptures, being contemporaneous declarations, and parts of the res gestae, and therefore admissible in aid of the exposition of the written word, is equally inconsistent with the sound and settled rules of law respecting writings. When a party has deliberately committed his intention and meaning to writing, the law regards the writing as the sole repository of his mind and intention, and does not admit any oral testimony to alter, add to, or otherwise affect it. The reasons for this rule are two; first, because the writing is the more solemn act, by the party himself, designed to prevent mistake, and to remain as the perpetual memorial of his intention; and, secondly, because of the great uncertainty and weakness of any secondary evidence. For no one can tell whether the by-standers heard precisely what was said, nor whether they heard it all, nor whether they continued to remember it with accuracy until the time when they wrote it down, or communicated it to those who wrote it; to say nothing of the danger of their mixing up the language of the speaker with what was said by others, or with their own favourite theories. And where the witnesses were not the original auditors of what was said, no one knows how much the truth may have suffered from the many channels through which it has passed, in coming from the first speaker to the last write or witness. On all these accounts, the law rejects oral testimony of what the parties said, in regard to anything that has already been solemnly committed to writing by the parties themselves, and rejects the secondary evidence of hearsay, when evidence of a higher degree, as, for example, a written declaration of the party, can be obtained.
Now, inasmuch as the writings of the Evangelists and Apostles were penned under the inspiration of the Holy Spirit, why should not the documentary evidence of the Gospel, thus drawn up by them, be treated with at least as much respect as other written documents? If they were inspired to write down those great truths for a perpetual memorial to after ages, then this record is the primary evidence of those truths. It is the word of God, penned by his own dictation, and sealed, as it were, with his own seal. If it were a man's word and will, thus solemnly written, no verbal or secondary evidence could be admitted, by the common law, to explain, add to, or vary it; nothing could be engrafted upon it; nor could any person be admitted to testify what he heard the party say, in regard to what was written. The courts would at once reject all such attempts, and confine themselves strictly to the writing before them, the only inquiry being as to the meaning of the language contained in that document, and not as to what the party may elsewhere have spoken. The law presumes that the writing alone is the source to which he intended that resort should be had, in order to ascertain his meaning. But by calling in the fathers, with their traditions, to prove what Christ and his Apostles taught, beyond what is solemnly recorded in the Scriptures, the principle of this plain and sound rule of law is violated; resort is had to secondary evidence of the truths of our religion, when the primary evidence is already at hand; and the pure fountain is deserted for the muddy stream.
The phrase three days and three nights is equivalent to three days, three natural days of twenty-four hours. Gen. i. 5; Dan. viii. 14. Comp. Gen. vii. 4. 17.
(It is a received rule among the Jews, that a part of a day is put for the whole; so that whatsoever is done in any part of the day, is properly said to be done that day. 1 Kings xx. 29; Esth. iv. 16. “When eight days were accomplished for the circumcision of the child,” &c. Yet the day of his birth and of his circumcision were two of these eight days. Whitby, quoted by Scott, on Matth. xii. 40.) Grotius establishes this way of reckoning the parts of the first and third days for two days, by Aben Ezra on Lev. xii. 3.
(In proof that the phrase “after three days,” is sometimes equivalent to “on the third day,” compare Deut. xiv. 28 with xxvi. 12; 1 Sam. xx. 12 with v. 19; 2 Chron. x. 5 with v. 12; Matth. xxvi. 2 with xxvii. 63, 64; Luke ii. 21 with i. 59.)
St. Luke omits our Lord's sharp reproof of Peter, and the occasion of it; though he records the discourse in consequence of it. Le Clerc's 12th canon is “Qui pauciora habet, non negat plura dicta aut facta; modo ne ulla sit exclusionis nota.” Perhaps the disciple and companion of that apostle who had withstood Peter to his face, Gal. ii. 11, willingly made this omission, as he omits some aggravating circumstances in Peter's denial of Christ, Luke xxii. 60, though he carefully records the greatness of his sorrow, v. 62. Newcome.
It has been shown, § 74, that “after six days” may signify on the sixth day. But we are not hence to conclude that the phrase has always such a signification. Here it means six days complete, after the discourse recorded in § 74. The eight days mentioned by St. Luke include that of Peter's reproof and of the transfiguration; which two days Matthew and Mark exclude. Macknight furnishes us with the following apposite reference to Tacitus: Hist. i. 29. Piso says, Sextus dies agitur—ex quo—Cæsar adscitus sum; and yet, § 48 of the same book, Tacitus speaks of Piso as quatriduo Cæsar.
Grotius on Matth. xvii. 1, has another solution; Quod Lucas dicit, tale est quale cum vulgò dicimus post septimanam circiter. Nam Judæos octo dies appellasse id quod ab uno sabbato est ad alterum apparet, Joan. 20, 26, &c. Newcome.
According to St. Mark, Jesus comes to Jericho; by which may be meant that he is a temporary inhabitant of that city. See Mark vi. 1, and viii. 22. Jesus therefore may be represented, (Matt. xx. 29; Mark x. 46,) not as finally leaving Jericho for Jerusalem, but as occasionally going out of Jericho; in which city he had made some abode, it matters not for how few days. See Mark xi. 19. Jericho was a very considerable city; and we do not read that it was visited by our Lord at any other time. We may therefore suppose that Jesus, accompanied by his disciples and the multitude, and intent on his great work of propagating the gospel, went out of this city, knowing that a fit occasion of working a miracle would present itself; and that on his return, as he drew nigh unto Jericho, (Luke xviii. 35,) he restored the blind men to sight. It is likewise probable that Jesus, having given this proof of his divine mission, or foreseeing that so great a miracle would create too much attention in the people, prudently and humbly passed through Jericho on his return to it, (Luke xix. 1,) and continued his journey to Jerusalem.
As to the remaining difficulty, that Matthew mentions two blind men, and the other Evangelists only one, I must refer to Le Clerc's maxim, before quoted; (see § 57, note): adding that Bartimeus may have been the more remarkable of the two, and the more eminent for his faith in Jesus. Newcome.
In the East, where the fashions of dress rarely if ever change, much of their riches consists in the number and splendour of their robes, or caffetans. Presents of garments are frequently alluded to in Scripture. Gen. xlv. 22. 2 Chron. ix. 24. Judges xiv. 12. 2 Kings v. 5. Ezra ii. 69. Neh. vii. 70, where “the Tirshatha gave five hundred and thirty priests' garments.”
Presents were considered as tokens of honour;—not meant as offers of payment or enrichment, (1 Sam. ix. 7); and especially presents of dresses. 1 Sam. xviii. 4. Luke xv. 22. Tavernier, p. 43, mentions a nazar, whose virtue so pleased a king of Persia, that he caused himself to be disappareled, and gave his own habit to the nazar, which is the greatest honour a king of Persia can bestow on a subject.
Such presents are given by kings on great occasions, especially at the marriages of their children. The Sultan Achmet, at the marriage of his eldest daughter, “gave presents to above 20,000 persons.” Knolles's Hist. of the Turks, p. 1311. So Ahasuerus “gave gifts, according to the state of the king.” Esth. ii. 18.
The king gives his garment of honour before the wearer is admitted into his presence;—De la Mottraye's Trav. p. 199; (Does this illustrate Zech. iii. 3, 4?)—and would resent it if any, having received robes of him, should appear in his presence without wearing these marks of his liberality. And to refuse such favours, when offered, is considered as one of the greatest indignities. Sir John Chardin relates an instance where such a refusal cost a vizier his life. See 4 Calm. Dict. pp. 64, 126, 514.
The use of the word testament, (diatheke,) in a sense involving also the idea of a covenant, and in connexion with the circumstances of a compact, has greatly perplexed many English readers of the Bible. The difficulty occurs in Matt. 26, 28, and the parallel places, where our Lord employs the word testament, or last will, in connexion with the sacrificial shedding of his own blood; a ceremony which, by means of a suitable animal, usually was adopted among the ancients, upon the making of the most solemn engagements; and instead of which, the mutual partaking of the sacrament of the Lord's Supper, by the contracting parties, was substituted among Christians in later times. The same embarrassment occurs, perhaps in a greater degree, in the exposition of several passages in the eighth and ninth chapters of the Epistle to the Hebrews, (manifestly written by a profound lawyer, be he Paul or Apollos), where he uses language applicable indifferently both to a covenant inter vivos and a last will. For with us, a testament is simply a declaration of the last will of the testator, in regard to the disposition of his property after his decease, irrespective of any consent, or even knowledge, at the time, on the part of him to whom the estate is given; while a covenant requires the mutual consent of both parties, as essential to its existence. The one is simply the ultima voluntas of an individual, the other is the aggregatio mentium of both or all.
The solution of this difficulty belongs rather to theologians, whose province it is by no means intended here to invade; but perhaps a reference to the laws and usages in force in Judea in the times of our Saviour and his Apostles may furnish some aid, which a lawyer might contribute without transgressing the limit of his profession.
It is first to be observed that the municipal laws of Greece and Rome were strikingly similar; those of Greece having been freely imported into the Roman jurisprudence. In like manner, the similarity of the Grecian laws and usages with those extant in Asia Minor, indicated a common origin; and thus, what Greece derived from Egypt and the states of Asia Minor, these states, after many ages, received again as the laws of their Roman masters. It should also be remembered that Palestine had been reduced to a Roman province some years before the time of our Saviour; long enough, indeed, to have become familiar with Roman laws and usages, even had they been previously unknown; and that Paul, to whom the Epistle to the Hebrews is generally attributed, was himself a thorough-bred lawyer, well versed in the customs of his country, whether ancient or modern. Among those nations, the civil magistrate often exercised the functions of the priesthood, these dignities being in some respects identical; and thus, whatever was transacted before the magistrate, might naturally seem to partake of the character of an act of religion. Covenants were always made with particular formalities, and to those of graver nature, religious solemnities were often superadded. They were frequently confirmed by an oath, the most solemn form of which was taken standing before the altar; and whosoever swore by the altar, swore by the sacrifice thereon, and was held as firmly bound as though he had passed between the dismembered parts of the victim. Of the latter kind was the oath, by which God confirmed his covenant with Abraham (Gen. xv.) when the visible light of his presence passed between the pieces which the patriarch had divided and laid “each piece one against another.”
With these things in view, we may now look at some of the modes of transferring property, practised by the nations alluded to.
Among the methods of alienation or sale of property by the owner, in his lifetime, was that which in the Roman law was termed mancipatio; a mode by which the vendor conveyed property to the purchaser, each party being present, either in person or by his agent, representative, or factor. Five witnesses were requisite, one of whom was called libripens, or the balance-holder. This form had its origin in the sale of goods by weight, but was gradually extended to all sales; and the practice was for the buyer to strike the balance with a piece of money called a sestertius, which was immediately paid over to the vendor as part of the price; and hence the expression per æs et libram vendere.
Wills or testaments were made with great solemnity. One method among the Romans, probably common, in its principal traits, to the other nations before mentioned, was termed the testament per æs et libram, it being effected in the form of a sale. This mode seems to have been resorted to whenever the estate was given to a stranger, (hæres extraneus,) to the exclusion of the hæres suus, or necessarius, or, as we should say, the heir at law; and it was founded on the purchase of the estate by the adopted heir, who succeeded to the privileges of the child. The forms of a sale by mancipatio were therefore scrupulously observed; the presence and agreement of the purchaser, either in person or by his representative or negotiator, being necessary to its validity. The reason for requiring this form was because it involved a covenant on the part of the adopted heir or legatee, by which he became bound to pay all the debts of the testator. Having entered into this covenant, he had the best possible title in law to the inheritance, namely, that of a purchaser for a valuable consideration. Among the Greeks, and probably among the Romans also, this was transacted in the presence of a magistrate, who sanctioned it by his sentence of approval. This was the most ancient form of a will; and it does not seem to have been abrogated until the time of Constantine.
Now, when our Saviour speaks of the new testament in his blood, or of his blood of the new testament, and when Paul uses similar forms of expression may not the figure have reference to the custom above stated? And if so, may not this custom guide us to the true meaning of the words? Does it intimate to us that the promised inheritance was first given to man, as it were by a testament in this ancient form, upon a covenant of his own perfect obedience to every part of the law of God; that having broken this covenant, his title became forfeited; that the inheritance was afterwards promised, in the same manner, to every one, Jew or Gentile, upon a new covenant and condition, namely of a true faith in Christ; a faith evinced in the fruits of a holy life; that this inheritance by a new testament and covenant was negociated, as it were, and obtained for man by the mediation of Jesus Christ, (“the mediator of the new testament,” Heb. 9. 15,) as the representative of all who should accept it by such faith, and their surety for the performance of its conditions; that it was purchased by his obedience and solemnized by the sacrifice of himself as the victim?
This solution is suggested with much diffidence. That it carries these passages clear of all difficulty is not pretended. The very nature of the subject renders it difficult of illustration by any reference to human affairs; and the embarrassment is proportionally increased, whenever the simile is pressed beyond its principal point of resemblance.
See Ayliffe's Pandect, pp. 349, 393, 367-369. Book iii. tit. xii. xv. Leges Atticæ, De Testamentis, &c. tit. vi. S. Petit. Comm. in Leges Attic. p. 479-481. Justin, Inst. lib. 2. tit. 10, § 1. Ibid. tit. 19, § 5, 6. Cooper's Justinian, p. 487. Cod. lib. 6. tit. 23, 1. 15. Fuss's Roman Antiq. ch. 1, § 87, 97, 103, 107, 183. Michaelis, LL. Moses, vol. 4, art. 302. Bp. Patrick, quoted in Bush's Illustrations, p. 254.
Matthew and Mark relate Peter's denials of Christ after his condemnation, and the insults consequent upon it. It is plain that they happened while the High Priest and council were sitting in judgment. But instances of recurring in this manner to what had been omitted in its proper place are common in the Gospels; and in this place the thread of the narration is preserved unbroken.
It having been expressly mentioned by each Evangelist, that Peter would thrice deny Jesus, we may conclude that each has related the three denials which Jesus foretold.
Peter's first denial. Peter was without, or beneath, in the hall of Caiaphas's house. Dr. Scott, on Matth. xxvi. 3, observes that aule signifies an house, (Luke xi. 21,) and that emphatically it signifies the king's house, or palace. But in Luke xxii. 55, it seems to signify a spacious apartment, probably the High Priest's judgment-hall. It was the place in which Jesus stood before the High Priest, (Luke xxii. 61,) and had an atrium or vestibulum at its entrance. This was an unfit place for the tribunal of the High Priest at such an hour, (John xviii. 18.) Sir John Chardin says, “In the lower Asia the day is always hot; and in the height of summer the nights are as cold as at Paris in the month of March.” It remains therefore that we understand it of a spacious chamber, such as Shaw mentions, Travels, 4to. pp. 207, 8.
Peter was not in the higher part, where Jesus stood before the High Priest; but without that division of the hall, and in the lower part, with the servants and officers. The damsel, who kept the door, had entered into the hall when she charged Peter.
Peter's second denial. Peter, having once denied Jesus, naturally retired from the place where his accuser was, to the vestibule of the hall, (Matt. xxvi. 71); and it was the time of the first cock-crowing, or soon after midnight. After remaining here a short time, perhaps near an hour, another damsel sees him, and says to those who were standing by in the vestibule, that he was one of them. Peter, to avoid this charge, withdraws into the hall, and stands and warms himself, (John xviii. 25.) The damsel, and those to whom she had spoken, follow him; the communication between the places being immediate. Here a man enforces the charge of the damsel, according to Luke; and others urge it according to John, (though by him the plural may be used for the singular,) and Peter denies Jesus vehemently.
Peter's third denial. Peter was now in the hall. Observe Matt. xxvi. 75, and Luke xxii. 62. He was also within sight of Jesus, though at such a distance from him that Jesus could know what passed only in a supernatural way. About an hour after his second denial, those who stood by founded a charge against him on his being a Galilean, which, Luke says, one in particular strongly affirmed, (though here Matthew and Mark may use the plural for the singular,) and which, according to John, was supported by one of Malchus's relations. This occasioned a more vehement denial than before; and immediately the cock crew the second time. The first denial may have been between our twelve and one; and the second between our two and three. We must further observe, that Matt. xxvi. 57, lays the scene of Peter's denials in the house of Caiaphas; whereas the transactions of John xviii. 15-23 seem to have passed in the house of Annas. But John xviii. 24 is here transposed to its regular place, with Le Clerc. Newcome.
As to the title itself, the precise working may have differed in the different languages; and MSS. represent it differently.
But the same verbal exactness is not necessary in historians, whose aim is religious instruction, as in recorders of public inscriptions. It is enough that the Evangelists agree as to the main article, “the King of the Jews,” referred to, John xix. 21. That their manner is to regard the sense, rather than the words, appears from many places. Compare Matt. iii. 17, and ix. 11, and xv. 27, and xvi. 6, 9, and xix. 18, and xx. 33, and xxi. 9, and xxvi. 39, 64, 70, and xxviii. 5, 6, with the parallel verses in this Harmony. Compare also John xi. 40, with ver. 23, 25. One of the most solemn and awful of our Lord's discourses is, in some parts, variously expressed. See Matt. xxvi. 28, Mark xiv. 24, Luke xxii. 20, 1 Cor. xi. 25. Now as each of these writers has, beyond all doubt, faithfully represented the meaning of Christ, we see that it might be truly done in different words, or in a different form of the same words. His sentences also, sometimes admitted a difference of arrangement; for the order in which two sentences, or the several members of the same sentence, are disposed by St. Matthew, is, in several places, inverted by St. Mark. And with regard to his actions, though the most material parts of whatever they were going to relate must command their attention, yet there was no such superior attraction in one specific number and order of secondary circumstances, as could turn their thoughts absolutely and exclusively to them. This is plain from instances to the contrary. One Evangelist is sometimes distinct, while another is concise; and describes what the other passes over. Townson, pp. 60-1.
We may reasonably suppose St. Matthew to have cited the Hebrew,—St. John the Greek,—and St. Mark the Latin, which was the shortest, and without mixture of foreign words. St. Mark is followed by St. Luke; only that he has brought down “THIS IS” from above, as having a common reference to what stood under it. Newcome.
Tacit. Annal. xv. 31. See M. Dupin's Trial of Jesus, p. 57-59, (Amer. Ed.) Chr. Thomasius, Dissertatio de injusto Pilati judicio, § 12, 60. The want of this power was admitted by the Jews, in their reply to Pilate, when he required them to judge Jesus according to their own law, and they replied, “It is not lawful for us to put any man to death.” John xviii. 31.
This point has been held in different ways by learned men. Some are of opinion that the Sanhedrim had power to inflict death for offences touching religion, though not for political offences; and that it was with reference to the charge of treason that they said to Pilate what has just been cited from St. John. They say that, though the Sanhedrim had convicted Jesus of blasphemy, yet they dared not execute that sentence, for fear of a sedition of the people:—that they therefore craftily determined to throw on Pilate the odium of his destruction, by accusing him of treason; and hence, after condemning him, they consulted further, as stated in Matt. xxvii. 1, 2. Mark xv. 1, how to effect this design:—that when Pilate found no fault in him, and directed them to take and crucify him, some replied, “We have a law, and by our law he ought to die,” (John xix. 7,) to intimate to Pilate that Jesus was guilty of death by the Jewish law also, as well as the Roman, and that therefore he would not lose any popularity by condemning him. See Zorrius, Hist. Fisci Judaici, ch. 2, § 2, (in Ugolini Thesaur. tom. 26, col. 1001-1003.) The same view is taken by Deylingius, De Judæorum Jure Gladii, § 10, 11, 12, (in Ugolin. Thesaur. tom. 29, col. 1189-1192.) But he concludes that in all capital cases, there was an appeal from the Sanhedrim to the Prætor; and that without the approval of the latter, the sentence of the Sanhedrim could not be executed. Ibid. § 15, col. 1196. Molinæus understood the Jewish law in the same manner. See his Harmony of the Gospels, note on John xviii. 31. C. Molinæi Opera, tom. 5. pp. 603, 604. But this opinion is refuted by what is said by M. Dupin, Trial, &c., § 8, and by Thomasius, above cited.
We will cite here the words of one of the finest laws of the Romans: Vanæ voces populi non sunt audiendæ, quando aut noxium crimine absolvi, aut innocentum condemnari desiderant—The idle clamour of the populace is not to be regarded, when they call for a guilty man to be acquitted, or an innocent one to be condemned. Law 12, Code de Pœnis. Pilate might also have read in Horace: Justum et tenacem, &c.—
“The man in conscious virtue bold,
Who dares his secret purpose hold,
Unshaken hears the crowd's tumultuous cries,
And the impetuous tyrant's angry brow defies.”